Principles For Life From Muhammed Pbuh
Principles For Life From Muhammed Pbuh
Principles For Life From Muhammed Pbuh
CONTENTS
FOREWORD..............................................................................................................9
A. ACCEPT ISLAM AND FIND SALVATION ..................................................13
B. DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH ......................................................................22
C. INTENTION AND SINCERITY .....................................................................32
1. Intention .......................................................................................................32
2. Sincerity ........................................................................................................38
D. KNOWLEDGE and PRACTICE ......................................................................45
1. The Virtue of Knowledge ...........................................................................45
2. Beneficial Knowledge (Ilm) .......................................................................51
3. Putting Knowledge into Practice ..............................................................56
E. THE PRACTICE OF WORSHIP ......................................................................62
1. Virtues of Ablution (Al-Wudhu) ..............................................................62
2. Being Respectful to Call to Prayer (Adhan) ............................................69
3. Five Daily Ritual Prayers (Salah) ..............................................................75
a. Significance of Salah ...........................................................................75
b. The Virtue of Prayer ...........................................................................80
c. Having Awe in Salah (Prayer) ...........................................................86
d. Observing prayer early in its period ................................................94
e. Praying in Congregation ....................................................................98
4. The Friday Prayer (Salat Al-Juma) ........................................................ 109
5. Ramadan and Fasting .............................................................................. 116
a. The Virtues of Ramadan and Fasting ............................................ 116
b. The Virtues of The Night of Power (Al-Laylat al-Qadr) ............. 121
c. Utilizing the Festivity (Eid) Days ................................................... 126
6. Zakat (Obligatory Alms) ......................................................................... 132
7. Sadaqah (Charity) and Infaq (Donating).............................................. 138
5
CONTENTS
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
FOREWORD
Infinite thanks and praises be to our Almighty Lord Allah each one of whose
characteristics is almighty, each one of whose names is perfect, and each one of
whose artworks is unimaginably beautiful, whose knowledge and wisdom is absolute, whose benediction is abundant, and whose mercy is boundless!
Infinite blessings and greetings be to the Sultan of the worlds, the Prophet
Muhammad (pbuh), the cause of our creation, the cure of our life, the eternal
light of Islam and faith, the best exemplar who shapes our character, and our
interceder in both worlds!
It is known that;
The last divine book is the Noble Quran and the last prophet is His Excellency prophet Muhammad Mustafa (pbuh), who is the seal of the Messengers
and master of the Prophets.
Quran and the Sunnah of the Prophet are the two fundamental sources of
Islam, the final religion in the presence of Allah.
If one of them is missing, neither religion nor faith would be complete.
For this reason, in the presence of Allah the Almighty, obeying the Prophet (pbuh) is same as obeying Allah, and He specifically draws attention to this
fact in the Noble Quran. In the following verses it is stated that:
He who obeys the Messenger, obeys Allah. (Al-Nisa; 4:80)
Those who obey Allah and His Messenger will be admitted to Gardens
with rivers flowing beneath, to abide therein (forever) and that will be the
supreme achievement. (Al-Nisa; 4:13)
9
These divine statements show that obeying the Prophet (pbuh) is a necessary condition for faith. However, this obedience should not be out of duty
but from the heart, out of sincerity and love. This level of obedience is also laid
down as a condition by Allah:
But no, by the Lord, they can have no (real) Faith, until they make
you judge in all disputes between them, and find in their souls no resistance
against Your decisions, but accept them with the fullest conviction. (Al-Nisa;
4:65)
The same level of delicacy in the rules regarding obeying the Prophet applies when it comes not to revolt against him as well. As a matter of fact, Allah
considered disobedience to the Prophet the same as disobedience to Himself
and strongly prohibited it. In the noble verses, the warning is clear for those
who disobey the Messenger of Allah:
But those who disobey Allah and His Messenger and transgress His
limits will be admitted to a Fire, to abide therein: And they shall have a humiliating punishment. (Al-Nisa; 4:14)
let those beware who withstand the Messengers order, lest some
trial befall them, or a grievous penalty be inflicted on them. (Al-Nur; 24:63)
All these divine measures indicate the divine dimension of the sayings of
Prophet Muhammad as a source of Islam second only to the Quran. This is
why obedience to the Prophet (pbuh) means to follow his sayings. And this is
also why, just as the Noble Quran is a revelation from Allah, Prophet Muhammads Sunnah and ahadith which explain what the Quran concisely means are
also considered as revelations from Allah. This is a fact expressed in the Quran
as follows:
Nor does he speak of (his own) desire. It is no less than inspiration
sent down to him (Al-Najm; 53:3-4)
As a matter of fact, since Noble Quran is revealed to the heart of the
Prophet Muhammad,1 his every act became the moral of Quran. Thus, his
sayings (hadith) manifested themselves as the interpretation of the Quran. In
short, the entire life, sayings, and acts of our Master (pbuh) are the best explanation of the Noble Quran.
1.
10
Al-Baqarah; 2:97
FOREWORD
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
In this respect, the Noble Quran and the Sunnah represent an indivisible unity. Whoever holds on to them does not go astray and earns eternal
salvation. Indeed this fact is expressed by the Prophet (pbuh) in his famous
Farewell Speech:
I left with you two things. If you follow them, you will never go astray. One
of them is the Book of Allah and the other is the Sunnah of His Prophet. (Ibn
Hisham, IV, 276; Muwatta, Qadar, 3)
For this reason, the Companions of the Prophet and the righteous scholars who are the inheritors of the prophets have attributed great importance to
the Sunnah and to the ahadith which are the written documents of the Sunnah
and transmitted them to us with a praiseworthy accuracy. The most important
factor in the transmission of the Sunnah to this day is Muslims learning it from
each other and keeping it alive by practicing it in their lives since the time of
the Prophet Muhammad (pbuh). So much so that in order to accept someones
reporting of a hadith, some scholars of hadith used to require that the narrator
of the hadith practice it in his/her life.
In other words, the issue was not just to report the sayings of the Prophet but also to understand and practice them in the best way. Sunnah of the
Prophet is our most valuable and primary source which explain and interpret
our sacred book. Ahadith are the channels through which our beloved Prophet
Muhammad communicates with us. It is his way of talking to us from centuries
ago, and showing us to the straight path. Ahadith are the breaths from the
Age of Bliss, the only cure for the problems of the contemporary man who is
drowning in the swirls of modern ignorance.
Thus, in order to add our lives a Prophetic cure and love, a Muhammadan
blessing and benediction we must always hold tight to the Quran and the Sunnah of the Prophet Muhammad (pbuh). In order to achive this, it is our fundamental task to read and understand the ahadith first.
With the encouragement of our esteemed elders, this book that you are
holding has been written because of this fundamental duty and out of necessity. First, ahadith about certain topics are selected. We have compiled sayings
of our beloved Prophet (pbuh) related to practical side of Islam, faith, worship,
avoiding sins, calling to the true path, and serving in the way of Allah. These
topics are briefly explained with the help of fundamental sources under the
light of verses and other ahadith.
11
The selected hadith are taken from credible hadith books. Every hadith
is compared to its original form by cross checking it with its source. We have
paid special attention to their translations as much as we can in terms of being loyal to their originals and expressing the meaning by good usage of the
language.
While asking Allah the Almighty to forgive our mistakes and accept our
good deeds;
I would like to express my sincere thanks to first of all our honorable
teacher Osman Nuri TOPBA who suggested the writing of this work and provided every kind of support and help during the process;
To my honorable teachers Abdullah SERT, Ahmet TAGETREN, Mustafa ER, Prof. Dr. Ethem CEBECOLU, Ass. Prof. Dr. mer ELK, Dr.
dem ERGL and other teachers who put efforts in reviewing and revisions;
To my brothers Harun KIRKIL and kr Mutlu KARAKO;
Especially to asst. prof. Mustafa ZTRK, Sadettin EKNC and Muhammed Ali EMEL;
Furthermore, I sincerely thank to the directors of Altinoluk Magazine
who accurately published and distributed this book to its readers as a gift.2
May Our Lord turn all our efforts into continuous charity that are
suitable for His consent. May He grant us the opportunity to live as living
Qurans by holding on to the Sunnah of our Prophet (pbuh). May Allah
bless us with the intercession of His Messenger (pbuh) on the Day of Judgment under his umbrella!
Amen!
Dr. Murat KAYA
June, 2007
Sultantepe skdar
2.
12
Turkish version of this book was distributed by Altinoluk as a gift in 2007 to those who
subscribed.
:
:
.
1. Shabi narrates:
When Adi b. Hatim (r.a) came to Kufah, we went to visit him with a group
of jurists from Kufah. We said to him:
Would you mind telling us about the things that you heard from the
Prophet?
Upon this, Adi (r.a.) said:
I went to the Prophet. He told me:
O Adi b. Hatim, accept Islam and reach salvation!
I asked him:
What is Islam?
13
.
:
.
2. It is related that al-Bara said:
(In the Uhud War) a man who was wearing iron armor came to the Prophet and asked:
O the Messenger of Allah! Is it all right if I join the war now and convert
to Islam when the war is over?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
First convert to Islam first and then fight!
After converting to Islam, the man joined the war and was martyred.
Upon that, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
His action was little but his reward is great. (Bukhari, Jihad, 13; Ahmad, IV, 293)
14
: .
:
o ---------------------------------------------------------
it is to receive eternal bliss by gaining the consent of Allah. This could only be
possible by first accepting Islam and then following a lifestyle in accordance
with the limits of the Quran and Sunnah; because Islam is the beginning of
all works. 3 Going through all kinds of difficulty, trouble, and suffering, the
Prophet (pbuh) invited human beings to the straight path. For the salvation of
the entire world, he sent messengers to the rulers of the neighboring countries
inviting them to Accept Islam; Find Salvation. 4
Since converting to Islam is the fundamental condition for salvation, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) strongly wanted for a person to choose Islam and
became extremely happy for them if they find the straight path. For example,
nothing made him as happy as Abu Bakrs conversion to Islam. (Ibn Kathir, elBidaya, III, 80)
Again, when other servants of Allah such as Abu Dharr,5 Khalid b. Zayd,6
Hubayb b. Yasaf,7 and Rayhanah bint-i Amr8 found salvation by choosing Islam, signs of great happiness, good news, and smiles were seen on his face.
Adi b. Khatim (r.a.) expressed the happiness of our Master as:
When I became a Muslim, I saw the face of the Messenger of Allah brightened with great happiness. (Ahmad, IV, 378)
Another example regarding the importance of converting to Islam is that
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked from a man who came fully equipped to
fight at the most difficult moment of a war to convert to Islam before everything else. This is because, in order for our good deeds to mean something in
the sight of Allah being Muslim is the necessary condition. Otherwise, good
deeds do not benefit us in the Hereafter. For the good deeds done without
faith, only some kind of worldly benefits are given due to the justice and mercy
of Allah. (Muslim, Munafiqin, 57; Haythami, III, 111)
Islam is the Religion before Allah.9 If anyone desires a religion other than
Islam, it will never be accepted of him; and in the Hereafter he will be among
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
16
Tirmidhi, Iman, 8/2616; Ibn-i Majah, Fitan, 12; Ahmad, V, 231, 236, 237.
See Bukhari, Badul-vahy, 2; Jihad, 102; Cizye, 6; Ikrah, 2; Itisam, 18; Muslim, Jihad, 74.
Hakim, Mustadrak, III, 385/5459.
Ibn-i Kathir, Bidaya, III, 83.
Waqidi, Maghazi, I, 47.
Ibn-i Kathir, Bidaya, IV, 128.
Al-i Imran; 3:19.
o ---------------------------------------------------------
those who are disappointed. 10 This is because Allah has chosen Islam as the
religion for His servants. 11 Therefore, the salvation of humans will be only
through Islam.
One day, Umar (r.a.) saw Abu Talha sad. When he asked for the reason,
Talha (r.a.) said:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Verily, I know a phrase that whoever says it at the deathbed, it will surely
become a divine light for his book of deeds, and his body and soul will gain the
consent of Allah, will receive His mercy and find peace.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) passed away before I had a chance to ask
him what that phrase was. This is why I feel sad.
Upon that, Umar (r.a.) said:
I know that phrase. It is the phrase of testimony that there is no god but
Allah (La ilaha illallah) which Allahs (pbuh) Prophet wanted from his uncle
(Abu Talib) to utter it on his deathbed. And if there was another phrase better
than this phrase, he would ask his uncle to say it. (Ibn Majah, Adab, 54. Also see
Ahmad, I, 6)
17
10.
11.
12.
13.
o ---------------------------------------------------------
riage bond, or (the captives) whom their right hands possess, for (in their
case) they are free from blame. But those whose desires exceed those limits
are transgressors.
Those who faithfully observe their trusts and their covenants and who
(strictly) guard their prayers; these will be the heirs, who will inherit Paradise: they will dwell therein (forever). (Al-Muminun; 23:1-10) (Tirmidhi, Tafsir,
23/3173; Ahmad, I, 34; Hakim, I, 717/1961)
As a matter of fact, this essentially was the morality of the Prophet. Indeed, when a group of people asked Aisha the mother of believers:
O the Mother of Believers! What was the character of the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) like? and she answered:
His character was the Noble Quran.
Then she said to one of them:
You have read the chapter al-Muminun, havent you? Recite starting from
the verse The believers must (eventually) win through and keep reading!
When the person reciting the verses came to the tenth verse, Aisha (r.a.)
said:
That was the character of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh). (Hakim, II,
426/3481; Bukhari, Al-Adab al-Mufrad, no: 308)
Some of the characteristics mentioned in the Quran and the Sunnah about
those who found salvation can be listed as:
To believe in the Unseen, to be steadfast in prayer, to spend out of what
is provided for them, and to believe in the Books sent to prophets and the
Hereafter, (Al-Baqarah; 2:2-5)
19
To fulfill ones responsibilities to Allah and to perform good deeds, (AlHajj; 22/77)
To live a modest life and to pledge for ones sins, (Al-Nur; 24:31)
To purify ourselves from all kinds of spiritual sicknesses such as profanity and insurgency, (Al-Ala; 87:14; (Al-Shams; 91:9)
To follow the way of Prophet Muhammad, (Ahmad, II, 188)
To stay away from mischief. (Ahmad, II, 441)
Those who become Muslims by complying with these conditions and those
who are provided with sufficient daily bread and who accept it with contentment
find salvation and live a peaceful life both in this world and in the Hereafter.
Our fourth hadith expresses that Islam comes before everything else, and
the necessity of having sufficient permissible (halal) daily bread and a contented
heart for it comes right after that. At this point, regarding daily bread, the issue
of being halal is extremely important. That is because the religious and spiritual
lives depend on it. Neither worships nor prayers are accepted from those who
earn their lives through impermissible (haram) way. Such people deserve to
be punished by the fire. It is also extremely important to be satisfied with the
earned permissible daily bread once it is sufficient. Those who combine these
two aspects will find salvation. Acting greedily, neglecting to worship and to be
prepared for the hereafter, collecting money without differentiating between
halal and haram, and getting deceived by material goods is the worst disaster
which can happen to a human being. Such peoples hope for salvation would
be very slim. They must pull themselves together immediately and hold on the
prescription of salvation stated in the above mentioned hadith.
20
o ---------------------------------------------------------
For the believers who are blessed with Islam and live according to the
commands of Allah, there is only one important issue left, which is to pass
away with faith. Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Deeds are assessed according to their outcomes. (Bukhari, Riqaq, 33)
Ali (r.a.) said that:
To attain the whole benediction is to die in the state of Islamic belief.
(Baidawi, I, 201, [in the exegesis of Al-Baqarah; 2:150])
For this reason, one must try and pray to die complying with the command of Allah as O you who believe! Fear Allah as He should be feared, and
die not except in a state of Islam!14 As a matter of fact, since it is unknown
in what state someone will die, Muslims always live between fear and hope and
pray Allah for good endings. For example, under the tortures of the Pharaoh
of Egypt, the magicians who believed after witnessing the miracle of Moses
(pbuh) prayed saying:
Our Lord! Pour out on us patience and constancy, and take our souls
unto you as Muslims (who bow to Your will)!15
Joseph (a.s.) prayed as:
O my Lord! Take my soul (at death) as one submitting to Your will (as
a Muslim), and unite me with the righteous. 16
These are beautiful examples that Allah gives the believers. Our duty is
to find salvation by living according to Islam and dying in the state of Islam.
Some of the divine statements that guide us on this issue are:
O you who believe! If you will aid (the cause of) Allah, He will aid you,
and plant your feet firmly. (Muhammad; 47:7)
Do they not then earnestly seek to understand the Quran, or are their
hearts locked up by them? (Muhammad; 47:24)
O you who believe! Obey Allah, and obey the Apostle, and make not
vain your deeds! (Muhammad; 47:33)
21
14.
15.
16.
B. DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
: .
:
6. Abdullah b. Muawiyah reported the Prophet (pbuh) as saying:
22
DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------
There are three things that he who performs them will feel the taste of faith
(These are): To worship Allah alone and to believe in that there is no god but Allah; and to pay zakat willingly out of his property every year. Not to choose the
aged animals, nor animals suffering from itch or ailing to give as alms, but to
choose animals of medium quality, for Allah did not demand from you the best of
your animals, nor did He command you to give the animals of worst quality.(Abu
Dawud, Kitab al-Zakat, 5/1582)
:
.
- -
...
.
:
.( )
Explanations:
The value of Islam and faith is unquestionable. However, there are levels
of them as well. While some people try to perform their duties at a minimum
level, others try to perform more than what is required in the best way with
sincerity, love, and excitement. Such believers are the ones who feel the delight
of Islam and faith in their hearts. Their hearts are satisfied and their faith has
got stronger. They take great pleasure and delight from their good deeds. They
24
DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------
willingly fulfill all the commands of Allah and His Messenger with love. For the
sake of Islam they do not hold back from difficulties. They place the content of
Allah and His Messenger before everything else. They do not exchange their
religion for worldly benefits. They think of the Hereafter before thinking of
this world.
Their excitement primarily comes from their love for Allah and His Messenger more than for their mothers, fathers, children, all humanity, wealth, and
even their own lives. As a matter of fact when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
asked even for a small thing, his Companions, who were at the peak of this
excitement, used to respond saying O Messenger of Allah! My mother, my father, and my life be sacrificed for you. In fact, this is the kind of love preferred
by Allah the Almighty.
It is stated in the Quran:
Say: If it be that your fathers, your sons, your brothers, your mates, or
your kindred; the wealth that ye have gained; the commerce in which you
fear a decline: or the dwellings in which you delight are dearer to you than
Allah, or His Messenger, or the striving in His cause; then wait until Allah
brings about His decision: and Allah guides not the rebellious. (Al-Tawbah;
9:24)
When a person loves Allah and His Messenger, he loves the things related
to them as well, for the lover loves everything about his love. When he feels
such love deep inside his heart, doing things for his love becomes easier. The
good deeds that make us earn the consent of Allah and His Messenger turn
into pleasures and are performed with delight. Other creatures that are loved
now become loved only because of Allah. The hatred and anger is now felt only
for the sake of Allah. Everything in this world gets measured in terms of earning the consent of Allah.
Muslims who feel the delight of faith consider everything that would take
them away from Allah and His Messenger more burning and painful than fire.
They become fully aware that having faith leads one to Paradise and disbelief
leads to Hell. Hence, they strongly stay away from things that take them away
from religion and Allahs consent. They spend all their efforts to quit all the
sins and being unawareness. As a matter of fact, every sin means getting a step
further away from Paradise. As sins increase, the distance between paradise
and the man becomes impassable
25
Every believer who realizes these facts holds on tight to the acts that bring
him closer to Allah and His Messenger. He becomes sensitive about his worships. With excitement he fulfills his worships such as praying five times a day
or fasting which are considered difficult by some. Especially, every year he
pays his zakat (almsgiving), which is the hardest act of worship upon our carnal selves. He pays it feeling significance of this worship and thanking the poor.
He would not feel any hardship from this; in contrast, he feels contentment.
This state makes the believer a traveler to bliss in both worlds with his zakat,
alms, and other donations.
As it can be understood from our second hadith, a believer who wants to
feel the delight of having faith should not act reluctant when giving zakat. It is
best if he enthusiastically gives from the best of his wealth, for it is stated in the
following verse that
By no means shall you attain righteousness unless you give (freely) of
that which you love; and whatever you give, of a truth Allah knows it well.
(Al-i-Imran; 3:92)
If one cannot do this, one should at least give out of his wealths medium
quality instead of the worst part of it. As in everything, a believer should act
with piety and deep comprehension and should not put his family in a financially difficult position by spending his money unwisely.
Since a believer sees this world as the field of the hereafter, he must fulfill
all of his deeds for the sake of Allah and should realize that this world is temporary and very short. When one has this consciousness, some acts that seem
hard to others become very easy for him. By forgiving people, he would not
confront with anyone even he is right, he would not act under the control of his
desires and do mischievous tricks even under very difficult conditions.
Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) said that:
Whoever has the following three characteristics has the delight of faith:
Avoiding confrontation even he is right, not lying even if it is a joke, and
knowing that the things that Allah wished for him will surely happen to him
and the things that Allah did not wish for him will never happen to him. (Haythami, I, 55. Also see. Ahmad, V, 317)
A believer, who feels the delight of faith in his heart due to his love for
Allah, Islam, and His Messenger, would never have a fancy for foreign views,
26
DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------
ideas, and ideologies. He does not get carried away with the temporary and
worldly winds blowing from right and left. That is because, he knows that his
faith is superior to all the other faiths and he lives with confidence and peace
that comes from knowing that. His soul is tranquil and his heart is full of love.
For this reason, he is not pleased with any view or opinion other than Islam.
He practices his faith with no shame, and does not pay attention to anyones
criticism and blaming on this matter.
Even if someone who reaches this level of faith sometimes may act wrong
by falling into heedlessness, he immediately pulls himself together and realizes
what it takes to be contented from Allah, Islam, and the Prophet and does that.
The following incident is a good example of this:
Once Umar (r.a.) came to the Prophet with some pages from Torah in his
hands and said:
O Messenger of Allah! These are some pages from Torah. I got them
from a friend of mine who is a member of the Sons of Zuraik.
The color of Prophets face has suddenly changed. Upon that Abdullah b.
Zaid (r.a.) said to Umar:
Did Allah make you lose your mind? Dont you see how the face of the
Messenger of Allah has changed?
Umar, who understood his mistake, said:
We are contented with Allah as our Lord, Islam as our religion, Muhammad (pbuh) as our prophet, and Quran as our guide.
Upon that, the Messenger of Allah became happy, his sorrow disappeared,
and then he said the following:
I swear to Allah, in whose Hand my soul is, if Moses (pbuh) were with you
and you were to leave me and to follow him, you would make a grave mistake.
Because you are my destiny among the peoples of the prophets and I am your
destiny among the prophets. (Haythami, I, 174)
What a great destiny! It is so great that we are unable to thank for it properly.
The main characteristics of those believers who experienced the delight of
faith are mentioned in the chapter al-Anfal as follows:
27
For, Believers are those who, when Allah is mentioned, feel a tremor
in their hearts, and when they hear His signs rehearsed, find their faith
strengthened, and put (all) their trust in their Lord; Who establish regular
prayers and spend (freely) out of the gifts We have given them for sustenance. (Al-Anfal; 8:2-3)
Some other characteristics of those servants who experienced serenity
and tranquility are listed in chapter al-Furqan as:
And the servants of (Allah) Most Gracious are those who walk on the
earth in humility, and when the ignorant address them, they say, Peace!;
Those who spend the night in adoration of their Lord prostrate and standing. (Al-Furqan; 25:63-64)
Those who, when they are admonished with the Signs of their Lord,
droop not down at them as if they were deaf or blind. (Al-Furqan; 25:73)
One of the most important conditions of experiencing the delight of faith
is turning away from sins. Allah blesses the hearts of those believers who know
how to stay away from sins that may seem sweet and nice but in reality are
nothing but poison and dirt with such a faith that they experience its indescribable delight in their hearts while they are still in this world. Thus, they
would not only protect themselves from the poisonous arrows of devil, but also
earn spiritual rewards and beautify and strengthen their faith.
In one of his sayings on this subject, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever notices a beautiful woman and turns his eyes away, Allah blesses
him with the spiritual rewards of an act of worship of which gives delight that he
feelsin his heart. (Ahmad, V, 264; Haythami, VIII, 63)
The following hadith showing Allahs mercy to His servants contains the
good news for believers who avoid sins:
Whoever intends to do an evil deed and does not do it. Allah blesses him
with the reward of a good deed. (Bukhari, Riqaq, 31; Muslim, Iman, 207, 259. Also see
Bukhari, Tawhid 35; Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 6/3073)
After a Muslim experiences the delight of faith by avoiding sins, continuing his worships, and attaining piety, now he must exert effort to preserve and
develop his faith. As the Messenger of Allah advised, this can be possible, apart
from the obligatory acts of worship, by performing supererogatory acts of wor28
DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------
ship, serving in the way of Allah and reciting His names and attributes and
remembering Him. As a matter of fact, in our fifth hadith, the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) advises to renew and strengthen our faith by saying La ilahe illallah. In the Hereafter, thanks to the intercession of the Prophet (pbuh), the
happiest ones will be the ones who sincerely say La ilahe illallah. (Bukhari, Ilm,
33; Riqaq, 51)
The heart of those who can reflect Kalima al-Tawhid (La ilahe illallah) in
every aspect of their lives will be blessed with closeness to Allah the Almighty.
According to the sayings of the Prophet, the fundamental conditions to
reach the delight of faith are affection, compliance, and submission. When we
carefully examine them, we can realize that these are also the fundamentals
upon which our religion is based. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) expressed
this as:
Polytheism is less noticeable than the movements of a black ant in the darkness of a night on the hill of Safa. The least form of polytheism is to love something
that is cruel and hating something that is just. Is religion something other than
love and hate? As a matter of fact, Allah the Almighty says:
Say: If you do love Allah, Follow me: Allah will love you and forgive
you and your sins: For Allah is Oft-Forgiving, Most Merciful. (Al-i-Imran;
3:31), (Hakim, II, 319/3148)
wards him/her. This may demean the importance of having faith in the eyes of
people and may cause them to be influenced by the wrong behaviors of that
disbeliever.
On the other hand, in order to experience the delight of faith, the seeds
of faith must spring in our hearts. Drawing our attention to this, Allah the
Almighty says:
Allah has endeared the Faith to you, and has made it beautiful in
your hearts, and He has made hateful to you Unbelief, wickedness, and rebellion: such indeed are those who walk in righteousness. (Al-Hujurat; 49:7)
As it can be understood from the verse, having knowledge is not enough
for having faith and for experiencing its delight. Indeed, Allah gives some of
the scholars of the sons of Israel as an example and compares them to a donkey which carries huge tomes. (Al-Jumah; 62:5)
So, one must engrave the knowledge into his heart and shape his acts accordingly. For this in turn training of the heart is a must. At the same time, the
heart must be directed towards supreme virtues. When the heart reaches such
a state, Allah the Almighty teaches him the things that cannot be learned from
the lines of books.
In order for a desire to turn into actions and behaviors, one should have
love in addition to having knowledge. For this reason, love is the source of
religion and the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked for the delight of faith from
Allah the Almighty saying:
O Allah! Make us love the faith, and beautify our hearts with faith. Show
us disbelief, sin, and disobedience as evils. Make us among those who have found
the truth! (Ahmad, III, 424)
In the Age of Bliss (Age of Prophet Muhammad), faith and love were
merged and rooted in the hearts of the Companions. In this way, they became
the best generation of all generations, a golden generation. The friends of Allah
who have followed their footsteps felt the delight of faith in their hearts, too.
Indeed, Junaid Baghdadi said:
For the pious people, the joy of praying at night is more delightful than
the entertainment of ignorant people.
Ibrahim b. Atham said:
30
DELIGHTFULNESS OF FAITH
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------
I swear to God, we are in such a delight that if kings knew about it, they
would declare war on us to get it from us.
In summary, in order to experience the delight of faith, one must feel love
properly and correctly. This is one of the fundamental principles of Islam.
31
1. Intention
:
:
: .
:
32
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
.
:
12. Abu Huraira reported Allahs Messenger (may peace be upon him) as
saying:
33
Verily Allah does not look to your faces and your wealth but He looks to
your heart and to your deeds. (Muslim, Birr, 34. Also see Ibn Majah, Al-Zuhd, 9)
Explanations
Intention means to be determined and to decide by heart about something
and to know why it is done. In other words, intention manifests what the goal
of an action is and what is meant by doing it. So, the validity of actions and
deeds depends on intentions, and they are valued accordingly.
Since intention is a matter of heart and related to how we feel and think,
it is not necessary to say it out loud. On the other hand, the intention is not
accepted if the heart does not go along with what the tongue spells out as the
intention.
Since Allah knows what is hidden deep in the hearts, the issue of intention
closes the doors of finding excuses for those who go after invalid beliefs, harm
others, and cheat. Therefore, everybody should be careful about their intentions and should know that they cannot fool Allah.
Intention is so important that sometimes a custom may turn into worship and sometimes worships may become a custom. For example, a Muslim
who practices his profession is considered as worshipping at the same time if
he thinks to satisfy the needs of his family and raise them with the manners of
Islam by earning through permissible means. If someone thinks of protecting
his health while eating so that he can better perform his acts of worship, he also
earns divine rewards because of his intention. Those who act with good intentions can be compared to a hunter who hunts two birds with one stone. As a
matter of fact, it is said in the noble verse that:
To any that desires the tilth of the Hereafter, We give increase in his
tilth, and to anyone that desires the tilth of this world, We grant somewhat
thereof, but he has no share or lot in the Hereafter. (Al-Shura; 62:20)
So, whoever performs his religious duties sincerely just to earn divine rewards, Allah not only blesses him with even more divine rewards, but also
favors him in this world and bestows blessings to his daily bread. Furthermore,
if the wealth that Allah has bestowed is spent in accordance to His will, this
can also be turned into benefits in the Hereafter. Those who only work for this
world cannot earn benefits for the hereafter and can only get what his predes34
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
tined share is from this world. This shows how the same action is judged and
valued differently according to the actors intentions.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave some examples on this subject and
said:
I shall tell you something which you must remember well. The world
exclusively belongs to one of four kinds of people:
There is a servant [of Allah] upon whom Allah the Almighty and Exalted
bestowed property and knowledge. He fears Allah because of his knowledge and
property, thus he gives charity out of them. By means of them, he seeks to protect
himself from His Lords displeasure and strengthen his family ties, knowing that
Allah the Almighty and Exalted has rights over his property and knowledge. This
servant is truly at the best of stations.
There is a servant [of Allah] upon whom Allah the Almighty and Exalted
has bestowed knowledge but not property, who is truthful in his intention and
says: If I had property, I would do the deeds of so-and-so. His status is according to his intention, and he earns rewards like the one who gives his property as
charity.
There is a servant [of Allah] upon whom Allah the Almighty and Exalted bestowed property but not knowledge, who gropes aimlessly with his property without knowledge, not seeking to protect himself from His Lords displeasure with it,
nor strengthening family ties with it, not recognizing that Allah the Almighty and
Exalted owns rights over that property. This is truly the worst of stations.
There is a servant [of Allah] upon whom Allah the Almighty and Exalted bestowed neither property nor knowledge, who says: If I had property, I would use
it to do the [evil] deeds of So-and-so. His status is according to his intention, and
the burden of each of the two is exactly the same. (Tirmidhi, Zuhd, 17/2325; Ahmad,
IV, 231; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 21)
comes to our help and may bring us many divine rewards. As a matter of fact,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The intention of a believer is greater than his acts (Haythami, I, 61; Suyuti,
Jami, II, 194)
Also, it has been reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said that
whoever sought martyrdom with sincerity will be ranked by Allah to be among
the martyrs even if he dies in his bed. (Muslim, Kitab al-Imara, 156, 157)
The following story about Amr b. Leys, one of the rulers and heroes of
Khorasan is an example on this subject. After Amr b. Leys passed away, a pious
man saw him in his dream. The following dialogue took place between them:
How did Allah treat you?
Allah has forgiven me.
For which of your deeds has Allah forgiven you?
One day, I was on top of a hill. When I looked down to my soldiers, I was
pleased with the number of soldiers. I thought:
I wish that I were alive in the time of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), so
I could help him Due to my intention and desire, Almighty Allah has forgiven me. (Qadi Iyaz, Shifa, II, 28-29)
This story indicates how important intention and sincerity are.
On the other hand, a believer with good intentions must avoid being with
evil people and taking part in their bad acts. That is because evil acts are like
contagious diseases. Joining the group ill-natured people and sinners increases
their numbers and influences others to join them as well. Some people who see
right-minded people with bad people may think that their actions are permissible or righteous.
Even though humans will be treated in the hereafter according to their
intentions, the good people close to evildoers will also get affected by their torment. As a matter of fact, in the second hadith we are informed about how a
group of good people who join a group of bad people in order to do some trade
or travel more securely would sink into the ground because of the bad intentions of evil people with whom they travel.
36
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
As it can be understood from this hadith, troubles and disasters are not
only for the evildoers but also for the heedless who allow evil acts to happen
to them. It is natural for helpless people who do not have any mistake to be
amongst them. Some believers who are in pain because of others, even though
they do not have any sins or mistakes, will receive great rewards from Allah in
the Hereafter.
While pointing out the importance of being sincere, the criterion which
was presented in the third hadith is also a very important principle for us. According to this, when dealing with the servants of Allah, we must treat them
in accordance with their intentions and actions rather than their looks, words,
and wealth. That is because the heart is at the center of everything. If the heart
is not candid and pure, the outward appearance and worldly blessings do not
mean anything. It is said in the noble verse that:
It is not your wealth nor your sons, that will bring you nearer to Us in
degree: but only those who believe and work righteousness. These are the
ones for whom there is a multiplied Reward for their deeds, while secure
they (reside) in the dwellings on high! (Al-Saba; 34: 37)
In this regard, we must pay attention to the warnings of the Prophet Muhammad (pbuh):
Shall I inform you about the inmates of Paradise? Every meek person who is
considered to be humble and if they were to adjure in the name of Allah, Allah would
certainly fulfill it. (Bukhari, Iman (Faith), 9; Tafsir, 68/1; Adab, 61; Muslim, Jannah, 47)
There are such innocuous, obedient, pious servants of Allah who keep
themselves away from others. These people are the ones that Allah the Almighty
really loves. They do not get looked for when they are not present (since they are
not attached to importance, their absence does not get noticed), and when they
are present, they do not get recognized and invited to meetings. Their hearts are
the bright candles of the right path. They can deal with all kinds of difficult conditions and misfortunes.17 (Ibn Majah, Kitab al-Fitan, 16)
The last sentence of the noble hadith is also understood as they are found in every caved
in house and ruin. In thise case, the Messenger of Allah (p.b.u.h.) is stating that their
residences are simple and plain.
37
17.
:
.
14. Muadh b. Anas narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever gives for the sake of Allah, forbids for the sake of Allah, loves for
the sake of Allah, hates for the sake of Allah, and helps bachelors to get married
38
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
for the sake of Allah, will make his faith perfect. (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 60/2521; Ahmad,
III, 438. Also see Abu-Dawud, Kitab Al-Sunnah, 15/4681)
:
:
.
15. Ibn Abbas (r.a.) reported Allahs Messenger (pbuh) as saying:
If anyone wants to have his deeds widely publicized, Allah will publicize
(his humiliation). And if anyone makes a hypocritical display (of his deeds) Allah will make a display of him. (Muslim, Al-Zuhd, 47-48. Also see Bukhari, al-Raqaiq, 36;
Ahkam, 9; Tirmidhi, al-Zuhd, 48; Ibn Majah, al-Zuhd, 21)
Explanations:
Sincerity (ikhlas) means cleansing and purifying the heart, observing Allahs contentedness in all actions and words by protecting oneself from all spiritual illnesses, and staying away from hypocrisy, the act of showing off, and arrogance.18 Therefore, being sincere is a feeling hidden in our hearts. According
to Junayd Al-Baghdadi, sincerity is so secret that an angel cannot record it into
the rewards, and Satan cannot mess it up, and the inner selves of human beings
cannot be spoiled because of it since they dont know what it is. (Sarraj, Luma, p.
290; Kushayri, al-Risalah, p. 446)
39
18.
Allah the Almighty informs us that He will not accept deeds that are performed without sincerity and not for the sake of Him no matter how plentiful
they are. When performed sincerely, even a few good deeds may be enough for
us. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) stated this in one of his
sayings as:
Be sincere in your religion! If you do this, even a few good deeds can be
enough for your salvation. (Hakim, IV, 341/7844)
Allahs servant should then realize that sincerity is like a soul in his body
and should build his life on the basis of being sincere by performing all of his
acts only for the sake of Allah. One must give what he gives for the sake of Allah as well as hold what he holds for the sake of Allah; one must love what he
loves for the sake of Allah as well as hate what he hates for the sake of Allah;
and one must act thinking about the consent of Allah when he performs a good
deed or guides others to any good deeds. One should turn this understanding
into his natural state and be sincere to Allah, to His book, to His Messenger,
to the Quran, to the leaders of Muslim believers, and to all Muslims. (Muslim,
Kitab Al-Iman, 95)
The faith of a believer who reaches this level of spirituality becomes perfect, and he starts to experience the delight of Islam. With the perfection of
faith, sincerity flourishes in his heart, and he finds salvation. (Ahmad, V, 147)
There are many benefits of sincerity:
First of all, it protects us from going astray by the tricks of Satan19 and it
guides us awayfrom the Hell fire.20
By summoning the help of our creator, it keeps evil and adultery away. 21
As a matter of fact, Allahs Messenger (pbuh) informed us that Allah helps the
followers of Muhammad due to the supplications, prayers, and sincere feelings
of the weak. (Nasai, Jihad, 43/3176)
Sincerity elevates the level of acts of worship and makes them more valuable in the sight of Allah. In many narrations, while referring to the divine
rewards of worship and supplications,
19.
20.
21.
40
Al-Hijr; 15:39-40
Al-Saffat; 37:40
Yusuf; 12:24
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to ask for sincerity for himself and
his family from Allah and pray saying:
23.
See Bukhari, Ilm, 49; Daawat, 2; Muslim, Salah, 12; Abu Dawud, Salah, 36/527; Tirmidhi,
Fazail al-jihad, 19/1653; Ahmad, I, 63; IV, 16.
Bukhari, Iman, 25, 28, 35, 37, 41; Salah, 45, 46; Hebah, 35; Tibb, 31; Muslim, Imarah, 117.
41
22.
In the Noble Quran, we are informed that other prophets were sincere
servants of Allah as well.24 That is because they did not seek anything in their
message and mission but did it only for the sake of Allah and refused all proposals made to them to have them give up their cause.
Since sincerity is known only to Allah, Allah is the only one who can compensate it. Allahs compensation is priceless and no one can estimate its value.
Opposite of sincerity, i.e. insincerity (showing-off), is a big disaster for the
Hereafter. Associating others to actions that should be done only for the sake
of Allah means that you are notsatisfied with Allahs knowing and His contentedness and are hoping to get others appreciation. This is a sickness of heart
and a weakness of faith that wastes the divine rewards of the good acts. As a
matter of fact, since Allah knows everything in our hearts, it is impossible to
hide any intention and thought from Him. The following saying of the Prophet
is significant in terms of explaining the disappointment of insincere people in
the hereafter:
The first of men (whose case) will be decided on the Day of Judgment will
be a man who died as a martyr. He shall be brought (before the Judgment Seat).
Allah will make him recount His blessings which He had bestowed upon him and
he will recount them and admit having enjoyed them in his life.
Allah the Almighty will say:
What did you do to requite these blessings?
He will say:
I fought for You until I died as a martyr.
Allah the Almighty will say:
24.
42
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
You have told a lie. You fought so that you might be called a brave warrior
and you were called so. Then orders will be passed against him, and he will be
dragged with his face downward and cast into Hell.
Then there will be brought forward a man who acquired knowledge and imparted it (to others) and recited the Quran. He will be brought forward and Allah
will make him recount His blessings and he will recount them and admit having
enjoyed them in his lifetime.
Then will Allah ask:
What did you do (to requite these blessings)?
He will say:
I acquired knowledge and disseminated it and recited the Quran seeking
Your pleasure.
Allah will say:
You have told a lie! You acquired knowledge so that you might be called a
scholar, and you recited the Quran so that it might be said: He is a Qari (good
reader) and such has been said. Then orders will be passed against him and he
shall be dragged with his face downward and cast into the Fire.
Then there will be brought a man whom Allah had made abundantly rich
and had granted every kind of wealth. He will be brought and Allah will make
him recount His blessings and he will recount them and admit having enjoyed
them in his lifetime.
Allah will (then) ask:
What have you done (to requite these blessings)?
He will say:
I spent money in every cause in which You wished that it should be spent.
Allah the Almighty will say:
You are lying. You did so that it might be said about you He is a generous
fellow and so it was said. Then Allah will pass orders and he will be dragged
with his face downward and thrown into Hell. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 152)
As it is seen, being insincere drags someone to the foolishness of exchanging the sake of Allah and the divine rewards of the Hereafter with the insincere
43
applauses of people. In the end, neither the contentedness of Allah nor the
satisfaction of people will have been earned. This is because, Allah makes the
intention of those who act insincerely known to others and disgraces him in
front of others by belittling him.25 When the insincerity of someone becomes
known, the hearts turn away from him. On the other hand, by letting others
know the act of a person to others, Allah degrades the rewards of the acts done
for the worldly benefits also.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah the Most High and Exalted said: I am the One, the One Who does
not stand in need of a partner. If anyone does anything in which he associates
anyone else with Me, I shall abandon him with the one whom he associates with
Allah. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Zuhd, 46)
In other words, as it is written insincere humans are told to get the rewards of their acts not from Allah but from those to whom they showed off
their actions to. However, receiving anything from humans is most of the time
impossible. Even if it is possible, it would be next to nothing compared to Allahs rewards.
For this reason, the Companions of the Messenger of Allah used to pay
attention to sincerity and be very careful about staying away from insincerity.
The following advice of Abu Huraira is enough to prove how far the Companions of the Prophet lived from being insincere:
When someone fasts, he should tide up himself so that the trace of the
fast is not seen on him. (Bukhari, Al-Adabul Mufrad, no:1303)
25.
44
: .
:
16. Abu Darda (r.a) said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying:
If anyone travels on a road in search of knowledge, Allah will lead him to
one of the roads of Paradise. The angels will lower their wings on the one who seeks
knowledge because they are pleased with him. The inhabitants of the heavens and
the Earth and the fish in the deep waters will ask forgiveness for the learned man.
The superiority of the learned man over the devout is like that of the moon, on the
night when it is full, over the rest of the stars. The learned are the heirs of the Prophets, and the Prophets leave neither dinar nor dirham, leaving only knowledge, and
he who takes it takes an abundant portion. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Ilm, 1/3641; Tirmidhi,
Ilm, 19/2682. Also see. Bukhari, Ilm, 10; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 17)
45
: .
:
17. Abu Umamah (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The superiority of the learned man over the devout is like my superiority
over the most inferior among you (in good deeds).
Then the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) added:
For sure Allah, His angels, and all those in heavens and earths, even the
ants in their holes and the fish in the water say blessings on those who instruct
people well. (Tirmidhi, Ilm, 19/2685)
.
:
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
other one was working. One day, the brother who worked came to the Prophet
to complain about his brother.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Maybe because of him you are able to find a job and earn your living.
(Tirmidhi, Zuhd, 33/2345)
.
:
19. Abu Said Al-Khudri (r.a) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Until the final place that he reaches becomes Paradise, a believer should
not get satisfied with hearing the good (knowledge) of any kind. (Tirmidhi, Ilm,
19/2686)
Explanations:
Ilm (knowledge) actually is an attrbute of Allah the Almighty and is figuratively used for human beings. Servants of Allah gain virtue and value as
much as they are bestowed with shares from Allahs attribute of knowledge.
There is no other system that gives importance to knowledge as much as
Islam does. In the Holy Quran, the term ilm (knowledge) and related terms
are repeated hundreds of times. It is asked from humans to know ones Lord,
to learn Quran and Sunnah, and to acquire the knowledge which will bring
happiness in this world and the Hereafter. Praising those with knowledge, it is
stated in the Quran that:
Allah will rise up, to (suitable) ranks (and degrees), those of you who
believe and who have been granted (mystic) Knowledge. And Allah is wellacquainted with all ye do. (Al-Mujadilah; 58:11)
47
Those truly fear Allah, among His Servants, who have knowledge: for
Allah is Exalted in Might, Oft-Forgiving. (Al-Fatir; 35:28)
And such are the Parables We set forth for mankind, but only those
understand them who have knowledge. (Al-Ankabut; 29:43)
Allah has commanded the Prophet Muhammad to pray to advance his
knowledge only, and He did not command him to pray to advance or increase
anything else.
In another noble verse it is expressed that:
The Messengers of Allah did not bequeath material goods but rather they
left knowledge. They used their own wealth for the benefit of their followers.
Muslim scholars worked to get this heritage, and even traveled for months in
order to hear one saying of the Prophet from its first source. They turned the
following saying of the Messenger of Allah into their principle:
48
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
The word of wisdom is the lost property of the believer, so wherever he finds
it he has a better right to it.26 Our scholars who regarded acquiring knowledge
and teaching it to others as the most valuable way of charity27 advanced their
knowledge and transmitted it to us by bearing many difficulties.
Those with knowledge are not only useful to themselves but also to others.
As humans need food to survive, they need knowledge to practice their religion and find salvation in the hereafter. That is because, the quality of worships
and servitude depend on ones knowledge. The spiritually dead hearts can revive with the words of scholars. Allahs Messenger (pbuh) advised believers to
join the meetings of scholars and said:
Luqman Hakim said to his son: Be in the meetings of scholars (and Gnostics)! Listen to the word of the wise! For, just as Allah the Almighty brings the
dead earth to life by rain, He brings the dead heart to life by the divine light of
wisdom. (Haythami, I, 125)
When scholars guide people to goodness and good deeds, they also receive divine rewards from the good deeds of those people. Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever teaches knowledge receives divine rewards when this knowledge is
put into practice, and nothing diminishes from the divine rewards of the one who
actually performed the deed. (Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 20)
Like humans, other creatures also benefit from the knowledge of scholars. As a matter of fact, due to good manners that people learn from scholars,
humans act with compassion, mercy, and love towards all creatures. Thanks to
this, all creatures find peace, and blessings rain down on the earth. So, all creatures pray for scholars and ask from Allah to forgive them. Even angels show
respect, treat them modestly, protect and help those who seek knowledge.
Allah makes the works of those servants who seek knowledge in order to
serve Islam and humans easier and bestow their daily bread from unexpected
venues. Allah also gives rewards both in this world and in the hereafter to those
who help believers seeking knowledge. Maybe people who work for their living
get blessed abundantly because of their help to those who seek knowledge for
the sake of Allah.
Tirmidhi, Ilm, 19/2687; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 15.
Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 20.
49
26.
27.
In our fourth hadith, knowledge is defined as a good deed guiding humans to Paradise.
Knowledge is the best goodness since it teaches us the deeds that will bring
us closer to Allah the Almighty. Therefore, an intelligent believer would not
quit seeking knowledge and putting it into practice until he gets into Paradise.
He realizes that this is the path which will take someone to Paradise. He knows
that knowledge is a huge blessing needed at all times.
Indeed, Abdullah b. Mesud (r.a.) advised:
Before it goes extinct, cling to knowledge. Its extinction means the disappearance of scholars. Cling to knowledge, because you never know when you
might need it (Darimi, Muqaddimah, 19)
Ignorance is the beginning of all evil and fouls. Even disbelief and polytheism are caused by ignorance. In this respect, Allah said:
so be not you amongst those who are swayed by ignorance (and impatience)! (Al-Anam; 6:35)
turn away from the ignorant. (Al-Araf; 7:199)
However, it is very important to note that the knowledge mentioned in
the Quran and sayings of the Prophet are primarily the knowledge of Allah,
His verses, the religion, and the hereafter and it is the Gnostic knowledge. In
other words, it is to understand the truth. This knowledge takes humans from
the effect to the cause. Other material sciences such as physics and chemistry
also bring us closer to Allah when they are learned and taught in a healthy way.
Other sciences that fill our brains but do not help us realize the realities of the
universe and that do not cover anything beyond the concrete and tangible beings of this world are not considered knowledge. In other words, knowing is
not injecting some information into our brains, but rather trying to solve the
secrets and mysteries of the universe.
Allah describes those who know as:
Is one who worships devoutly during the hour of the night prostrating
himself or standing (in adoration), who takes heed of the Hereafter, and who
places his hope in the Mercy of his Lord - (like one who does not)? Say: Are
those equal, those who know and those who do not know? It is those who are
endued with understanding that receive admonition. (Al-Zumar; 39:9)
50
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
According to this verse, those who know are the ones who worship at
night, who prostrate and stand up, who think about the hereafter, and who
hope for the mercy of Allah. Those who do not live as described in this verse
are the ones who do not know even if they have the knowledge.
2. Beneficial Knowledge (Ilm)
:
.
.
:
20. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said that:
O Allah! Make what You taught me useful for me and teach me knowledge
that will be useful to me and advance me in my knowledge. (Tirmidhi, Daawat,
128/3599; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 23; Hakim, I, 690/1879)
: .
:
.
21. Zaid b. Arkam narrated that the messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to
pray as:
O Allah, I seek refuge in You from the knowledge that does not benefit, from
the heart that does not entertain the fear (of Allah), from the soul that does not
feel contented and from the supplication that is not responded. (Muslim, Kitab alDhikr, 73. Also see. Nesai, Istiazah, 13, 65)
51
.
:
22. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The similitude of a person who joins a scholarly gathering and listens to
words of wisdom, but then narrates the bad parts of what he heard to his friends
is the following:
A person comes to a shepherd and says:
O shepherd, give a sheep from your herd to me for me to sacrifice.
The shepherd says:
Go, get the best one and bring it to me!
The man goes and picks the dog among the huge herd. (Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 15;
Ahmad, II, 353, 405, 508; Baihaqi, Shuab, II, 268; Haythami, I, 128)
Explanations:
First of all, a Muslim tries to benefit from his knowledge and puts it into
practice. Then, he tries to acquire beneficial knowledge that will help him to
continue a life which can help him be a good servant of Allah and gain His
contentedness. He also prays to Allah to bless him with such knowledge and
advance his knowledge.
The best indicator of benefitting from ones knowledge is paying extra attention to commands of religion with devotion. Those who benefit from their
knowledge put their knowledge into practice and live a pious life because they
are afraid of divine torment.
As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
52
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
For sure I am the best in piety (taqwa) to Allah and I know Him the best!
(Bukhari, Iman, 13; Adab, 72)
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
it is possible to pick one of the hundreds of sheep in the herd. That dog will
soon bite or even tear him into pieces. In order words, that person picked the
hardest and most harmful way.
Another important issue is that the person who acquires useful knowledge must share his knowledge with others. This is because the important thing
is to spread the knowledge by explaining and to ensure others have access to
it as well. It is a big sin to hide theological information that everyone should
know. Those who do this will have to face the divine torment in the Hereafter.
It is expressed in the Quran that:
Those who conceal the clear (Signs) We have sent down, and the Guidance, after We have made it clear for the people in the Book, on them shall
be Allahs curse, and the curse of those entitled to curse. (Al-Baqarah; 2:159)
The warning of the Prophet on this issue is as follows:
He who is asked about something he knows and conceals it will have a
bridle of fire put on him on the Day of Resurrection. (Abu Dawud, Ilm, 9/3658. Also
see Tirmidhi, Ilm, 3/2649; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 24)
On the other hand, man should not acquire knowledge only to gain worldly benefits and satisfy himself. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If anyone acquires knowledge of things by which Allahs contentedness is sought,
but acquires it only to get some worldly advantage, he will not experience even the
scent of Paradise. (Abu Dawud, Ilm, 12/3664. Also see Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 23)
Such a person acts insincerely and anticipates the rewards of his efforts
not from Allah but from others. These rewards are given in this world, so he
will not receive anything for it in the Hereafter.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following about those who acquire knowledge for anything other than Allahs contentedness:
If anyone acquires knowledge only to discuss it with scholars, to debate with
the scoundrels, and to gain peoples appreciation, Allah will put him into Hell.
(Tirmidhi, Ilm, 6/2654; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 23)
If anyone acquires knowledge for anything other than Allah, or wants anything else other than Allah with his knowledge, he should prepare for his place in
the fire! (Tirmidhi, Ilm, 6/2655; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 23)
55
:
:
.
23. Uthama b. Zaid (r.a.) narrated that he heard the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) saying:
A man will be brought on the Day of Resurrection and thrown in Hell-Fire
and his intestines will pour forth in Hell and he will go round along with them,
as an ass goes round the mill stone. The denizens of Hell will gather round him
and say:
O, so and so, what has happened to you? Were you not enjoining us to do
what was reputable and forbid us to do what was disreputable? He will say:
Of course, it is so; I used to enjoin (upon people) to do what was reputable
but did not practice it myself. I had been forbidding people to do what was disreputable, but practiced it myself. (Muslim, Zuhd, 51. Also see Bukhari, Bad al-khalk, 10;
Ahmad, V, 205-209)
56
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
:
.
:
25. It is reported that Abu Barza al-Aslami (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
No one can move on the Day of Judgment until he is asked about his life and
how he spent it, about his knowledge and what he did with it, about his wealth
57
and how he earned it and how he spent it, and about his health and how he wore
off his body. (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 1/2417)
Explanations:
The knowledge is not a virtue in and of itself, but it is a mean to advance
humans to more lofty levels. The real virtue is putting the knowledge into practice. Knowledge that is not practiced in life helps nothing but to be a proof
against its owner. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) considered
a scholar who does not put his knowledge into practice equal to an ignorant
person. (Tirmidhi, Ilm, 5/2653)
In the first hadith, it is presented that the end of those who were beneficial to others with their knowledge but forgot about themselves will be pain
and disappointment. All of their knowledge did not benefit them since they did
not put it into practice for themselves.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) described the miserable situation of those
who do not benefit from their own knowledge as:
The scholar who forgets himself while teaching what is good to others is like
a candle exhausts itself while lightening up its surroundings. (Haythami, I, 184)
Whereas one must think of himself first and his knowledge must benefit
him first. For this to happen, it is necessary for knowledge to settle in the heart
and manifest itself in acts.
How meaningful Alis following warning is:
O man of knowledge! Practice your knowledge! The real scholar is the
one who puts his knowledge into practice and whose actions are in accordance
with his knowledge. There will be a time when people will acquire knowledge
but their knowledge will not go beyond their throats and their acts and knowledge and their inside and outside wont be the same. They will sit in circles and
be proud of their knowledge and show off to each other. One of them will get
mad to his friend just for leaving him and sitting next to another person. Their
actions in those meetings dont ascend to Allah. (Darimi, Muqaddimah, 34)
Indeed, these people can not benefit from the knowledge for which they
had to bare many difficulties and hardships to acquire. In fact, it is not even ap58
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
propriate to call them scholars. They are ignorant people who just know many
things.
As a matter of fact, Sufyan b. Uyaynah said:
The most ignorant of all is the one who does not put his knowledge into
practice, and the most learned man is the one who practices his knowledge,
and the best of all is the one who experience the most reverence towards Allah.
(Darimi, Muqaddimah, 32)
59
28.
ple keep both knowledge and wealth for a while before they lose all of them
when they die and are held accountable for those blessings that they did not
benefit.
As it can be understood from our second hadith, one must fear Allah and
must put his knowledge into practice. One must stay away from things that Allah has forbidden and fulfill His commands as much as he can. Acting this way
forms the basis of piety or taqwa.
As it is pointed out in this hadith, the purpose of acquiring knowledge is
to obtain piety. That is because those with knowledge know better what they
have to do and what they have to abstain from and how to live in accordance
with these rules.
On the other hand, if a person puts his knowledge into practice and lives
a pious life, Allah the Almighty teaches him what he does not know. That is
because, the knowledge that is practiced takes its roots in the consciousness
and saves the person from the fear of forgetting it and provides a basis for
acquiring new knowledge. Since acting this way helps a person to gain the
contentedness of Allah, it generates great blessings and advances the persons
knowledge of Him. As a matter of fact, the Companions of the Prophet used to
put their knowledge into practice as soon as they acquired it. Abu Abdurrahman As-Sulami narrated:
There was a man from the Companions of the Messenger of Allah who
used to teach us the Noble Quran. He used to say:
We would learn ten verses of the Quran from the Prophet (pbuh) and
would not move on to the next ten verses before we had learned everything
in the first ten verses well. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) taught us both the
knowledge and its practice at the same time. (Ahmad, V, 410; Haythami, I, 165)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to teach knowledge provided that it
would be practiced in life and taught to others who would practice it. As an
example of that, Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated:
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to his companions:
Who will take these words from me and put them into practice and teach
others who will also put them into practice?
I came forward and said:
60
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
In our third hadith presents the first and foremost issues for which
humans will be held accountable on the Day of Judgment. They are the life,
knowledge, wealth, and health. Allah the Almighty decreed certain rules concerning each one of them and made some requests. Life should be spent as it
is prescribed by Islam in performing beneficial deeds. One must not acquire
knowledge as a means for pride, but must put it into practice and also teach
others. One must obtain wealth through honest earnings and spend it on his
family needs and doing good deeds. One must know that health is a divine
trust and must be used in accordance with Allahs will.
As a matter of fact, one will be held accountable for everything he did with
the blessings of Allah. The issues listed in our hadith are the first things that
humans will be held accountable for. And one of these is the issue of putting
our knowledge into practice. It is impossible for humans to enter into Paradise
before being held fully accountable for it first. So, putting our knowledge into
practice in this world is the smartest way to ensure both Allahs contentedness
and appreciation of others.
61
.
:
- -
26. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that he heard the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) saying:
When a subject of Allah -a Muslim or a believer-washes his face (in the
course of ablution), every sin he contemplated with his eyes, will be washed away
from his face along with water, or with the last drop of water; when he washes his
hands, every sin they wrought will be effaced from his hands with the water, or
with the last drop of water; and when he washes his feet, every sin towards which
his feet have walked will be washed away with the water or with the last drop of
water29 with the result that he comes out pure from all sins. (Muslim, Taharah, 32.
Also see Tirmidhi, Taharah, 2/2)
29.
62
In the hadith, the dual expressions of Muslim or a believer (mumin), the water or the last
drop of water are because of the hesitation of the narrator in order not to make a mistake
in wording. This proves how the scholars who study hadith paid attention to accuracy when
they were narrating them.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
27. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that he heard our Master the Prophet
(pbuh) say:
For sure my people would come with bright faces and bright hands and
feet on account of the marks of ablution, so he who can increase the luster of his
forehead (and that of his hands and legs) should do so! (Bukhari, Wudu, 3; Muslim,
Taharah, 35)
.
:
:
63
:
. :
28. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) came
to the graveyard and said:
Peace be upon you! The abode of the believing people and us, if God so wills,
are about to join you. I love to see my brothers.
The Noble Companions asked:
Arent we your brothers O Messenger of Allah?
The Noble Messenger (pbuh) said:
You are my companions, and our brothers are those who have, so far, not
come into the world.
Upon that the Noble Companions asked:
O Messenger of Allah, how would you recognize those persons of your
Ummah who have not yet been born?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked them:
Supposing a man had horses with white blazes on their foreheads and legs
among horses which were all black, tell me, would he not recognize his own horses?
The Noble Companions answered:
Certainly, O the Messenger of Allah!
Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
They would come with white faces and arms and legs owing to ablution,
and I would arrive at the Cistern before them. Some people would be driven away
from my Cistern as the stray camel is driven away. I would call out as Come,
come here! Then it would be said (to me):
64
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
These people changed themselves after you, (they have not followed your
Sunnah and they went astray.) Upon that I would say:
Be off, be off. (Muslim, Taharah, 39; Fadail, 26. Also see Nasai, Taharah, 110/150; Ibn
Majah, Zuhd, 36; Muwatta, Taharah, 28; Ahmad, II, 300, 408)
:
.
29. Thawban (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Stay on the straight path, but know that you cannot perform everything
perfectly. Know it well that the best of your deed is your prayer. Only a believer
tries to be in a state of ritual purity at all times. (Ibn Majah, Taharah, 4; Muwatta,
Taharah, 36; Ahmad, V, 276, 282; Darimi, Taharah, 2)
Explanations:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah is pure and loves purity (Tirmidhi, Adab, 41/2799)
Being pure is half of faith. (Muslim, Taharah, 1)
For this reason, Islam is known as the religion of purity. Allah the Almighty wants His servants to be purified from both material and moral impurities of all kind. This is the reason why Islam commands a new Muslimconvert to take bath lustration (ghusl) 30 and take ablution (wudu) to those who
will perform worship. Thus Muslims pay extra attention to cleanliness as the
requirement of their religion, and they covered the topic of cleanliness in detail
under the title of Taharah (Cleanliness) in the first chapters of the books of
Islamic jurisprudence. As a matter of fact, cleanliness is a trait that keeps us
Abu Dawud, Taharah, 129/355.
65
30.
away from Satan and makes us closer to the angels and saves us from the torments of the grave.
Also cleanliness helps our soul be exalted and reach the level of benevolence and be closer to Allah. For this reason, it is expressed in the following
noble verse that:
Allah loves those who keep themselves pure and clean. (Al-Baqarah;
2:222)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
prayer, he used to clean his teeth, take ablution, and perform a prayer. (Muslim,
Musafirin, 139)
Again, when he came home, the first thing that he did was to clean his
teeth. (Muslim, Taharah, 43-44)
On the other hand, ablution cleanses small sins and mistakes unknowingly done other than seizing the rights of the others. The story of Imam Abu
Hanifa in this regard is well known: After watching a young man performing
ablution, the Prominent Imam told him:
My son! Stay away from such and such sins!
The young man shocked by hearing these words asked:
Sir, how did you know that I committed those sins?
Abu Hanifa answered:
From the ablution water that is flowing from parts of your body
In the above mentioned sayings of the Prophet, those who are complimented as my followers and my brothers by the Prophet (pbuh) are the
ones who perform ablution and their prayers, and who live an exemplary life
by paying attention to their acts of worship. On the Day of Judgment, they will
be distinguished by their bright body parts and will be closer to the Prophet
(pbuh).
Every believer who is aware of the good news mentioned in these sayings
tries to perform his ablution as well as possible and tries to preserve the state of
ablution as long as possible. However, being in the state of ablution at all times
is a difficult matter to accomplish. For this reason, in the fourth hadith, this
practice is conditioned on having a strong faith and its virtue is pointed out. In
other words, only those who know the value of having ablution and who really
believe its rewards in the hereafter can pay attention to be in a state of ritual
purity at all times.
Being in the state of ritual purty at all times is one of the most important
customs of the Messenger of Allah. As a matter of fact, it is narrated that the
Messenger of Allah used to make ablution right after using the bathroom. (Ibn-i
Sad, I, 369)
67
Preforming a fresh ablution while in the state of ritual purity is a meritorious act, and it is like doubling the divine light. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
used to perform ablution in each prayer time whether he was in the state of
ritual purity or not. In order to encourage his followers to do this, he said:
Allah records ten rewards for whoever performs ablution even though he
was already in the state of ritual purity. (Tirmidhi, Taharah, 44/58, 59)
Due to their importance the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) personally carried
out two acts without assigning anyone else to do them on his behalf. One of
them was to prepare the water for ablution when he woke up for the midnight
prayer, and the second one was to give alms to the poor. He used to prepare
his own water for ablution and give alms to the poor personally. (See Ibn Majah,
Taharah, 30; Ibn Abi Shayba, I, 178; Ibn Sad, I, 369)
The following reports that prove the importance of ablution and preserving ablution at all times will be helpful in understanding this issue better:
One morning, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) called Bilal next to him and
asked:
O Bilal! What did you do to enter Paradise before me? Whenever I go to
Paradise (in my dreams), I hear your footsteps before me. Last night, I went to
Paradise and again I heard your footsteps before me
Bilal (r.a.) said:
O Messenger of Allah! Whenever I hear the call to prayer (adhan), I perform two units (rakahs) of prayer. As soon as I break my ablution, I perform
another one, and then I think that I am responsible to Allah to perform two
units of prayer.
Upon that, the Messenger of Allah said:
Indeed it is because of these two acts! (Tirmidhi, Manaqib, 17/3689; Ahmad, V,
354)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
If any Muslim performs ablution well, then stands and prays two rakahs
(units of ritual prayer) setting about them with his heart as well as his face, Paradise will be guaranteed to him!
When I heard that, I said:
What a fine thing this is!
And someone who was before me said:
The first one was even better than this.
When I cast a glance, I saw that it was Umar who continued as:
I see that you have just come. A few minutes ago the Prophet (pbuh) said:
If anyone amongst you performs the ablution, and then completes the ablution well and then says: I testify that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the servant of Allah and His Messenger, the eight gates of Paradise will
be opened for him and he may enter by whichever of them he wishes. (Muslim,
Taharah, 17)
30. Abdullah b. Amr al-As (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
When you hear the Muadhdhin, repeat what he says, then invoke a blessing
onto me, for everyone who invokes a blessing on me will receive ten blessings from
Allah; then beg from Allah al-Wasila for me, which is a rank in Paradise fitting for
69
only one of Allahs servants, and I hope that I may be that one. If anyone who asks
that I be given the Wasila, he will be assured of my intercession. (Muslim, Salah, 11)
.
:
) :
31. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever after listening to the Adhan says, Allahumma Rabba hadhihid-dawat it-tammati was-salatil qaimati, ati Muhammadan al-wasilata walfadilata, wabathhu maqaman mahmudan-il-ladhi waadtahu (O Allah! Lord of
this perfect call (of not ascribing partners to You) and of the regular prayer which
is going to be established! Kindly give Muhammad the right of intercession and
superiority and send him (on the Day of Judgment) to the Station of Praise and
Glory (the best and the highest place in Paradise) which You promised him),
then intercession for me will be permitted for him on the Day of Resurrection).
(Bukhari, Adhan, 8; Tafsir, 17/11. Also see Abu Dawud, Salah, 37/529; Tirmidhi, Salah, 43/211;
Nesai, Adhan, 38/678; Ibn Majah, Adhan, 4)
70
) :
. (
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
32. Sad b. Abu Waqqas reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said: If anyone says on hearing the Muadhdhin: I testify that there is no god but Allah alone Who has no partner, and that
Muhammad is His servant and His Messenger, (and that) I am satisfied with
Allah as my Lord, with Muhammad as my Messenger and with Islam as my din
(code of life), his sins would be forgiven. (Muslim, Salah, 13. Also see Tirmidhi, Salah,
42/210; Nasai, Adhan, 38/677; Ibn Majah, Adhan, 4)
Explanations:
The essence of being a servant of Allah is being respectful to Him. As our
respect gains perfection, so does our servanthood. There are some signs of
Allah in this universe and showing our respect and love to them also means
to love and honor Allah. Showing disrespect to those signs also means being
disrespectful to Allah. Those are the signs and marks that evoke the feeling of
being close to Allah, such as the Noble Quran, Kabah, the Prophet, adhan,
prayer, sacrifice, and hills of al-Safa and al-Marwa. Allah commanded that we
avoid disrespectful acts towards those signs that He established on the Earth.
31
And it is told that those who honor and show respect to these signs will be
rewarded. In the following noble verses, it is stated that:
Such (is the Pilgrimage): whoever honors the sacred rites of Allah, for
him it is good in the Sight of his Lord. (Al-Hajj; 22:30)
Such (is his state): and whoever holds in honor the symbols of Allah,
(in the sacrifice of animals), such (honor) should come truly from piety of
heart. (Al-Hajj; 22:32)
Call to prayer (adhan) is one of the important signs of Islam:
Through call to prayer, the principles of Islam are announced loudly five
times a day; the unbelievers are being invited to the faith; and the believers are
being invited to worship in congregation and to unity and solidarity.
When call to prayer is recited in a place, it means that there are Muslims
living there and the land is a land of Islam. In that sense, the call to prayer
was the essential part of conquests and victories throughout Islamic history. A
newly conquered land turned into the land of Islam with the recitation of the
Al-Maidah; 5:2
71
31.
conquest adhan and the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) identified whether a place
was the land of Islam or not in accordance with the practice of adhan.32
The adhan that is recited in its original language (Arabic) can be easily
recognized by the Muslims of the world, no matter what language they speak,
and its message can be understood.
The adhan is the continuation of the mission of prophets, because the adhan is a call to the greatest pillar of Islam and to the essence of all acts of worship, i.e. prayer.
Through adhan, Allah the Almighty invites His servants to His presence.
For this reason, adhan shows the value that Allah attaches to His servants.
Those kids that adhan is recited into their ears receive the first essence of
national and spiritual discipline by this divine invitation.
Therefore, adhan is one of the important signs to which Muslims must
show their respect.
The first manifestation of showing respect to adhan is to recite it in the
state of ritual purity. (Tirmidhi, Salah, 33/200, 201)
The other indication is to repeat adhan during the recitation of the Muadhdhin. Those Muslims who do that gain the same divine rewards as the Muadhdhin and Allah responds to their prayers.
To repeat adhan with the Muadhdhin is necessary (wajib) according to
school of Hanafi law. Hence, upon hearing the adhan, it is also wajib to stop
recitation of the Quran, saying supplication, greeting others, and talking. Other schools of law view that repeating adhan with the Muadhdhin is recommended but not obligatory. Those views hold same for the call to stand up for
the actual start of the ritual prayer (al-Iqamah).
According to some narrations, it is recommended to say La Hawla wa la
quwwata illa billah (There is neither might nor any power except with Allah)
after hearing Hayya ala al-Salah and Hayyaala al-Falah. (Muslim, Salah, 12; Abu
Dawud, Salah, 36/527)
32.
72
See Bukhari, Adhan, 6; Muslim, Salah, 9; Abu Dawud, Jihad, 91/2635; Ahmad, III, 448449.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Station of Praise and Glory, the best and the highest place in Paradise
also refers to the spread and acceptance of Islam by humanity and the repetition of Prophet Muhammads name continuously trough the call to prayer and
other means.
The recommended supplication mentioned in the third hadith expresses
the fundamentals of faith and Islam. As we mentioned earlier adhan also consists of similar content. Thus, a Muslim refreshes his faith and submission
by repeating the fundamentals of his religion five times a day. Because of this
consciousness that he keeps alive, he is protected from being carried away by
the material world.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that the doors of heaven will
be opened while adhan33 or al-iqamah34 is being pronounced and during the
time between adhan and al-iqamah,35 and the supplications will be accepted.
Since adhan is so virtuous, those who recite it also take their share from its
virtue. As a matter of fact, exegetes of the Quran argue that the following verse
of Quran also refers to the virtues of Muadhdhins:
Who is better in speech than one who calls (men) to Allah, works righteousness, and says, I am of those who bow in Islam? (Al-Fussilat; 41:33)
Many ahadith are reported about the virtues of Muadhdhins. In one of
them, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If the people knew the reward for pronouncing the adhan and for standing
in the first row (in congregational prayers) and found no other way to get that
privilege except by drawing lots they would draw lots. (Bukhari, Adhan, 9, 32, Shahadah 30; Muslim, Salah 129)
Since muadhdhins strengthen their faith and increase their good deeds
through the recitation of adhan, they will be leaders on the Day of Judgment and
will have a congregation behind them. (See Muslim, Salah, 14; Ibn Majah, Adhan, 5)
33.
34.
35.
74
Haythami, I, 328.
Ahmad, III, 342.
Abu Dawud, Salah, 35/521; Tirmidhi, Salah, 44/212.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The end of those who do not show the proper respect to adhan is misery.
The following story is a clear example to that:
One of the Christians from Medina used to say Fire to the liar whenever
he heard Muadhdhin saying I bear witness that Muhammad is the Messenger
of Allah.
One night his attendant entered into the house with a fire in his hands. At
that time, the Christian man and his family was sitting inside of the house. A
spark started up a fire and burned the house and those inside it.
Upon that, the following verse of Quran was revealed:
When you proclaim your call to prayer they take it (but) as mockery
and sport; that is because they are a people without understanding. (AlMaidah; 5:58) (Wahid, p. 203; Qurtubi, VI, 146)
:
:
75
: .
:
.
.
34. Abu Darda (r.a.) reported: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) whom I
love more than my soul advised me:
Even if you are torn apart or even burned, never associate anything as a
partner to Allah! And never miss your obligatory (Fard) prayers intentionally!
Whoever knowingly misses an obligatory prayer becomes distanced from the protection and trust of Allah. (Ibn Majah, Fitan, 23)
Explanations:
Ritual prayer is the most prominent principle of Islam. It is a distinguishing sign which separates believers from nonbelievers. Therefore, it is necessary
to pay attention to prayer and be full of determination to continue performing
it. For this reason, one of the last wills of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was
insistence on prayer.
One of the reports manifesting that the Prophet (pbuh) emphasized prayer
in his last wills is as follows:
Anas (r.a.) reported:
We were with the Messenger of Allah in his death bed. He told us three
times:
Fear from Allah about the matter of prayer! and continued his words:
Fear from Allah about being unjust to your workers, and fear from Allah
about the two weak groups: They are widowed women and children. Fear from
Allah about the matter of prayer!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) started to repeat prayer, prayer Even
when his blessed tongue couldnt say any longer, he continued to whisper it
until his soul ascended to his Divine Companion. (Baihaqi, Shuab, VII, 477)
76
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
These reports clearly display the significance of prayer which is the foundation and clearest manifestation of being a servant of Allah. In the following
verses of the Quran emphasizing the importance of prayer Allah the Almighty
says:
And be steadfast in prayer; practice regular charity; and bow down
your heads with those who bow down (in worship). (Al-Baqarah; 2:43)
Enjoin prayer on thy people, and be constant therein (Al-Taha;
20:132)
But those will prosper who purify themselves, and glorify the name of
their Guardian-Lord, and (lift their hearts) in prayer. (Al-Ala; 87:14-15)
Our Almighty Lord wants prayer to be performed with great attention
and to be practiced continuously without showing any signs of abatement.36 He
warns with a painful torment His servants who are neglectful of their prayers:
So woe to the worshippers who are neglectful of their prayers (AlMaun; 107:4-5)
Except the Companions of the Right Hand. (They will be) in Gardens
(of Delight): they will question each other, and (ask) of the Sinners: What
led you into Hell Fire? They will say: We were not of those who prayed;
Nor were we of those who fed the indigent; But we used to talk vanities
with vain talkers; And we used to deny the Day of Judgment, Until there
came to us (the Hour) that is certain. (Al-Muddassir; 74:39-47)
The first sin confessed by those who fell into hell was abandoning their
prayers. Then, other sins follow. This is an important point to pay attention to.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following in order to draw attention to the importance of prayer:
Your best deed is your prayer (Muwatta, Taharah, 6)
Prayer is the key to the Paradise, and cleanliness is the key to prayer. (Ahmad, III, 340)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following to the leader of Saqif
Clan who were arguing that practicing prayer would be hard for them:
Al-Maarij; 70:23-34.
77
36.
78
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Prophet (pbuh) saw the harsh punishment that is going to be given
to those who dawdle in reciting and practicing the Quran, and miss the Dawn
and Night Prayer times by falling asleep, and he warned us because of his mercy for his people. Undoubtedly, the prophets dreams are true and a fact. For
this reason, everything they told based on their dreams should be believed as
they are.
If the state of those who linger in performance of prayer, one should imagine the state of those who do not perform prayer at all!
It is understood from this hadith that those who abandon the most honorable worship will be punished from their head, which is the most honorable
body part.
Due to these kinds of warnings in the verses of the Quran and in the
sayings of the Prophet (pbuh), his companions paid a lot of attention to their
prayers. For example, Umar (r.a.) wrote to his governors as:
For me your prayers are the most important of your deeds. Whoever performs it well paying attention to its acts and times, he would protect his religion. Whoever neglects his prayers neglects the rest of the commands of the
religion more. (Muwatta, Wuqutus-Salah, 6)
Miswar b. Mahrama (r.a.) narrated:
I went to Umar b. Khattab (when he was stabbed). Covered with a blanket he was unconsciously lying down.
I asked those who were beside him:
How is his condition?
As you see they said. And I said:
Call him to prayer! Nothing else than prayer scares and wakes him up!
Upon that, they said:
O the Ruler of Believers, it is the time of prayer!
At once, Umar (r.a.) said:
Yes, I swear to Allah, those who abandon prayer do not get any share
from Islam and he stood up and performed his prayer in spite of his bleeding
wound. (Haythami, I, 295. Also see Muwatta, Taharah, 51; Ibn Sad, III, 35)
79
.
:
35. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Five (daily) prayers and from one Friday prayer to the (next) Friday prayer,
and from Ramadan to Ramadan are expiations for the (sins) committed in between (their intervals) provided one shuns the major sins. (Muslim, Taharah, 16)
.
:
80
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
36. Abu Huraira (r.a.) heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying the following to his companions:
If there was a river at the door of anyone of you and he took a bath in it five
times a day would you notice any dirt on him?
His noble companions said:
Not a trace of dirt would be left.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
That is the example of the five prayers with which Allah blots out (annuls)
evil deeds. (Muslim, Masajid, 283. Also see Bukhari, Mawaqid, 6; Tirmidhi, Al-Adab, 80/2868;
Nasai, Salah, 7/460; Ibn Majah, Iqamat, 193)
Explanations:
After faith, ritual prayer is the most virtuous37 and perfect act of worship
to remember Allah. It is the most important element of Islam after reciting
the Kalimat al-Shahadah.38 Prayer is the best medicine for human desires that
would refrain one from remembering Allah. There is no other act of worship
that makes fear and hope clear and contains the call for help and salvation.
Since prayer is repeated in certain times of the day, there is no other act of
worship that is more effective on human ego, in restraining worldly desires and
ambitions, encourages the truth, and being on the right way in all respects. For
this reason, Ali (r.a.) said the following to one of his subordinates:
Everything depends on your prayer. 39
First of all the performance of the ritual prayer and then all the other
obligatory act of worships become expiation for the minor sins given that one
avoids major ones. For those without a sin, it advances their state in the presence of Allah. Allah the Almighty says:
And establish regular prayers at the two ends of the day and at the
approaches of the night: For those things, that are good remove those that
39.
81
37.
38.
are evil: Be that the word of remembrance to those who remember (their
Lord) (Hud; 11:114)
If you (but) eschew the most heinous of the things which you are forbidden to do, We shall expel out of you all the evil in you, and admit you to
a gate of great honor. (Al-Nisa; 4:31)
The following narration which shows how prayer elevates the state of a
person in the presence of Allah also explains the reason of occurance40 of the
first hadith:
Sad b. Abi Waqqas (r.a.) reported:
There were two brothers. One of them passed away forty days before the
other one. The righteousness of the one who passed away earlier had been told
to the Messenger of Allah. Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
Was not the other one a Muslim? They said:
Yes, O the Messenger of Allah, he was a Muslim and he was not a bad
person either!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
You would not know how much his prayers benefited to him. Prayer is like
a river with plenty of fresh water at the door of anyone of you and in which he
took a bath five times a day. What do you say, would there be any dirt left on
him? You would not know to what levels his prayers elevated him. (Muwatta, Qasr
al-Salah, 91)
The brother who passed away later achieved a more elevated state since
he had a chance to perform more prayers compared to his brother who had
passed away earlier. In other words, the more one performs prayer in awe, the
more elevated his state will be. For this reason, we must increase the productivity of our lives and our capital for the Hereafter by performing supererogatory
prayers as much as we can after performing the obligatory ones.
40.
82
The reason underlying a hadith (sabab al-wurud) is why a hadith is occurred (or if its an
act, why it is performed). There is a special branch of science that focuses on this. The
reason of occurrence of a hadith is just like the science of studying the underlying reasons
of revelation of the verse of the Noble Quran (Asbab al-Nuzul). This branch of Islamic
science helps us to understand the commands that the hadith contain and if a command is
abrogated by a given hadith.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Prayer which nullifies earlier sins also prevents a person from future sins
and mistakes.41 That is because when one knows that his minor sins are forgiven also gets a lesson of self-control for not to commit major sins. A wellperformed prayer elevates one to a spiritual maturity and fills his hearth with
inner-peace. And a person with inner-peace and awe pays extra attention to
stay away from the things that Allah dislikes and therefore gets purified from
sins.
In this respect, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says Prayer is light.42 In
other words, a prayer prevents humans from rebellious, evil, and impure acts
and guides them to the right path just like light brightens its environment. On
the other hand, since a servant of Allah turns externally and internally to Allah
by removing everything else out of his heart, his prayers cause lights of wisdom
to brighten, relieve the hearts, and discover the truths. Also, prayer is a valuable
act of worship that enlightens the face of a believer with a divine light both in
this world and in the Hereafter.
Since prayer is the key to Paradise43, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised to perform prayers to those who seek going to Paradise and being next to
the Prophet in there.
Rabia b. Kab (r.a.) said:
I used to spend the nights with the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), bring him
water and take care of his other needs. Once he said to me:
Ask (anything you like)!
And I said:
I ask your company in Paradise.
The Prophet (pbuh) said:
Is it possible that you ask for something else?
This time I said:
That is all (that I wish)!
Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Al-Ankabut; 29:45.
Muslim, Taharah, 1.
Ahmad, III, 340.
83
41.
42.
43.
Then help me to achieve this for you by devoting yourself often to prostration! (Muslim, Salah, 226; Ahmad, III, 500)
When Thawban (r.a.) asked questions similar to the following ones to the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh):
Tell me an act that will help me to enter the Paradise!
What is the deed that Allah loves most?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered him by saying:
Perform a lot of prostration to Allah! As a matter of fact, when one performs one prostration to Allah, Allah elevates his level by one and forgives one of
his sins. (Muslim, Salah, 225)
The Prophet (pbuh) said to one of his companions:
If you want to join me (in the hereafter), then increase your prostrations!
(Ahmad, III, 428)
Prostration is also a means to save one from the Fire. This reality is expressed in the following noble hadith:
Allah intends mercy on whomever He likes amongst the people of Hell,
He will order the angels to take out of Hell those who worshipped none but Him
alone. The angels will take them out by recognizing them from the traces of prostrations, for Allah has forbidden the (Hell) fire to eat away those traces. So they
will come out of the Fire, it will eat away from the whole of the human body
except the marks of the prostrations. (Bukhari, Adhan, 129)
The prostration mostly refers to salah (prayer). In those narrations, prayer
is referred to by its most important part, or prostration. Therefore, prayer is an
act of worship that will make one enter the Paradise and be next to the Messenger of Allah.
Moreover, prayer will get those believers who entered the Paradise closer
to seeing Allahs Face. Jarir (r.a.) reported:
One night, we were sitting with the Messenger of Allah, and he said looking at the full moon:
84
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
As all of you can clearly see the full moon without a hustle, you will see Allah (your Lord) in the same way (in Paradise). Now do your best to perform all
prayers between the sunrise and sunset.
Then, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) recited the following noble verses:
and celebrate (constantly) the praises of your Lord, before the rising
of the sun, and before its setting; yea, celebrate them for part of the hours
of the night, and at the sides of the day: that you may have (spiritual) joy. 44
(Taha; 20:130) (Bukhari, Mawaqt 16, 26; Tafsir, 50/1; Tawhid, 24; Muslim, Masajid, 211)
45.
This Quranic verse concisely defines the times of prayer. For detail also see Hud, 11:114;
Isra, 17:78; Al-Rum, 30:17-18; M. Kmil Yaarolu, Namaz, Diyanet slm Ansiklopedisi,
XXXII, 351.
Once paid attention, one can notice that there is a harmony between the movements of
the prayer and the human body, as if humans are created to perform prayer or prayer is
a worship that fits best for the human nature. Since none of the creatures are created in
human form, they cannot perform perfectly the movements in prayer.
85
44.
Prayer is at the same time a balancing element in a Muslims life. This act
of worship which is performed at certain times of the day makes ones life disciplined and organized.
c. Having Awe in Salah (Prayer)
: .
:
: !
.
:
86
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
38. Fazl b. Abbas (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Prayer is performed in two by two by two units. You sit to recite Tashahhud
in every two units. You feel deep reverence and say invocation and prayers. You
act humbly and modestly. After the completion of a prayer, you say prayers Dear
Lord! Dear Lord! as the palms of your hand towards your face. Whoever does
not do this, his prayer is not complete. (Tirmidhi, Salah, 166/385)
Go back and perform your prayer again for you have not prayed!
The man offered the prayer again, came back and greeted the Prophet.
Our Master the Prophet (pbuh) said to him one more time:
Go back and pray again for you have not prayed!
This happened three times and finally the poor man said:
By Him Who has sent you with the truth! I do not know a better way of
praying. Kindly teach me how to pray.
Upon that Prophet (pbuh) said:
When you stand for the prayer, say Takbir and then recite from the Quran
what you know and then bow with calmness till you feel at ease, then rise from
bowing till you stand straight. Afterwards prostrate calmly till you feel at ease
and then raise (your head) and sit with calmness till you feel at ease and then
prostrate with calmness till you feel at ease in prostration and do the same in the
whole of your prayer! (Bukhari, Adhan, 95, 122; Ayman, 15; Istidhan, 18; Muslim, Salah,
45. Also see Tirmidhi, Salah, 110/302; Abu Dawud, Salah, 143-144/856; Nasai, Istiftah, 7/882; Ibn
Majah, Iqamah, 72)
:
:
40. Ammar b. Yasir heard our master the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) say:
Verily, a man leaves, and none of his prayer has been recorded for him except a tenth of it, a ninth of it, an eighth of it, a seventh of it, a sixth of it, a fifth
of it, a fourth of it, a third of it, or a half of it (Abu Dawud, Salah, 123-124/796; Ahmad,
IV, 321)
88
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
:
.
41. As narrated from Anas b. Malik, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used
to pray as:
O Allah, I seek refuge in You from the prayer which is not beneficial! (Abu
Dawud, Witr, 32/1549)
Explanations:
The significance and virtues of salah (prayer) mentioned previously refer
to a well-performed salah that is performed by following the obligatory acts
before and during prayer. The best elixir that will accomplish this is having awe
in our prayers.
As a result of reverence towards Allah the Almighty, awe (hushu) can be
described as tranquility and modesty during the performance of the acts of
worship especially during prayer. It is also the reflection of this state in our
daily life. Awe is softening the hearts and obeying Allah and being feared from
Him due to high respect and love for Him.
When we talk about awe, the first thing that comes to mind is the state of
tranquility while performing a prayer. Therefore, one must perform his prayers
being aware of that he is the presence of Allah and feeling His Magnificence
and Grandeur in his heart. It is expressed in the following verses of Quran:
The believers must (eventually) win through, those who humble themselves in their prayers. (Al-Muminun; 23:1-2)
Nay, seek (Allahs) help with patient perseverance and prayer: It is indeed hard, except for the humble ones, who bear in mind the certainty that
they are to meet their Lord, and that they are to return to Him. (Al-Baqarah;
2:45-46)
That is to say, only a prayer that is performed in awe helps one find salvation. A prayer which is not performed with the feeling of tranquility in the
89
heart and feeling of reverence in the body movements is not considered a true
prayer. For this reason, it is said:
The number of people who perform prayers is a lot but there are very few
of them who truly perform it.46
The permission for the sick and weak to perform their prayers without
doing some of the body movements shows that the essence of prayer is feeling
awe in the heart.
The best way to ensure the feeling of awe is to perform the prayer as if it
is our last prayer in this world. All the prayers should be performed in a state
of a person whose time is up and is spending his last minutes and how he feels
being in front of his Lord. Actually, this is what the reality is. As a matter of
fact, there is no guarantee that a person will reach to the next prayer time. Accordingly, a person who is performing a prayer should sincerely turn to Allah
and stay away from all kinds of material thoughts, think about the meaning of
the verses which he is reciting, shed tears, look at the place of prostration, and
say prayers. Only a prayer performed in this manner benefits the performer by
preventing him from wrongdoings and idle talk which would hurt others. It
also protects the believer by turning him towards Allah and the Hereafter away
from useless desires such as holding grudge against people and hoping to get
something from them.
In the second hadith, the way we should say the supplications is explained
by emphasizing the importance of having awe during praying. Allahs servants
should acknowledge their weakness, be extremely modest and humble, and
pray sincerely to Allah.
A prayer is not complete unless it is performed by feeling such deep awe.
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised us to stay away from
actions which would affect the awe in our prayers such as looking around.47
46.
47.
90
In Quran, the term iqamah is used to refer to the prayers of the believers. In other words,
it is informed that they fulfill their prayers well. When it comes to is the prayers of the
hypocrites, only the term musallin is used. (Al-Maun; 107:4) This shows that there are
various types of people who perform their prayers. The number of those who perform a
prayer might be a lot but the number of those who give it its real due is few.
Bukhari, Adhan, 93; Abu Dawud, Salah, 162-163/912; Tirmidhi, Juma, 60/590; Nasai, Sahw,
10/1193-1197; Ahmad, VI, 130, 443.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Muslim scholars also found it contrary to the state of awe playing with ones
hair, beard, nose, or something on the floor48 while praying.
Indeed, Said bin Musayyab said when he saw someone who was playing
with his bread while praying:
If his heart had felt awe, his body parts should also have been in awe.
(Abdurrazzak, Musannaf, II, 266-267)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) did not consider it right to pray when
the food is ready49 or when one has to use the bathroom if there is no issue of
expiration of the prayer time.50 That is because these conditions keep the heart
busy and affect the awe.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) would perform his prayers in awe as he prescribed in this hadith. During night prayers, he used to experience such a deep
awe that he would lengthen his prayers. He used to say that the prayers with long
standing are more virtuous than the shorter ones. (Muslim, Musafirin, 165)
Abdullah ibn al-Shikhkhir (r.a.) describes Prophets (pbuh) state of awe in
his prayers:
I saw the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) praying and a sound was coming from his
breast like the rumbling of a mill owing to weeping. (Abu Dawud, Salah, 156-157/904;
Ahmad, IV, 25, 26)
The Messenger of Allah would not permit anything that diverts his attention away during his prayers. One day, Abu Jahm (r.a.) gifted a nicely embroidered khamisa (a square garment). The Messenger of Allah wore it and
performed a prayer. When he finished the prayer he said to the mother of believers Aisha (r.a.):
Take this khamisa back to Abu Jahm as I looked at its marks and it diverted
my attention from the prayer. (Muwatta, Salah, 67; Bukhari, Salah, 14)
The most important requirement for achieving awe is to perform prayer
by following the right order. In other words, fulfilling the acts of prayer perfectly; bowing, standing after bowing, prostration, and sitting between the two
prostrations, and to perform them very calmly. For this reason, the Messenger
Nasai, Sahw, 7/1189.
Bukhari, Adhan, 42; Muslim, Masajid, 64.
Muslim, Masajid, 67; Ahmad, V, 250, 260.
91
48.
49.
50.
of Allah (pbuh) perfectly explained in our third hadith what it means to perform a prayer by following its rules. According to this, while praying, one must
keep still for a moment while performing each acts of the prayer, must place
all the body parts where they are supposed to be and when someone looks, he
should see him staying still. As a matter of fact, it is reported that the amount
of time that the Messenger of Allah was spending during bowing, or prostration, or sitting in between the two prostrations, or standing after bowing were
almost the same. (Bukhari, Adhan, 121)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warned his companions about performing
a prayer in awe and by following its rules saying:
Do you consider or see that my face is towards the Qibla? By Allah, neither
your submissiveness nor your bowing is hidden from me, surely I see you from
my back.
Perform your bowings and prostrations properly! (Bukhari, Adhan, 88)
He warned about the prayers which are not performed as prescribed:
Allah does not look at (does not value) prayers of those who do not strengthen their backs in between bowings and prostrations. (Ahmad, II, 525)
That is because, in order for a prayer to be ascended to the divine presence, it should be performed perfectly. Otherwise, it comes back without going
to heavens and returns to its owner.
In a hadith, it is said that:
If a person performs his prayer well by fulfilling the bowings and prostrations right, that prayer says to him:
As you protected me, may Allah protect you! The prayer gets glorified and
accepted. If a person does not perform his prayer well by fulfilling the bowings
and prostrations right, the prayer says to him:
As you lost me, may Allah lose you! The prayer is thrown up to his face like
a scrap. (Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 143; Suyuti, Jami, I, 58/364)
Due to such warnings of the Prophet (pbuh), his companions paid extra
attention to follow its rules and to achieve awe while praying. One day Hudhaifa (r.a.) entered into a praying room and saw a man praying without paying
attention to his bowing and prostrations. After the prayer, he asked the man:
92
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
These kinds of sayings of the Prophet are revealed to forbid people from
performing prayers unconsciously. That is not to say that It is better not to
perform a prayer at all than performing it deficiently! As a matter of fact,
even it is not complete, its performance is better than not performing it at all.
(Abdurrazzak, Musannaf, II, 368)
We must express it one more time that, in order to benefit from a prayer,
the body should be turned towards Kabah and the heart should turned towards
Allah the Almighty. As a matter of fact, it is expressed in the noble verse:
93
bow down in adoration, and bring yourself closer (to Allah.)! (AlAlaq; 96:19)
: .
94
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------.
: .
:
43. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There is Allahs contentedness at the early hours of a prayer, and His forgiveness in later hours. (Tirmidhi, Salah, 13/172)
Explanations:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) responded to a question what the most
virtuous act of worship was as observing prayer early in its period.51
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave different answers at different times when asked about
the most virtuous act. Some of them include Believing in Allah and His Messenger, a
prayer that is performed in time, standing (al-qiyam) more than required while praying, to
love and hate for the sake of Allah, Hajj (Pilgrimage) where certain invocations (talbiyah)
are recited out loud and many sacrifices are made. There are several reasons for these
different answers:
1. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered by taking the time and audience into account.
2. The virtue of an act is parallel to the extent of its benefits to Islam. The Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) paid attention to this fact in his answers.
3. The superiority of the acts differs when considered from different angles. The Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) always gave the best answer depending on the intention of the question.
4. With his answers, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) wanted to point out the importance of
the mentioned acts.
95
51.
Allah the Almighty likes the observance of a prayer early in its period
more. That is because, in this act are observed the peak of love, obedience, and
submission to Allah. These nice traits are the reasons that make the servant of
Allah run to a prayer. Therefore, Allah responds with love and contentedness
to the prayers performed with these feelings.
On the other hand, a deed is more valuable if it is done on time. As a matter of fact, the most efficient state of something occurs at its scheduled time. If
a prayer is performed early in its period, its benefits and wisdom can be better
observed.
In order to emphasize the value of earlier parts of a prayer period and
hurrying up in performing it, Allah said Run and Race in the Quran to
His servants and praised those who act in this way.52 This shows that the earlier
time of everything is more virtuous and valuable.53 Therefore believers run to
fulfill their acts of worship in early parts of their period in order to be honored
with the manifestation of Allahs name Al-Awwal (The First One).
Delaying the prayer for a believer who contemplates all these facts cannot
be excused unless there is a good reason. As a matter of fact, being reluctant in
performing a prayer and delaying it are listed among the signs of hypocrites.
It is mentioned in the noble verse that:
When they (The Hypocrites) stand up to prayer, they stand without
earnestness, to be seen of men, but little do they hold Allah in remembrance. (Al-Nisa; 4:142)
Ala bin Abdurrahman reported the following which has the characteristic
to explain the verse above:
We visited Anas ibn Malik after Zuhr (noon). When we reached there,
Anas stood up and prayed the late Afternoon Prayer (Salah al-Asr). We mentioned that he performed the prayer early in its time. He explained why he did
it this way and said:
I heard the Messenger of Allah saying:
That is the prayer of the hypocrites! That is the prayer of the hypocrites!
That is the prayer of the hypocrites! The prayer of the hypocrites is that one of
52.
53.
96
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
them sits until the sun becomes yellow and is between the two horns of Satan,
and then gets up and rattles off four units just as a bird picks up a food, hardly
remembering Allah in them at all. (Muwatta, the Quran, 46; Muslim, Masajid, 195)
Wherever he was, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) loved to perform his
prayers as soon as it was their time.54 One can even say that he has performed
all of his prayers at earlier parts of their period. As a matter of fact, Aisha, the
mother of believers, reported:
Allah the Almighty has taken the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) to His presence without him postponing two prayers to the last minutes of their period.
(Tirmidhi, Salah, 13/174; Ahmad, VI, 92)
97
54.
Abu Bakr! The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) did not come back yet. The
prayer time has arrived. Would you be our imam and lead us to perform the
prayer?
Abu Bakr said:
Okay, lets do it and they started performing the prayer in order to fulfill
it in early part of its period. While they were praying, the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) returned.55
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) praised those who perform their prayers
at early times of their period, introduced them as examples, and asked Allahs
mercy for them. Once he said:
May Allah show mercy on my brother Abdullah b. Rawaha! Wherever he
is, he stops his ride as soon as the prayer time enters and performs it. (Haythami,
IX, 316)
.
:
55.
98
See Bukhari, Adhan, 48; Amel fis-salat, 3, 16; Sahw, 9; Sulh, 1; Ahkam, 36; Muslim, Salah,
102; Abu Dawud, Salah, 168-169/940; Nasai, Imamat, 7/782.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
44. Ibn Omar (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The prayer in congregation is twenty seven times superior to the prayer offered by person alone. (Bukhari, Adhan, 30; Muslim, Masajid, 249)
.
:
45. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) say:
Should I not suggest to you that by which Allah obliterates the sins and
elevates the ranks (of a man)?
His companions said:
Yes, let us know, the Messenger of Allah!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Performing the ablution thoroughly despite odds, steping more towards the
mosque, and waiting for the next prayer after observing a prayer, and that is
mindfulness. (Muslim, Taharah, 41)
99
.
:
Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The angels keep on asking for Allahs Blessing and Forgiveness for anyone of you
as long as he is at his Musalla (praying place) and does not do Hadath (passes wind).
The angels say, O Allah! Forgive him and be Merciful to him. (Bukhari, Adhan, 36)
.
:
47. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Say Amin when the Imam says Amin, for it anyones utterance of Amin
synchronizes with that of the angels, he will be forgiven his past sins. (Bukhari,
Adhan, 111; Muslim, Salah, 72)
100
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
48. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
No prayer is harder for the hypocrites than the Fajr and the Isha prayers
and if they knew the reward for these prayers at their respective times, they would
certainly present themselves (in the mosques) even if they had to crawl. (Bukhari,
Adhan, 34; Muslim, Masajid, 252. Also see Ibn Majah, Masajid, 18)
Explanations:
Islam attaches great significance to social solidarity and living in harmony. Allah the Almighty wants His servants to socialize. For this reason, in the
Noble Quran there are many commands and signs for humans about living in
societies. One of them is as follows:
And hold fast, all together, by the rope which Allah (stretches out for
you), and be not divided among yourselves (Al-i Imran; 3:102-103)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) expressed the importance and virtue of
praying in congregation as:
The hand (help) of Allah is with the congregation. Those who leave the congregation leave for the Hell. (Tirmidhi, Fitan, 7/2167)
Congregation is mercy and discord is torment. (Ahmad, IV, 278)
The blessing is with the congregation (Ibn Majah, Atima, 17)
I command you five things that Allah has commanded me: to hear, to obey,
jihad, pilgrimage, and congregation. Whoever gets even one step further from the
congregation of Islam, he takes down his bonds with Islam until he returns back.
(Tirmidhi, Adab, 78/2863)
Attending mosques regularly and going to perform prayers in congregation is the most important act of worship and is the most powerful element
which ensures the creation of such spirit. The first thing that the Messenger of
Allah did when he arrived at Quba and Madina was to build a prayer room.56
Later, the number of the prayer rooms/mosques increased quickly. Those who
follow the tradition of the Prophet have built prayer rooms in places that they
Our ancestors paid extra attention to prayer rooms and the first thing that they did when
conquering a new land was to build a new mosque. A poet expressed this so well:
Where is Yunus Emre who was walking next to you;
Where is the army spreading gorgeous domes all over?
101
56.
have conquered throughout history. Today, building a mosque is still considered the best honor and service that one can do and acquire. This is because
mosques and congregation are the most important places that Muslims socialize and strengthen the spirit of brotherhood. The following hadith that shows
the social solidarity and harmony in mosques is so attention grabbing:
If anyone of you leaves congregation and prays by himself, he should not
lead anyone else. Whoever does this betrays the congregation. (Ahmad, V, 250, 260)
This hadith shows not only the quality of a congregation that must be
achieved but also the importance of praying for the nation of Islam.
As a matter of fact, praying for the followers of Islam (Muslim ummah)
was the tradition of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), which he did after each
prayer. One day when Aisha (r.a.) saw that the Prophet was happy asked him:
O Messenger of Allah, will you pray for me!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) prayed saying:
O Allah, forgive Aishas all past, future, hidden, and known sins!
Aisha, the mother of believers, became so happy that she leaned her
head.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
Did my prayer make you happy?
She said:
Why should not your prayer make me happy?
Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I swear to Allah this is my prayer that I say for my followers in every prayer.
(Haythami, IX, 243; Ibn Hibban, Sahih, XVI, 47/7111)
102
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
For this reason, the friends of Allah think about the nation of Islam and
pray as:
103
57.
The best way to achieve this divine goal is to attend congregations regularly.
Performing prayers in mosques with congregation transforms believers into
brothers and sisters in Islam who altruistically want and pray for the goodness
of each other. Congregation cleanses Muslims from the feelings of egoism and
individuality. For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) encouraged believers to attend congregations regularly. He mentioned the virtue of praying
in congregation and informed us that a prayer performed in congregation is
twenty seven times superior to a prayer performed alone. He even expressed
that the reward of a prayer is parallel to the number of people in congregation
and said:
A mans prayer performed together with another is purer and more rewarding than his prayer performed alone, and his prayer with two men is purer
and more rewarding than his prayer with one, but if there are more people, it is
even more pleasing to Allah the Almighty. (Abu Dawud, Salah, 47/554; Nasai, Imamat,
45/841)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
However, this is on the condition not to break the ablution which proves
the significance of being in the state of ritual purity (or having ablution) at all
times.
Being spiritually awake and in a state of awe during the prayer is as important as coming to a mosque with peace and getting used to be there. By getting
lost in thoughts, the congregation should not be unaware of what the imam is
reciting. For this reason, the congregation should carefully listen to the chapter
of the Opening (Al-Fatiha), which is an important invocation, and sincerely
say Amin.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also informed us about the harms of neglecting congregations. In several ahadith, he warned those who have difficulties in coming to congregation. This is because showing reluctance in coming
to congregation is a sign of being a hypocrite. Joining the congregation is very
difficult for them. Especially, the dawn (Salat al-Fajr) and night (Salat al-Isha)
prayers become big issues for those who do not have a strong faith. Therefore,
the reward of going to a mosque for these two prayers is more than the rewards
for the other prayers.
One day, Uthman b. Affan (r.a.) came for the Night Prayer (Salat al-Isha).
When he saw that there were not many people, he lied down at the back of the
mosque and waited for others to come. At that time, Ibn Abi Amr came and
sat next to Uthman. Uthman (r.a.) asked him who he was and he introduced
himself.
Uthman (r.a.) asked:
How much do you know from the Quran? He told him how much he
knew.
Then, Uthman (r.a.) said:
O the son of my brother! I heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying:
Whoever prays the night prayer (Salat al-Isha) with congregation, he is like
he has spent half of the night praying. Whoever prays the dawn prayer (Salat alFajr) with congregation, he is like he has spent the whole night praying. (See Muwatta, Salatul-Jamaah, 7; Muslim, Masajid, 260; Tirmidhi, Salah, 165; Abu Dawud, Salah, 47)
dinary times such as war, and explained how soldiers should perform it in the
Noble Quran. (Al-Nisa; 4:102; Bukhari, Salat al-Hawf, 1-4; Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 4/3035; Ahmad,
II, 522)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) strongly emphasized this issue and wanted
that believers should regularly attend the congregation unless they have an important excuse.
As a matter of fact, Abdullah b. Ummi Maktum (r.a.) came and said:
O the Messenger of Allah! I am blind and my house is far from the
mosque. I have a guard but he does not treat me nicely and does not help me a
lot. Is there permission for me to pray at home?
The Prophet (pbuh) asked:
Do you hear the call (adhan)?
When he said Yes, the Messenger of Allah said:
I cannot find an excuse for you. (Abu Dawud, Salah, 46/552)
Normally, being blind is considered as an accepted excuse for not attending to congregation, but this incidence shows the significance of regularly attending to congregation. However, blind people should also try to attend congregation as much as they can so that they should not be deprived of the virtue
and rewards of the congregation.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warned against those who show reluctance in attending congregations:
Whoever hears the call (adhan) but does not come to the mosque (congregation), his prayer is not accepted (as a perfect prayer) unless he has an acceptable excuse. (Ibn Majah, Masajid, 17)
Once the Companions of the Prophet (pbuh) asked:
(O Messenger of Allah!) What is an excuse?
The Prophet (pbuh) answered:
Fear or illness! (Abu Dawud, Salah, 46/551)
Based on the hadith, Muslim scholars listed the following excuses which
make it permissible to not attend to a congregation:
106
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Getting our share from the spiritual rewards of prayers and supplications
that are said in congregation,
Establishing friendship among Muslims and its continuation,
Helping each other in obeying and worshipping Allah,
Learning how the Chapters of the Quran can be better recited by listening to the imams recitation,
Performing the prayer perfectly and in a state of awe
Praying in congregation strengthens the consciousness of being the followers of the same religion by being at the same row in worshipping Allah without
discrimination of nation, color, language, position, or rank and by ensuring the
social solidarity, cooperation, and accounting. In a social environment where
individuals share common thoughts and goals, individual differences can
mostly be solved. In such environments, feelings of equality and brotherhood
are established in the hearts and religious excitement is experienced.
The exemplary generation that obeyed Allah and His Messenger, the Noble Companions of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), used to pay extreme attention to praying with the congregation. Abdullah bin Masud (r.a.) expressed
this fact saying:
I swear to Allah, I have not seen anyone of us who missed the congregation except the hypocrites whose insincerities were known to all. I swear to
Allah, even sick people who cant stand properly used to come with the help
of others and stayed standing up in between two people on his sides and with
their helpperformed his prayer. (Muslim, Masajid, 256-257)
Another good example in this topic is the following:
There were two Muslims during the time of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh).
One of them was a tradesman and the other one was an ironsmith who made
swords. When the tradesman heard the call (adhan), he would put his scale
down if he was holding it at the time or just leave it if it was on the floor and
run to the Prophets Mosque.
The ironsmith would leave his hammer if it was on an anvil and if he lifted
his hammer to stroke to a sword, he would just drop it to the floor and run to
the Prophets Mosque. In order to praise them and others who are like them,
Almighty Allah revealed the following noble verse:
108
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
By men whom neither traffic nor merchandise can divert from the
remembrance of Allah, nor from regular prayer, nor from the practice of
regular charity: Their (only) fear is for the day when hearts and eyes will be
transformed (in a world wholly new). (Al-Nur; 24:37) (Kurtubi, XII, 184)
One day in the market, Ibn Masud (r.a.) saw a group of people who were
running to a prayer by leaving their stuff just like that upon hearing the call to
prayer. Upon that, he said:
Now, these are the kind of people that Allah praised in the (above mentioned) 37th verse of chapter al-Nur (Light). (Haythami, VII, 83)
4. The Friday Prayer (Salat Al-Juma)
.
:
49. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Any person who takes a bath lustration on Friday as if cleansing from major
impurities and then goes to mosque for Friday prayer early, he gets rewarded as if
he had sacrificed a camel (in Allahs cause); and whoever goes in the second hour
it is as if he had sacrificed a cow; and whoever goes in the third hour, then it is
as if he had sacrificed a horned ram; and if one goes in the fourth hour, then it is
as if he had sacrificed a hen; and whoever goes in the fifth hour then it is as if he
had offered an egg. When the Imam ascends the pulpit (i.e. starts delivering the
khutba (sermon)), the angels present themselves to listen to the khutba. (Bukhari,
109
Juma, 4; Muslim, Juma, 10. Also see Abu Dawud, Taharah, 127/351; Tirmidhi, Juma, 6/499; Nasai, Juma, 14/1386)
.
:
50. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
He who performs ablution well, then comes to Friday prayer, listens (to the
sermon) silently, all his sins between that time and the next Friday will be forgiven with three days extra; and he who touches pebbles, causes an interruption, his
rewards will be incomplete. (Muslim, Juma, 27. Also see. Abu Dawud, Salah, 202-203/1050;
Tirmidhi, Juma, 5/498; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 62, 81)
.
:
51. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) talked
about Friday and said:
There is an hour (opportune time) on Friday and if a Muslim gets it while
praying and asks something from Allah, then Allah will definitely meet his demand.
110
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
And he (the Prophet) pointed out the shortness of that time with his
hands. (Bukhari, Jum`a, 37; Talak, 24; Daawat, 61; Muslim, Musafirin, 166, 167; Juma, 13-15.
Also see Tirmidhi, Juma, 2/490, 491; Nasai, Juma, 45/1428; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 99)
52. Abu Huraira and Ibn Umar (r.a.) reported hearing the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) saying while giving a khutbah (sermon):
Some people either stop abandoning the Friday Prayer or Allah the Almighty seal their hearts so they join the ignorant ones. (Muslim, Juma, 40. Also see
Nasai, Juma, 2/1368; Ibn Majah, Masajid, 17)
Explanations:
Friday Prayer (Salat al-Juma) is One of the manifestations of the importance that Islam attached to socialization. As a matter of fact, the word Juma
comes from the root jamaa which means gathering or coming together.
Friday is accepted as a holiday for believers58 and many hadith are reported
mentioning its virtues. This is a virtuous day because the Friday Prayer is specific to this day, which is one of the most important acts of worships that gathers
all the Muslims together. And it has a moment in it which all supplications are
accepted. Many important incidents took place on this day. Allah the Almighty
gets pleased to see His servants worshipping together. For this reason, He regards the acts of worship performed in congregation, such as the Friday prayer
(Salat al-Juma), the festivity prayers (Salat al-Eidain), and pilgrimage (Hajj)
more virtuous than acts of worship performed alone.
Allah says about Friday in a noble verse:
Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 83.
111
58.
Due to His mercy on His servants, Allah always commanded the things
that are good for them. When the call to prayer (adhan) is heard, leaving everything behind and running to the Friday Prayer is one of them. That is because
it helps to ensure the eternal salvation.
The divine rewards are more for those who make some preparations before going to the Friday Prayer and go to the mosque as early as possible. The
terms used in the first hadith such as the second hour, the third hour were
not used in their literal meanings but rather short time intervals between the
time that the congregation begins to assemble and the imam starts delivering
his sermon. The goal is to make people pay attention to such an important worship by encouraging them towards it.
To get ready for the Friday Prayer, first of all, one may perform the major
ablution (ghusl). The Prophet (pbuh) said:
If any one of you performs ablution (on Friday) this is all right; and if any of
you takes a bath, that is even more virtuous. (Abu Dawud, Taharah, 128/354; Tirmidhi,
Juma 5/497)
In order not to bother people, one must complete his personal care such as
brushing the teeth, grooming the hair and beard, putting on clean clothes, and
wearing nice perfumes. (Bukhari, Juma, 6, 19; Abu Dawud, Taharah, 128/353)
Mosques should be cleaned and deodorized, and if possible one should
recite chapters of sajdah and dahr in the dawn Prayer, chapters of juma and almunafiqun (Hypocrites) or ala and ghashiya in Friday prayer, al-kahf,59 during
the day, and remember and pray Allah and invoke blessings on the Messenger
of Allah. As a matter of fact, the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Friday is among the most excellent of your days...so invoke more blessings
on me on that day, because your blessings will be submitted to me. (Abu Dawud,
Salah, 201/1047)
59.
112
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
A Muslim who gets ready for Friday Prayer should walk to a mosque instead of taking a ride whenever it is possible. That is because acting this way
is more suitable for the state of modesty and awe. One must pay attention not
to bother anyone while going to a mosque and in the mosque and should not
disturb others trying to get to the front rows. If a sermon is given before the
prayer, one must listen quietly, and if there is no sermon, one should keep
himself busy with remembering Allah and performing supererogatory acts of
worship. While the Khutbah is delivered, one must listen carefully to what the
imam is saying and listen to him quietly without paying attention to anything
else.
In the second hadith, we are informed that a Friday Prayer performed
in accordance with its proper rules becomes expiation for minor sins of ten
days. In other words, Allah the Almighty responds to a good deed with ten
times the rewards and shows his mercy to His servants. In forgiving the sins,
the three extra days that is special to Friday Prayer indicates the significance
of this particular worship. From this and other similar sayings of the Prophet
(pbuh), it is understood that our Lord Almighty wants to forgive us in every
chance possible.
In the hadith, it is stated that a person who plays with pebbles would waste
his time and be deprived of the rewards of Friday prayer. With this approach,
it is intended that Muslims should listen to the sermon carefully and get informed about the issues of the society and pay attention to them together.
In the time of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), the floor of the mosques
and prayer rooms were covered with sand and pebbles. Today, the same thing
applies to those who perform their prayers outside a mosque. However, the real
object of this hadith is to warn about not listening to the imam and being busy
with something else while the sermon is being delivered and also distracting
others. The thing that distracts our attention can be a pebble or a cell phone,
the design of the rug, or something else. The warning of the Messenger of Allah
is for us to get more benefit from the virtues of the Friday Prayer.
113
114
Bukhari, Adhan, 14, 16; Muslim, Musafirin, 304; Abu Dawud, Salah, 238; Tirmidhi, Jumuah,
24/523.
Muslim, Jumuah, 67-71; Musafirin, 104; Bukhari, Tahajjud, 25, 29.
For details on Jumuah see Hayreddin Karaman, Cuma article in Diyanet slm
Ansiklopedisi,VIII, 87; slmn Inda Gnn Meseleleri, I, 14-63.
Muslim, Jumuah, 16.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Therefore, the reason behind the hadith that prohibits talking or doing
something else while the sermon is delivered can better be understood. One
must certainly ask from Allah something good and benefitial both in this world
and the Hereafter rather than asking for something bad or forbidden.
After the performance of the Friday Prayer, everyone can return to their
work, provided that one must never forget Allah in the pace of life
In the noble verses, it is said that:
And when the Prayer is finished, then may you disperse through the
land, and seek of the Bounty of Allah and celebrate the Praises of Allah
often (and without stint): that you may prosper. But when they see some
bargain or some amusement, they disperse headlong to it, and leave thee
standing. Say: The (blessing) from the Presence of Allah is better than any
amusement or bargain! And Allah is the Best to provide (for all needs).
(Al-Juma; 62:10-11)
Therefore, a believer should never prefer worldly benefits over the rewards
of Friday Prayer. One must know that the rewards of Allah for those who attend the Friday Prayer are better than everything else. Showing negligence by
worrying about earning a livelihood is a sign of forgetting one of the divine attributes of Allah, i.e. al-Razzaq (The Provider). As a matter of fact, all creatures
livelihoods are bestowed upon them by Allah. The forgiveness, mercy, and paradise that Allah will bestow upon them are better than everything in this world
combined. Abandoning the Friday Prayer by forgetting all these facts causes
the destruction of eternal happiness. This fact expressed in the fourth hadith
is also expressed in another narration as:
He who leaves the Friday prayer (continuously) for three Fridays on account of slackness, Allah will print a stamp on his heart. (Abu Dawud, Salah, 203204/1052; Tirmidhi, Juma, 7/500)
Those whose hearts are sealed lose the ability to turn to Allah and to the
right path by missing out the blessing and favor of Allah. In order to be saved
from this situation, one must pledge not to act wrong anymore, ask for the forgiveness of Allah, and even give alms and do good deeds to show his sincerity.
(Abu Dawud, Salah, 203-204/1053-54)
115
.
:
53. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying:
When the month of Ramadan starts, the gates of Heaven are opened and
the gates of Hell are closed and the devils are chained. (Bukhari, Bad al-khalk, 11;
Muslim, Siyam, 1, 2, 4, 5)
.
:
(
:
)
. :
54. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah said, All the deeds of Adams sons (people) are for them, except fasting
which is for Me, and I will give the reward for it. Fasting is a shield or protection
116
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
from the fire and from committing sins. If one of you is fasting, he should avoid
saying bad words and quarreling, and if somebody should fight or quarrel with
him, he should say, I am fasting. The Prophet added; By Him in Whose Hands
my soul is, the unpleasant smell coming out from the mouth of a fasting person is
better in the sight of Allah than the smell of musk. There are two pleasures for the
fasting person, one at the time of breaking his fast, and the other at the time when
he will meet his Lord. (Bukhari, Sawm, 9; Muslim, Siyam, 163)
.
:
55. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever does not give up forged speech and evil actions, Allah is not in need
of his leaving his food and drink (i.e. Allah will not accept his fasting). (Bukhari,
Sawm, 8, Edeb, 51. Also see Abu Dawud, Sawm, 26/2362; Tirmidhi, Sawm, 16/707; Ibn Majah,
Siyam, 21)
Explanations:
Ramadan, the Sultan of the 12 months64, is a blessed65 time period and
a month of worship. In this month, the doors of heaven open up and divine
mercy beams everywhere. More rewards are given to worships performed and
good deeds done in this month than the rest of the year. Sins are also forgiven
in this month. Muslims live through a season of intensive acts of worship in
congregation.
The main reasons why the month of Ramadan is so virtuous are:
Beyhaki, Shuab, III, 314-315; Haythami, III, 140.
Ahmad, II, 230, 385.
117
64.
65.
118
Translators note: Some translate the name of this night as the Night of Worth.
Qadr (Power, Fate); 97:3.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) came out his house, and he saw a
group of people praying at the corner of the mosque. He asked:
What are they doing?
They do not know the Quran well, so Ubayy b. Kab (r.a.) is leading them
in their prayers!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
They did the right thing and it is good what they did! (Abu Dawud, Ramadan,
1/1377)
On the other hand, both the obligatory alms (zakat) and supererogatory
alms become more important in this month. As a matter of fact, when it is
asked to the Messenger of Allah:
What kind of alms (sadaqah) is more virtuous? He said:
The one given in Ramadan! (Tirmidhi, Zakat, 28/663)
The word sadaqah in this hadith means the obligatory alms (zakat) in
Arabic. For this reason, it is better to give zakat in Ramadan. The Companions
of the Prophet (pbuh) used to give amply their Sadaqah al-Fitr (alms given during the month of Ramadan) and other charities in this month.68 That is because
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that Sadaqah al-Fitr is obligatory
for adults and children, males and females, independents and slaves and it is
either one sa from date or barley.69 (Bukhari, Zakat, 70-78; Muslim, Zakat, 13)
By giving the Sadaqah al-Fitr before the Festival Prayer (salat al-eid), it
should be ensured that the poor also experience the joy of eid.
In order to take advantage of the blessings of Ramadan, one must increase
his generosity. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to act
this way.
Ibn Abbas (r.a.) narrated:
The Prophet was the most generous amongst the people, and he used to
be more so in the month of Ramadan when Gabriel visited him, and Gabriel
used to meet him on every night of Ramadan till the end of the month. The
Prophet used to recite the Holy Quran to Gabriel, and when Gabriel met him,
Bukhari, Keffaratul-Ayman, 5.
Sa is a measure of weight that is equal either to 2,751 kg or 3,328 kg.
119
68.
69.
he used to be more generous than a fast wind (which causes rain and welfare).
(Bukhari, Bad al-Wahy, 5, 6; Sawm, 7; Manaqib, 23; Bad al-Khalk, 6; Fadail al-Quran, 7; Adab,
39; Muslim, Fadail, 48, 50)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
:
:
Al-Baqarah; 2/185.
Sawm al-wisal is fasting for two or three days without breaking it.
Tirmidhi, Sawm, 17/708.
Bukhari, Sawm, 45; Muslim, Siyam, 48.
121
70.
71.
72.
73.
.
56. Aisha (r.a.) narrated:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to retire in the mosque during the
last ten days of Ramadan and devote himself to worship and say:
Search for the Night of Qadr in the last ten days of Ramadan. (Bukhari, Laylat
al-Qadr, 3; Muslim, Siyam, 219; Tirmidhi, Sawm, 72/792)
.
:
57. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever establishes prayers on the night of Qadr out of sincere faith and
hoping for a reward only from Allah, then all his previous sins will be forgiven.
(Bukhari, Sawm, 6; Muslim, Musafirin, 173-176)
: : .
: :
.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Acts of worship performed in this night are more rewarding than the ones
performed in a thousand months that do not have a Night of Power in them.
The things that will take place until the next year are told to angels on this
night. In this night, Gabriel (pbuh) and many other angles descend on earth.
In this night, people are protected from all kinds of evil; peace and tranquility
covers everywhere until the sunrise. Angels descending on Earth greet believers by whom they stop and pray for them and for their forgiveness. They also
bear witness to their worship on the Day of Judgment and intercede for that
person.
In our first hadith, it is advised that one must search for the Night of Power
in the last ten days of Ramadan. In other narrations, it is also advised to search
for it in the odd days of the last ten days of Ramadan75, in the twenty fourth
night,76 and twenty seventh nights.77 Some of the Noble Companions dreamt
that the Night of Power is in the last seven days of Ramadan and told that to the
Messenger of Allah. Upon that, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
It seems that all your dreams agree that (the Night of Qadr) is in the last
seven nights, and whoever wants to search for it (i.e. the Night of Qadr) should
search in the last seven (nights of Ramadan). (Bukhari, Laylat al-Qadr, 2; Tabir, 8;
Muslim, Siyam, 205-206)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us about the signs of this night as:
In the morning of the Night of Power, the sun rises without brightness, and
it looks like a bowl until it gets high. (Muslim, Musafirin, 179; Abu Dawud, Ramadan,
2/1378; Tirmidhi, Sawm, 72/793)
74.
75.
76.
77.
124
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Night of Power is bright and it is neither hot nor cold. It is without
clouds, rain, and wind. There would not be a falling star in that night either
(Tabarani, Kabir, XXII, 59; Haythami, III, 178-179; Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 334)
125
78.
In the third hadith, one of the prayers that can be said in the Night of
Power is taught. As other prayers can be said in the Night of Power, this night
can also be spent by performing worships such as praying, reciting the Quran,
asking for forgiveness of sins and promising not to do them again, remembering Allah, saying praises for His messenger, and deeply thinking. Those who
have missed prayers should at least make up one day (five) of those missed
prayers. Apart from these, one should spend the day of the Night of Power by
performing good deeds such as pleasing and helping others, giving charities
and cheering up the needy. The least one can do to take advantage of the Night
of Power is to join a congregation in the evening prayer (Salat al-Maghrib), the
night prayer (Salat al-Isha), and the dawn prayer (Salat al-Fajr). (See Baihaqi,
Shuab, III, 340)
To stay up all night might not be possible for everyone. However, in compliance with the Sunnah of the Messenger of Allah, it is quite possible for anyone during the last seven days of Ramadan to decrease the sleeping time and
increase the time spend worshipping and to reserve some time from the early
and late hours of the night for the acts of worship.
Those who do not benefit from Ramadan, fasting, and the Night of Power
and reach the end of Ramadan without receiving forgiveness are miserable
people. They insist and resist on staying away from goodness and Allahs mercy.
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Woe to him who found the blessed month of Ramadan and let it pass by
without gaining forgiveness! (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 100/3545)
c. Utilizing the Festivity (Eid) Days
.
:
59. Abu Umamah (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
126
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Whoever spends the nights of Eid al-Fitr (the festival day at the completion
of the month of Ramadan) and Eid al-Adha (the festival day at the completion of
the pilgrimage to Mecca) worshipping and hoping for a reward only from Allah,
then his heart will not die on the day when all hearts will. (Ibn Majah, Siyam, 68.
Also see Haythami, II, 198)
:
.
60. Nubayshah (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
We forbade you to eat the sacrifice meat for more than three days in order
that you might have abundance. Now Allah has produced abundance, so you
may eat, store up, and seek reward from Allah by distributing some. Beware, the
days of Eid are days of eating, drinking and remembrance of Allah, Most High.
(Abu Dawud, Al-Dahaya, 9-10/2812, 2813)79
Explanations:
At the time when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) emigrated from Mecca
to Medina, there were two festivals in which people of Medina used to perform
various plays. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saw this and said:
Corresponding to these two festivals, Allah gave you better ones, Eid al-Fitr
and Eid al-Adha (Ahmad, III, 103, 178, 235, 250; Abu Dawud, Salah, 239/1134; Nasai, Idain,
1/1554)
In the time of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), when it was Eid Al-Adha, there came a group
of needy Bedouin people. Upon that, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) ordered not to keep the
meat of the sacrificed animal for more than three days and asked it to be distributed. Later
when the prosperity increased, he abrogated this rule while still encouraging Muslims to
cooperate and help the poor. (Muslim, Adahi, 28, 34; Abu Dawud, Adahi, 9-10/2812)
127
79.
Eid days are the signs of Allahs mercy. Eid days are exceptional days where
feelings of forgiveness, tolerance, cooperation, conciliation, affection, kindness,
and goodness are experienced. Those believers who devote themselves to worship in Ramadan and Hajj and achieve forgiveness and contentment of Allah
are the ones who benefit more comfortably from the blessings of Allah in eid
days. In a sense, the festivity days represent the believers reception of the blessings of Paradise by completing the test of this world that is full of hardships and
their affection with other believers there without having any negative feelings
in their hearts such as envy, jealousy, or hatred. Actually, the real eid is on that
day. As a matter of fact, the friends of Allah said:
The real eid is not for those who put on new clothes but for those who are
secure from Allahs torment.
In the first hadith, we are given the good news that the hearts of those
believers who spend the nights of eid days worshipping, remembering Allah,
supplication, and thinking of Allah will not die. That is because they are the
people who experienced the joy of worshipping Allah and can keep their carnal self under control. While all others pursue their carnal desires, they enjoy
worshipping by not falling for the temporal joys. Even if they coincide with an
era where hearts are dead due to ubiquity of sins, their hearts stay alive, they do
not prefer the world over hereafter, and they never fall into disbelief. Also, their
aftermath is goodness. Those people do not get surprised and terrified neither
at the time of their death or in their grave nor on the Day of Judgment but
rather go to their Lord with a peaceful heart. That is because they experience
the joy of worshipping. They realize and are conscious of the fact that they are
in this world for a test and should take advantage of this world of opportunities
until their last minute.
When something is rare and difficult to perform, it means a higher value.
While most people forget worshipping with the excitement of eid, performing
acts of worship during the nights of the eids shows the strength of faith and
love of Allah for those who worship. Even if all hearts die, such hearts that are
full of faith and love of Allah never die.
In our second hadith, we are informed that the days of eid are the days of
social solidarity and unity, exchanging gifts, cooperation, treating each other
with respect and honor, and benefitting from the divine blessings and remembering Allah. Otherwise, eid days are not days of vacation and entertainment.
128
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
In other words, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave permission to Muslims to celebrate eids in this way even though he did not watch it himself. Also
on another eid day, a group that came from Ethiopia was playing with shields
and spears in the mosque. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) let Aisha watch this
game over his shoulders hiding her behind himself and covering her with his
wrap. (Bukhari, Idain, 2; Salah, 69)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) always emphasized the spiritual side of
the eids in order for these permissible entertainments and the atmosphere of
celebration not to go beyond acceptable limits. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
who encouraged worshipping, doing well, and remembering Allah in eids said
in a hadith:
The first thing to be done on this day (first day of Eid) is to pray. (Bukhari,
Idain, 3, 10; Muslim, Adahi, 7)
Beautify your eid days with saying al-Takbir (Allahu Akbar God is Greatest)! (Haythami, II, 197)
Indeed, the Companions of the Prophet (pbuh) kept eid days alive with
saying Takbirs. Umar used to say Takbirs in his small tent in Mina and people
in the mosque used to repeat after him. When people in the market also joined
them, the Mina would be reverberated with the sound of Takbirs. Ibn Umar
used to say Takbir continuously on eid days. He used to say Takbir after each
prayer, when he went to sleep, when he entered his tent, while sitting or walking, in other words, at all times and conditions during these assigned days.
(Bukhari, Idain, 12)
129
130
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
On the eid day, first we send our holiday wishes to our relatives who have
already passed away and who are waiting for our prayers and rewards of giving
alms in their names. Their souls get exalted by reciting the chapter al-Fatiha
and giving alms in their names. By taking lessons from their situation, we realize that we need to get ready for the real eid. Then, we need to visit our relatives
and friends and inquire after their health. Everybody forgives his rightful dues
on each other and those who offended each other reconcile.
There are some things that Islam considers nice to be done on the eid days.
Some of them are:
To wake up early on eid days, to perform ghusl (bath lustration), to clean
the mouth by using a miswaq,80 to wear nice fragrances, to put on clean and
nice clothes, to be happy and cheerful to thank the blessings of Allah etc.
It is better to perform the eid prayer in an open and wide space. It is preferred that men, women, and children come to an open and wide place called
Musalla.81 Even women who could not perform the ritual prayer (due to menstruation) are advised to come and join this good deed and prayers of Muslims.
That is because having the more people who attend the eid prayers the more it
carries the meaning of showing strength of believers and exalting the religion
of Allah.
It is sunnah to eat something sweet before going to prayer of Eid al-Fitr.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) would not go to Eid Prayer without eating a few
dates. In addition, he used to pay attention that the number of the dates would
be odd such as three or five. (Bukhari, Idain, 4)
81.
Translators note: Miswaq is a small stick from a special tree that was used widely to clean the
teeth prior to the widespread usage of toothbrushes.
Musalla/ Jamat khana: An open-air place designated for prayer. Particularly, certain
designated places away from residential centers, where eid prayers, prayers for rain (Salat
al-Istisqa), and funeral prayers are held. This term is also used for the open-air prayer rooms
built next to roadways for travelers to utilize. When the Messenger of Allah went for a
long expedition, in places where he rested, a suitable place would be determined and this
place would be cleaned and bordered with rocks and announced to be the musalla. In the
Tabuk Expedition of the Prophet, fifteen of open-air musallas were made in various places.
(Waqidi, III, 999; Ibn Hisham, IV, 179) The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also established
several musallas on the way to Mecca. (Bukhari, Salah, 49) This Sunnah (tradition of the
Prophet) continued in the coming eras and sometimes musallahs became places where the
army camped. (Nebi Bozkurt, Namazgah, Diyanet slm Ansiklopedisi, XXXII, 357-358).
131
80.
It is considered better not to eat anything until the end of the prayer of Eid
al-Adha82 and eat later from the meat of the sacrificed animal. That is because
acting this way shows the importance and respect given to the sacrifice.83
Reciting Takbirs silently in Eid al-Fitr and audibly in Eid al-Adha, taking a
different way if possible when returning from the Eid Prayer,84 treating people
in a friendly manner and saying nice things to Muslims when coming across
them, and give alms as much as possible are among the beauties of the Eid.
Another issue is that the Prophet did not consider appropriate to carry
weapons on Eid days in mosques, markets, and where people congregate when
there is no danger of enemy. (Bukhari, Idain, 9; Salah, 66, Fitan, 7; Muslim, Birr, 120-124;
Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 168; Abdurrazzak, Musannaf, III, 289)
.
:
61. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
When you pay the Zakat of your wealth, you would become paid your debt
(responsibility). (Tirmidhi, Zakat, 2/618)
:
82.
83.
84.
132
.
:
Translators note: The religious festival day marking the completion of Al Hajj when Muslims
remember and commemorate the trials and triumphs of the Prophet Abraham.
Shah Waliyyullah al-Dahlawi, Hujjatullah al-baligha, II, 79.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to use different roads when going to and returning
from the Eid Prayers. (Bukhari, Idain, 24)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
. (
62. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If someone is made wealthy by Allah and that person does not pay the
Zakat of his wealth, then on the Day of Resurrection his wealth will be made like
a poisonous male snake with two black spots over the cheeks (which show the intensity of torment and poison). The snake will encircle the owners neck and bite
his both cheeks and say:
I am your wealth, I am your treasure (that you loved a lot on Earth)!
Then the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) recited the following noble verses as
evidence to his words:
And let not those who covetously withhold of the gifts which Allah
has given them of His Grace, think that it is good for them: Nay, it will be
the worse for them: soon shall the things which they covetously withheld be
tied to their necks like a twisted collar, on the Day of Judgment. To Allah belongs the heritage of the heavens and the earth; and Allah is well-acquainted
with all that you do. (Al-i-Imran; 3:180) (Bukhari, Zakat, 3)
Explanations:
Allah the Almighty, who provided His servants with various blessings, informed us that there is a share of the poor in our wealth.85 This amount called
zakat is not a charity that the wealthy gives out of their will but it is the right
of the poor determined by Allah. Unless one gives this amount to its rightful
owner, i.e. the poor, he would become liable. For this reason, in the first hadith,
it is expressed that when we pay Zakat, we would pay our debt and be saved
from this responsibility.
On the other hand, zakat is an expression of the thanks that the wealthy
need to show for Allahs divine blessings that they have. Allah the Almighty
Zariyat 51/19; Maarij 70/24-25.
133
85.
informed us that when thanked He will increase His blessings and in the case
of ungratefulness His torment will be harsh. (Ibrahim; 14:7)
While Allah makes us liable for paying the zakat, as always, He did not
withhold His mercy from His servants and bestow His favor upon those who
paid their zakat.
Above all, the word zakat means to purify and to increase. Our
Exalted Lord purifies the carnal selves of those who pay their zakat appropriately by obeying Allahs command from undesirable characteristics such as
egoism, greediness, love of wealth and worldly goods and place them among
His servants who have good moral characters. In addition to that, He increases
their wealth by purifying it and deeming it permissible. In the following noble
verses of the Quran, Allah says:
Of their goods, take alms,86 that so you mightiest purify and sanctify
them (Al-Tawbah; 9:103)
and nothing do you spend in the least (in His cause) but He replaces
it for He is the Best of those who grant Sustenance. (Al-Saba; 34:39)
After explaining who should give sadaqah al-Fitr and how much he should
give, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in support of this point:
Those of you who are rich will be purified by Allah, and those of you who
are poor will have more than they gave returned by Him to them. (Abu Dawud,
Zakat, 21/1619)
It is known to everyone that the wealth of the sincere and generous people
who give the zakat of their wealth and help the poor increases day by day for
unforeseen reasons. It is unquestionable that the happiness of the poor has a
great effect in this increase.
Also in one of the ahadith that we mentioned under the title of Delightfulness of Faith, it is expressed that those who pay zakat out of their wealth
with peace of heart and use for this purpose the mid-quality goods instead of
86.
The term Sadaqa in Quran and hadith sometimes means Zakat. Since the zakat indicates
the sincerity (sadaqat) and maturity of the giver, it is also called Sadaqa. As a matter of
fact:
The hadith of Sadaqa is evidence points out this fact. (Muslim, Taharat, 1) However, while
sadaqah is used for obligatory (fard) and supererogatory (nafilah) monetary worships, the
term zakat is only used for obligatory ones.
134
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
the worst quality ones will experience the delight of faith. (Abu Dawud, Zakat,
5/1582)
As there are many personal benefits of giving zakat, there are also indispensable functions of zakat in terms of social order. Zakat is a bridge between
people of the society who are at different financial levels and it ensures social unity. It minimizes the gap between the poor and the rich. By decreasing
number of the poor, zakat prevents many unpleasant acts that can take place
because of financial distress. It prevents the feelings that may take root in the
hearts of the poor against rich people such as jealousy and hatred. Zakat brings
people together by fastening the bonds of love, respect, and brotherhood. For
this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Zakat is the bridge of Islam. (Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 20, 195; Haythami, III, 62)
This hadith also implies that zakat will be a bridge in the Hereafter. As
narrated by Qatadah;
Zakat is a bridge between Hell and Paradise. Whoever pays their zakat
crosses the bridge and goes to Paradise. (Abdurrazzak, Musannaf, IV, 108)
When zakat is not paid, all these benefits are reversed and big losses take
place both for the individual and the society. In the second hadith, the sad
aftermath is explained. While the example given in this hadith expresses the
torment in the Hereafter, it also describes the uneasiness of those who do not
perform their responsibility of giving zakat. Those who spare their wealth from
Allah which Allah has bestowed upon them and those who as a result get morally corrupted would neither be happy in this world nor in the hereafter. As
the illness of greediness that is not cured by giving zakat puts one in a difficult
situation in this world, it also leaves him with the poisons of the snakes in the
Hereafter.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following about this harmful illness:
Is there a worse illness than greediness?! (Bukhari, Al-Adabul Mufrad, no: 296.
Also see Bukhari, Humus, 15, Maghazi, 73; Ahmad, III, 308)
The most harmful thing that exists in a human is being extremely greedy
and intense fear. (Abu Dawud, Jihad, 20/2511)
135
In another hadith, the Prophet listed greediness among the features that
cause destruction. (Munawi, III, 404/3471)
Is it possible to be comfortable and peaceful for those who are struggling
in the claws of greediness by not giving their zakat and therefore accumulating the rights and envy of others in their wealth? Those who live distant from
love and prayer in this world are of course going to receive the harshest penalty
in the Hereafter. As they cannot benefit from their wealth in this world, more
than what they could have paid as their zakat will be taken from them due to
various causes.
As the number of those who act reluctant in paying their zakat, zakat may
start to be seen as a heavy burden in the society and get forgotten all together in
time. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that the societies that come
to this situation would receive some kind of punishment.87 Once he said:
Societies that neglect their Zakat will indeed be deprived of rain and if they
did not have animals, they would totally be deprived of rain. (Ibn Majah, Fitan, 22;
Hakim, IV, 583/8623)
In other words, when zakat is not paid, Allah withholds His blessings from
the society. The rain and other blessings are given for the sake of Servants of
Allah who bow down to worship, who are innocent, and for animals. As zakat
is neglected, deep gaps emerge between the rich and the poor which endangers
the social order. This leads many needy people to do wrong things. As a result,
neither rich nor poor would live in peace. Drawing our attention to this danger,
Allah the Almighty says:
And spend of your substance in the cause of Allah,88 and make not
your own hands contribute to (your) destruction; but do good; for Allah
loves those who do good. (Al-Baqarah; 2:195)
Those mentioned hitherto are the harms of neglecting zakat in respect
to this world. On the other hand, as partially mentioned in the hadith, we are
informed that the punishment in the Hereafter will be very harsh. Allah the
Almighty says:
87.
88.
136
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
And there are those who burry gold and silver and spend it not in
the way of Allah, announce unto them a most grievous penalty on the Day
when heat will be produced out of that (wealth) in the fire of Hell, and with
it will be branded their foreheads, their flanks, and their backs: This is the
(treasure) which you buried for yourselves: taste you, then, the (treasures)
you buried! (Al-Tawbah; 9:34-35)
There are many ahadith on this topic. One of them is:
A woman came to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and she was accompanied by her daughter who wore two heavy gold bangles in her hands.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked to the woman:
Do you pay zakat on them?
She said:
No.
He then said:
Are you pleased that Allah may put two bangles of fire on your hands? 89
Thereupon she took them off and placed them before the Prophet (pbuh)
saying:
They are for Allah and His Apostle. (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 4/1563)
So, a believer should pay his zakat with peace of mind before it is too late
and before he regrets it. Otherwise, it will come a time that he would have missed
the opportunity and cannot pay his zakat even though he wants to. He will become sorry in regret and yearn. As a matter of fact, Ibn Abbas (r.a.) said:
Whoever would earn enough money to go to pilgrimage or pay zakat and
do not fulfill these obligatory acts would ask to go back the world at the time of
their death and recited the following verses:
O you who believe! Let not your riches or your children divert you
from the remembrance of Allah. If any act thus, the loss is their own and
spend something (in charity) out of the substance which We have bestowed
on you, before death should come to any of you and he should say, O my
There is a disagreement among Muslim scholars regarding zakat on jewelry. It would be
more prudent to pay zakat out of jewelry.
137
89.
Lord! Why did You not give me respite for a little while? I should then have
given (largely) in charity, and I should have been one of the doers of good.
But to no soul will Allah grant respite when the time appointed (for it) has
come; and Allah is well acquainted with (all) that you do. (Al-Munafiqun; 63:911) (Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 63/3316)
.
:
) ( :
63. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah said, Spend (O man), and I shall spend on you. Allahs hand [treasures]
is full, and (its fullness) is not affected by the continuous spending night and day. Do
you see what He has spent since He created the Heavens and the Earth? Nevertheless, what is in His Hand is not decreased. (Bukhari, Tafsir, 11/2; Tawhid, 22)
:
138
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
64. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If one gives in charity what equals one date-fruit from the honestly-earned
money --and Allah accepts only the honestly earned money, then Allah takes it
in His right (hand) and then enlarges its reward for that person (who has given
it), as anyone of you rears his foal, until it becomes as big as a mountain. (Bukhari,
Zakat, 8; Tawhid, 23; Muslim, Zakat, 63, 64. Also see Tirmidhi, Zakat, 28/661, Nasai, Zakat,
48/2523; Ibn Majah, Zakat, 28)
: .
:
65. Huraym b. Fatiq (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Those who spend his wealth on Allahs cause receive divine rewards as much
as seven hundred times of what they spent. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Jihad, 4/1625; Nasai,
Jihad, 45/3184)
: .
:
139
66. Aisha narrated that the family of the Messenger of Allah sacrificed a
sheep. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
What is left from it?
Aisha (r.a.) answered:
Only its scapula
Upon that, Prophet (pbuh) said:
In fact, except the shoulder blade, the whole sheep is here! (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 33/2470)
Explanations:
Allah the Almighty gave us everything that we need90 and wanted us to let
others benefit from these blessings. For this reason, while making to give one
fortieth of the wealth obligatory as zakat, He kept the door of Sadaqah (charity) open for those who want to give more and earn more divine rewards. As
long as one does not put himself and those who depend on him in a difficult
position, he can give alms as much as wants and is encouraged to do so. The
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) even said:
In ones wealth, there are rights other than zakat. (Tirmidhi, Zakat, 27/659-660.
Also see Al-Baqarah; 2:177)
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told the wisdom and virtues of
infaq (giving) and gave the following speech to his companions:
O people, give charity! O people give charity so that I can be witness to your
faith on the Day of Judgment with it. Maybe when one of you and the offspring
of his camels are full and comfortable, his nephew might be cringed from hunger.
Maybe when the trees of one of you give nice fruits and increase his wealth his
neighbor might be a poor person who does not have anything. Isnt there a man
who can give one of his camels as charity so it gives milk to poor in the morning
and evening and be a blessing to them? Be careful! The reward of this is huge.
(Alusi, X, 146, [Al-Tawbah; 9:79]; Ali al-Muttaqi, no: 16181)
90.
140
According to Islam, the real owner of the wealth that humans own is Allah. One must give
charity from this wealth which He gave it temperorarly to test him. (Al-Nur (Light) 24:33;
Hadid (Iron)57:7; Al-Baqara (The Cow) 2:3; Al-Rad (The Thunder) 13:22)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
In many hadith, we are given the good news that those who give charity
will not be deprived of anything and will definitely be compensated by calling
the divine mercy and receive blessings. In the first hadith, expressing this, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) encourages and motivates people to give charity by
saying that the treasures of our Exalted Lord will never end. In another hadith,
he said:
There are three things that I can swear to:
1. Sadaqah (charity) does not in any way decrease the wealth of a servant.
2. Allah advances the honor of those who are patient to unfairness done to
them.
3. Allah opens the door of poverty for those who open the door of begging.
(Tirmidhi, Zuhd, 17/2325. Also see Muslim, Birr, 69)
Then, one should absolutely not be afraid of giving charity asking for rewards only from Allah. As a matter of fact, for sure Allah the Almighty, while
continuously giving charity at all times to His servants can give more to those
who give alms. In a verse, it is stated in the Quran that:
Allah will deprive usury of all blessing, but will give increase for deeds
of charity: For He loves not creatures ungrateful and wicked. (Al-Baqarah;
2:276)
141
91.
rewards, and advances it unimaginably and responds with incomparable blessings. This situation shows that Allah gets very pleased when alms and charities are given. As a matter of fact, in order to express this, it is said that Allah
receives the alms with His right hand. The phrase right hand is an expression
that means Allah accepts alms with pleasure. Otherwise, Allah does not resemble any creature.
Another report that shows how Allah gets pleased with those who give
alms is as follows:
Before the alms are received by poor, they get received by Allah the Exalted.
Because of the alms given, apart from the rewards that will be given in the Hereafter for those who give the alms, Allah also closes the doors of seventy disasters in
this world. Leprosy, skin discoloration diseases, and some other serious illnesses
are among them. (Abu Nuaym, Hilya, IV, 81. Also see Haythami, III, 110, 111; Ali al-Muttaqi,
VI, 377/16134)
Another hadith that expresses Allahs pleasure when alms are given and
informs of its rewards in the Hereafter is as follows:
If any Muslim clothes a Muslim when he is naked, Allah will clothe him
with some green garments of Paradise; if any Muslim feeds a Muslim when he is
hungry, Allah will feed him with some of the fruits of Paradise; and if any Muslim gives a Muslim drink when he is thirsty, Allah will give him some of the pure
wine which is sealed to drink. (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 41/1682; Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 18/2449;
Ahmad, III, 13)
Once the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in order to explain the broad
and comprehensive blessings of charity:
Allah the Exalted puts three people into His paradise in return for a morsel
of bread, couple of dates, and other things that the poor can benefit from:
1. The owner of the house and the person who ordered to give these to the
poor,
2. The wife who prepares the things that are given,
3. The helper who takes the alms to the poor.
After stating this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) completed his words saying:
142
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Many thanks to Allah who does not forget anyone of us! (Haythami, III, 112)
On the other hand, giving out of wealth and life strenghtens the spirituality of a person and enriches his character. While people feel overwhelmed by
taking something from others, they get elevated by the things that they give.
Therefore, giving alms and treating others with respect helps a person to mature his spiritual life.
There is another important issue that must be expressed here. Above all,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) emphasized that alms should be given out of an
income that is rightfully earned. This is because the rightful earning is the essence of happiness both in this world and in the hereafter. In one of his sayings,
Allahs Messenger (pbuh) explained this condition as follows:
If a person earns an income from a prohibited way (haram) and if he
spends it, he does not benefit from it; and if he gives alms from this income, his
charity does not get accepted by Allah. The share that he leaves behind only gets
him closer to the Fire. That is because Allah does not erase wrongdoings with
other wrongdoing, but only with goodness. For sure, something evil does not exterminate another evil thing. (Ahmad, I, 387)
As it can be understood from our third hadith, the best charity is the one
done in the way of Allah, in other words to glorify His religion and deliver
His message to others. The rewards and blessings given to such charity are expressed in the hadith by a term indicating abundance. Or that number shows
the minimum level. As a matter of fact, Allah gives much more rewards or even
uncountable rewards to those whom He wishes. This is expressed in a noble
verse of the Quran as:
The parable of those who spend their substance in the way of Allah
is that of a grain of corn: it grows seven ears, and each ear has a hundred
grains. Allah gives manifold increase to whom He pleases and Allah cares
for all and He knows all things. (Al-Baqarah; 2:261)
Giving charity not only increases the wealth but also saves it from being
destroyed by perpetuating it. Wealth is always under the risk of being destroyed
in the hands of humans. Even if it stays safe, it might be spent unnecessarily
and turn into a sin. Even the wealth spent by the owner himself is considered
lost, wasted, or luxury if it does not get spent appropriately. When it comes to
wealth that is given as charity, it will be protected in the sight of Allah and turn
143
into a capital for eternal life depending upon the level of sincerity of the donor.
Indeed in our forth hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) explained this issue
in its best form. In other words, the wealth that is given as charity becomes ours
and the wealth spent is lost from us most of the time.
Allah the Almighty says:
Whatever of good you give benefits your own souls, and you shall
only do so seeking the Face of Allah. Whatever good you give, shall be
rendered back to you, and you shall not be dealt with unjustly. (Al-Baqarah;
2:272)
On the other hand, sadaqah (charity) prevents many troubles, both material and spiritual. Some of them are stated in various ahadith as follows:
As the water extinguishes fire, sadaqah extinguishes torment of the sins.
(Tirmidhi, Iman, 8/2616. Also see Ibn Majah, Fitan, 12)
Sadaqah extinguishes the anger of the Lord and protects one from dying in
a bad condition. (Tirmidhi, Zakat, 28/664)
The sadaqah that a Muslim gives lengthens his life time, prevents unfortunate dying, and Allah prevents arrogance, poverty, and pride with it. (Haythami,
III, 110)
Until everyone is judged (on the Day of Judgment), everyone will wait under the shade of the sadaqah that they have given.
Abul Hayr, one of the narrators of this hadith, did his best to give a
sadaqah every day even if it is a piece of cake, onion, or something small like
these (Ahmad, IV, 147-8; Haythami, III, 110)
In another hadith the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Sadaqah extinguishes the heat of the grave for its donor. A believer takes
a shade under the sadaqah he has given on the Day of Judgment. (Haythami, III,
110)
Hurry in giving sadaqah! For trouble cannot pass before sadaqah. (Haythami, III, 110)
According to what the Prophet informed us, a group of people visited Isa
(Jesus) (pbuh) and he said to them:
144
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Companions of the Prophet (pbuh) used to compete with each other
in helping others and giving charity. The following story is an exemplary incident speaking to this fact:
Umar (r.a.) narrated:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) commanded us to give charity. I was
wealthy at the time. I said to myself If I ever have a chance to exceed Abu Bakr,
this will be the day and gave half of my wealth to the Messenger of Allah.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
What did you leave for your family?
I left as much as what I brought here I said.
145
146
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
147
.
:
70. Abu Said al-Khudri (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said the following:
A man giving a dirham as sadaqah (charity) during his life is better than
giving one hundred dirhams as sadaqah (charity) at the moment of his death.
(Abu Dawud, Wasaya, 3/2866)
Explanations:
Sadaqah (charity) is considered the best way of doing goodness because
of its benefits to individuals and the society. Indeed under the previous title,
we have mentioned many narratives concerning the blessings and benefits of
sadaqah. Therefore, one must hurry to benefit from such an important act of
worship. This was one of the distinguishing attributes of the Messenger of Allah, who was always the leading figure in all good deeds. In the first and second hadith, we have seen examples of how the Messenger of Allah used to
hurry in giving charity. When the planned charity is postponed, the Messenger
148
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
of Allah (pbuh) got worried and he got up and went home leaving the congregation right after the prayer even if he did not typically used to act in this way.
He explained the reason for this when he returned as:
I remembered that there were some goods in our room saved to be given
as charity, and I hastened to order that they should be distributed among the
poor so that it would not prevent me to turn to Allah, and also I should not
worry about giving the account of postponing it on the Judgment Day.
One should hurry when he intends to do a good deed.For disasters may
ruin the wealth or other obstacles may come up. Most important of all, no one
knows when death will come. Therefore, it is not right to postpone performing good deeds and thinking about doing it later. Another point is that everything is better in their times; they would not have any value after their time
passes. Because of this, our ancestors said do not postpone the good deed of
the morning to the night!
In various occasions, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) forbade walking in
hurry in the mosques and stepping on the shoulders of those who are sitting.
However, it is understood from the second hadith that he encouraged to hurry
in giving charity and performing good deeds. This explains how much one
should hurry in performing good deeds and giving charities.
One of the most important benefits of the charity is to beautify human
soul by purifying it and to strengthen the donors faith. One needs this benefit
of sadaqah most during his youth and prime years. Young people who are in
the best years of their life think that they should earn more to raise their kids.
For this reason, they tend to save more and be stingy. Satan also scares one with
poverty and discourages giving sadaqah and charity (Al-Baqarah; 2:268)
To be able to give charity by opposing the inner self in such feelings is
something hard to accomplish. It is also considered as the best type of sadaqah
since it is very influential in disciplining the inner self. On the other hand charity given in this period of life shows that the person prefers the Hereafter over
this world and performs his deeds with a tranquil heart and sincerity. The good
deeds postponed to a time when all hopes are gone indicate that the person
acted selfish and preferred himself over his heirs. Their benefits would be little
even if Allah rewards them. That is because they have seen the end of the tunnel and lost their hopes from this world.
149
If someone gives alms in his young age by overcoming all of the difficulties, he benefits more but if he postpones it to the last minute, he loses. That is
because death may catch him before he gets a chance to give alms. After that,
even if he wants to give alms, he can not make others listen to him. As a matter
of fact, his wealth would already be about to change hands. Now, the wealth
that he has not spent due to his greed and love had fallen into hands of others
ambitions and desires. Therefore, a smart person should hurry in performing
good deeds when his health is alright and prepare himself for the Hereafter. If a
person does not personally do a good deed, he should not expect others to do it
on his behalf. What did he do for his ancestors to deserve to expect something
from his heirs? One must not forget that wealth spent in the way of Allah is his
real wealth and the wealth saved for himself becomes others at the very end.
The following narration is so meaningful and supports our point:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah the Almighty says:
O Son of Adam! How would you think that you could incapacitate Me?!
As a matter of fact, I have created you from a spit of water and shaped you in
a perfect and the most appropriate form in every aspect. You have walked on
earth in greed and arrogance within embellished clothing. You have buried your
children alive. (In other words, you have committed such major sins) You have
saved wealth and did not share it. You say I give charity at your last breath.
Is this the time to give charity? (Ahmad, IV, 210. Also see Ibn Majah, Wasaya, 4; Hakim,
II, 545/3855)
Since the mystery of testing starts to become clear at the last moments of
ones life, the time for some acts ends and the deeds that were very valuable
before do not mean a lot anymore. Pointing out to this side of the issue, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that the sadaqah given at the death bed
is not even as valuable as one hundredth of a charity given on time.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) described those who come to their senses
at the last minute as follows:
A man who emancipates a slave (or gives charity) at the time of his death is
like a man who gives the remaining food as present after satisfying his appetite.
(Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Itq, 15/3968; Tirmidhi, Wasaya, 7/2123)
150
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Usage of the term to give as a present is to show how ridiculous the situation of such people is. That is because those people think only themselves with
selfish feelings, and accept to share things with others only when they are full
and satisfied and do not need them anymore.
Another important issue regarding charity ordered to be given at the death
bed is that such charity becomes a will. A person who wants to give charity in
this state has the right of use only in one third of his wealth. Transactions exceeding this limit require the permission of the heirs. Besides, it is not permissible to give charity just to harm the heirs even if the amount does not exceed
one third of the wealth. The Righteous Predecessors (Salaf al-Salihin) said
about those who like to show off and act wastefully:
They rebel against Allah twice with their wealth. First, they are acting
stingily when they have the money in this world. Second, they are wasting their
wealth by distributing it on their death bed after they have already lost their
right over it. (Ibn Hajar, Fath al-Bari, V, 374/2597)
The following noble verse from the Quran is so alarming and eye-opening. It expresses the regret of those at the time of death who did not give charity
in time and earn rewards for Hereafter:
And spend something (in charity) out of the substance which We have
bestowed on you, before death should come to any of you and he should say,
O my Lord! Why did You not give me respite for a little while? I should
then have given (largely) in charity, and I should have been one of the doers
of good. (Al-Munafiqun; 63:10)
Apart from that, if a good heir comes and gives charity on behalf of his
ancestors, Allah accepts that as well:
According to the narration of Abdurrahman bin Abi Amra, once his
mother had wanted to emancipate a slave and postponed it till the next morning. However, she had passed away before the morning. Abdurrahman came to
Qasim b. Muhammad and asked:
If I emancipate a slave in the name of my mother, would she benefit
from it?
Qasim answered:
Once Sad bin Ubada came to the Messenger of Allah and asked:
151
71. Awf ibn Malik narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) entered the
masjid where we were, and he had a stick in his hand. A man had hung there
a bunch of low quality dried dates. He probed the bunch with the stick, and
said:
If the owner of this sadaqah (alms) wished to give a better one than this, he
could have done it. The owner of this sadaqah will eat low quality dates on the
Day of Judgment. (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 17/1608)
152
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------: : .
:
:
: :
:
:
: :
: :
:
.
73. Anas bin Malik (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
153
When Allah the Exalted has created the Earth, it started to shake. Upon
that Allah has created mountains and placed them on earth and stabilized it.
Angels were fascinated with the power of the mountains. They asked:
O our Lord, have You created a more powerful creature than mountains?
Allah said:
Yes, I have created the iron.
O our Lord, have You created something more powerful than the iron?
they asked. Allah the Exalted said:
Yes, I have created the fire. They asked:
O our Lord, have You created something more powerful than the fire? Allah the Exalted said:
Yes, I have created the water!
O our Lord, have You created something more powerful than the water?
they asked and He answered:
Yes, I have created the wind. They asked:
O our Lord, have You created something that is more powerful than the
wind? Allah said:
Yes, I have created the humankind. If he gives charity with his right hand
and keeps it secret even from his left hand, (he becomes more powerful than all of
the mentioned above). (Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 113-114/3369; Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 244)
Explanations:
Since the charity given for the sake of Allah reaches Allah before it reaches
to the poor, one must be careful about the quality of the goods saved for zakat
and charity. On the other hand, the quality of a persons charity should be as
good as he would like it to be if he were the receiver. When one thinks like this,
he is expected to give the best of his propert as zakat and sadaqah; however,
Allah is so merciful to His servants that He informed us that He accepts our
charities from the middle quality of our goods.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
154
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
when paying the zakat, one should not give an aged animal, nor one suffering from itch or ailing, and one most condemned, but one should give animals
of medium quality (to have the taste of faith), for Allah did not demand from you
the best of your animals, nor did He command you to give the animals of worst
quality. (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 5/1582)
When Allahs Messenger (pbuh) sent Muadh to Yemen, he told him to
invite them to believe in Allah, perform five-daily prayers, and pay their zakat,
and he added:
Avoid taking the best of their possessions (as zakat)! Be afraid of the curse of
an oppressed person because there is no screen between his invocation and Allah.
(Bukhari, Zakat, 63; Maghazi, 60; Tawhid, 1; Muslim, Iman, 29, 31)
Allah warned those who save the worst part of their property as zakat and
charity ignoring all these blessings and mercy of Allah the Almighty. Bara b.
Azib (r.a.) narrated:
Ansar used to hang bunches of dates to a rope tied between two columns
of Masjid al-Nabawi during the harvest time and the needy Muslim immigrants used to come and eat from them. Some ansar left dates with poor quality among the others by looking at the abundance of dates and thinking that it
would not matter. Allah the Almighty revealed the following verse about those
who acted like this:
O you who believe! Give of the good things which you have (honorably) earned, and of the fruits of the earth which We have produced for you,
and do not even aim at getting anything which is bad, in order that out of it
you may give away something, when you yourselves would not receive it except with closed eyes. And know that Allah is Free of all wants, and worthy
of all praise. (Al-Baqarah; 2:267) (Wahidi, p. 90)
In the first hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that those
who gave dates with poor quality as charity even if they could afford the better
ones will be punished in Hereafter. Since the punishment will be in terms of the
sin done, those who bring dates with poor quality will be fed by bad things in
the Hereafter. As a matter of fact, even the best blessings of this world would be
like pain compared to the unimaginable fruits of Paradise. One must imagine
how unfortunate it is to eat dates with poor quality there! Therefore, one must
155
never find it acceptable to give things to the poor which he himself would not
like.
One day Aisha (r.anha) wanted to give a piece of meat as sadaqah which
smelled a little different.
The Prophet (pbuh) told her:
Are you going to give something that you are not going to eat yourself?!
(Haythami, III, 113)
Again our mother Aisha asked the following question about a food that
the Messenger of Allah did not like:
O the Messenger of Allah, is it acceptable if we give it to the needy?
The Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
Do not give them something that you would not eat! (Ahmad, VI, 105, 123;
Haythami, III, 113; IV, 37)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Moreover, those who give sadaqah secretly gain the love of Allah. This is
expressed in another hadith:
A man comes to a community and asks for something not because he is
related to them but only in the name of Allah. They dont give what he asks for.
One of them slowly and secretly goes towards the rear of the community and gives
something to the man. (He gives so secretly that) only Allah and the man who
received the goods knows about it. (Allah loves this person) (Tirmidhi, Jannah,
25/2568; Nasai, Zakat, 75/2568)
In our third hadith, it is expressed how much power and strength that a
secretly given sadaqah provides humans. As a matter of fact, giving sadaqah
secretly requires a strength that is more than what mountains, fire, water, and
wind have. That is because acting in this manner requires overcoming greediness and desire to be known by opposing the inner-self and casting Satan
down. This indeed is a very difficult thing to do. On the other hand, when a
believer gives sadaqah in secret, Allah protects him with the blessing of the
sadaqah from disasters that may come from mountains, iron, fire, water, wind,
and such.
Also, sadaqah given in secret connects the heart of a believer to Allah with
such a strong bond that with this bond the believer becomes more powerful
than anything else. The spiritual power of those with strong spiritual lives is an
example of this. As a matter of fact, about them is said:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
I had given a horse to a person who fights in the name of Allah. That
person did not take good care of the horse and the horse lost weight. Then, I
thought that he would sell it for cheap and wanted to buy the horse back from
him. I asked this to the Prophet.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Never buy it! Even if he sells it for one dirham, do not take your sadaqah
back! That is because those who take their sadaqah back are like a dog that eats
his vomit. (Bukhari, Zakat, 59; Hibat, 29, 37; Jihad, 119, 137; Muslim, Hibat, 1-2; Muwatta,
Zakat, 49)
4. The most important one is to give sadaqah sincerely and with good
intentions, and only for the sake of Allah. The alms that are given to show off
or for other worldly benefits would be a waste and do not benefit the donor.
(Al-Baqarah; 2:264)
In this verse the praised servants of Allah are those who are so sincere and
humble in their act of giving that even if they internally say We feed you for
the sake of Allah alone they never say this out loud to the face of the poor,
and it is as if they reflect this fact in their acts. In order to point out this nuance,
the word saying is not explicitly mentioned in the verse.
d. Those who can afford to give only a few indeed give from their
heart
: .
:
159
.
:
75. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
One dirham is more than one hundred thousand dirhams.
The Companions asked:
O Messenger of Allah, how is that possible?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered:
One man had two dirhams and he gave one of them as sadaqah. Another
man was very wealthy but took one hundred thousand dirhams out of his wealth
and gave that as sadaqah. (Nasai, Zakat, 49/2526)
Explanations:
In order for zakat to become obligatory upon a believer, ones wealth must
exceed a certain level whereas there is no such requirement for sadaqah. Some
people have a misconception that giving sadaqah and alms are for rich peo160
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
but his deeds which he has sent forward, and will look to his left and see nothing
but his deeds which he has sent forward, and will look in front of him and see
nothing but the (Hell) Fire facing him. So save yourself from the (Hell) Fire even
with half a date (given in charity). Those who cannot find this, save yourself even
with a good word. (Bukhari, Tawhid, 36; Muslim, Zakat, 97)
Therefore, everyone should take advantage of the benefits of giving charity
in both of the worlds even by giving something very small and gain the heart
of the needy.
Umm Bujayd (r. anha), one of the female Companions, came to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and said:
O Messenger of Allah, peace and blessings of Allah be upon you! Sometimes, a poor person comes to my door and I cannot find anything to give.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told her:
Even if you cannot find anything to give him other than a burned nail of a
sheep, give that to the poor! (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 33/1667; Tirmidhi, Zakat, 29/665; Nasai,
Zakat, 70/2566; Ahmad, VI, 383)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
O rich men! You took away all the good deeds; you give sadaqah from
your wealth, you emancipate slaves, you go to Hajj, and give charity!
Uthman (r.a.) asked:
Do you really envy us? The man said:
Yes, I swear to Allah we envy you! Then, Uthman (r.a.) made the following explanation:
I swear to Allah that one dirham given with difficulty (by someone not
so wealthy) is more valuable than ten thousand dirhams given by a wealthy
person. (Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 251; Ali al-Muttaqi, VI, 612/17098)
That is because those who are not so wealthy are giving out of their own
needs rather than giving from what is extra. When this is the case, the chance
that it is given only for the sake of Allah is higher. The chance for some humanly desires to interfere with sadaqah given by the rich is higher, and the rich
also do not experience any difficulties when giving it.
However, it is not right for a person to give everything and end up needy.
In particular, those with weak faith regret for their sadaqah when they become
needy by giving too much sadaqah. In such a situation, they lose both their
wealth and the divine rewards that they get by giving charity.
The Pride of the Universe (pbuh) told to keep the balance in this matter:
Some of you bring what they have and say this is sadaqah! and then they
sit and beg. The most valuable sadaqah is the one that is given from what is more
than needed. (Abu Dawud, Zakat, 39/1673)
However, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) did not object for Abu Bakr
to donate all of his wealth as charity. That is because he and some others are
among the exceptional characters that have strong faith, and they are exemplary Muslims. They are great characters who know to give charity without
hesitation whether they are poor or rich.
How nicely the following story expresses the peak state of Abu Bakr (r.a)
in generosity:
One day, after leading the dawn prayer, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
asked his Companions:
Is there anyone among you who fed a poor today? Umar (r.a.) said:
163
O Messenger of Allah! We have just performed the dawn prayer and did
not leave for anywhere else. How could we feed a poor in this situation?
Abu Bakr (r.a.) said:
When I entered into the praying room, I saw someone who was telling
about his needs. There was a piece of rye bread that my son Abdurrahman was
holding. I immediately took that and gave it to the poor.
Upon this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I give you the good news that you will go to Paradise. (Haythami, III, 163-164.
Also see Abu Dawud, Zakat, 36/1670; Hakim, I, 571/1501)
Another exceptional character who gave a little but from the heart is Zaynap (r.anha), the mother of the faithful. Aisha (r.anha) narrates:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to his wives:
One who has the longest hands amongst you would meet me most immediately (in the hereafter).
They (the wives of Allahs Apostle) used to measure their arms as to whose
was the longest. It turns out, it was Zainab arm that was the longest amongst
them, for she used to work with her hand and spend (that income) on charity.
(Muslim, Kitab al-Fadail al-Sahabah, 101)
164
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
76. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrates: I heard that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
say:
Whoever performs Hajj for Allahs pleasure and without pronouncing bad
words and committing great sins then he will return (after Hajj free from all sins)
as if he were born anew. (Bukhari, Hajj, 4)
.
:
77. Ibn Umar (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
Those who leave their homes to fight in the way of Allah, to perform Hajj
or Umra are the delegates of Allah. That is because Allah has invited His servants
(to perform these acts) and they have obeyed. In return, they ask something from
Allah, and He answers their prayers. (Ibn Majah, Manasik, 5)
: .
:
165
:
.
.(
.
:
80. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
(The performance of) the Lesser Pilgrimage (Umra) is expiation for the
sins committed (between that one and the previous one). And the reward of Hajj
Mabrur (the one accepted by Allah) is nothing except Paradise. (Bukhari, Umra, 1)
166
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
Hajj is one of the strongest obligatory (al-fardh) acts of worship based
upon the Quran, Sunnah, and consensus of the Muslim Scholars. It is obligatory for those Muslims who have the requisites of Hajj.92 According to Hanafi
School, it is necessary (wajib) to perform a woved Hajj or the supererogatory
Hajj that has already started but cannot be completed. The Hajj of those who
are not obligated to perform or of those who have already performed the obligatory Hajj is considered supererogatory Hajj.
Hajj is the best symbol of faith, submission, and obedience to Allah that
Abraham (pbuh) demonstarted with his life, wealth, son, and everything else
that he has. This symbol will continue to exist until the Day of Judgment.
Hajj is the assembly of sincere believers who come together at a certain
time and place.
Hajj is a comprehensive worship that indicates perfection and maturity in
being the servants of Allah that includes some symbolic practices such as ihram, talbiyah, tawaf, say, waqf al-Arafa, stoning of Satan, sacrifice, and shaving
the head or having a haircut. For this reason, Hajj is the last one of the five pillars of Islam which is deemed as obligatory. In our first Hadith, our attention
is drawn to the virtues of Hajj and we are informed that if Hajj is performed by
paying attention to its requisites, it will free us from all sins and some bad traits
as if we were born anew.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) reminded and said the same thing to Amr
b. As who wished that all of his previous sins would be forgiven when he became a Muslim:
Dont you know that becoming a Muslim purifies one from his previous
sins, Immigration (Hijra) nullifies previous sins, and pilgrimage (Hajj) extinguishes the previous sins? (Muslim, Iman, 192)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was asked:
Which deed is the most virtuous?
After mentioning believing in Allah and His Messenger, and Jihad in the
cause of Allah, he stated the pilgrimage accepted in the sight of Allah. (Bukhari,
Iman, 18; Hajj, 4; Tawhid, 47; Muslim, Iman, 135)
Muslim, Hajj, 412; Fadail, 130-131; Nasai, Manasik 1/2617.
167
92.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
tory act of worship. Therefore, in the third hadith, it is asked from those who
intend to perform Hajj to hurry.
As a matter of fact, Bara b. Marur (r.a.), one of the twelve representatives
who joined the Aqabah Pledge, promised the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) that
he will come to Mecca next year in Hajj time. However, he fell into death bed
before it was time for Hajj. So he said to his family:
Due to my promise to the Messenger of Allah, turn me towards Kabah;
because, I told him that I will come and by this he became the first one who
turned towards Kabah in his life and after he died.
When the Pride of the Universe (pbuh) visited Madina together with his
Companions, he went to the grave of Bara b. Marur and had people line up and
led the funeral prayer (Salat al-Janazah.) Then he prayed for him saying:
O my Lord forgive him! Show mercy to him and be content with him! (Ibn
Abdilbar, I, 153; Ibn Sad, III, 619-620)
In our fourth hadith, there is a serious threat for those who postpone
going to Hajj while they can afford it. This is because such people neither obey
nor thank Allah appropriately for their health and wealth while they are able to
do it. They act like non-Muslims. Since they follow a life like Jews and Christians, it is possible that they would die like them. Because of this, Allah the
Exalted commands to those whom He has given the means should go to Hajj
as His right.
On the other hand, our hadith expresses the importance of Hajj with a
striking language and indicates that those who postpone performing Hajj commit a major sin. As a matter of fact, at the end of the verse Allah the Almighty
uses the phrase but if any deny faith, instead of but if any does not perform
Hajj to indicate how bad it is not to perform Hajj for those who can afford it.
(Al-i Imran; 3:97)
Someone inquired about the requirements of going to Hajj and the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Food and mount for transportation. (Tirmidhi, Hajj, 4/813; Ibn Majah, Manasik,
6, 16)
Therefore, Muslims who can afford the journey and accommodation must
humbly set off on the journey without showing off or acting wastefully.
169
Anas reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) went to pilgrimage just
with a camel carrying his food and belongings. (Bukhari, Hajj, 3. Also see Ibn Majah,
Manasik 4)
The wealth earned with honest work is the most important issue that must
be paid attention to. As the Messenger of Allah put it:
Whoever visits the Noble House of Allah with the money that he has not
earned by honest work, he disobeys Allah. If such a person makes intention for
Hajj, puts on ihram (the pilgrims garment), gets on his camel and rides it and
says:
Labbayk Allahumma Labbayk93 a voice from Heaven says:
La labbayk wa la sadayk (neither labbayk nor sadeyk for you)! That is because your wealth, your food, and your mount for transportation are haram (not
earned with honest work). Go back without any divine rewards and as sinful! Be
sorry that you will face with something that you will not like! (Haythami, III,
209-210)
The pilgrims put their ihrams on in one of the places of Miqat94 before they
reach to Mecca. When they reach Kabah, they perform tawaf al-qudum95 by
circumambulating the Kabah seven times in order to show how thankful they
are to reach to Kabah. Pilgrims walk briskly with short steps and somewhat
proudly during the first three circuits of tawaf al-qudum. This walk is called
93.
94.
95.
170
Translators note: Here I am, O Allah, here I am! (The beginning of the traditional Hajj
chant).
Translators note: Miqat (a stated place) are the stations at which pilgrims on the Hajj put on
ihram (the pilgrims garment). Five of these stations were set up by Muhammad (pbuh), a
sixth was added later for the convenience of travelers from India and points further east.
Translators note: The initial Tawaf performed by the pilgrim upon entering al-Masjid alHaram in Mecca pursuant upon his intention for Hajj.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
ramal. Then, a two unit (raqah) prayer is performed next to maqam Ibrahim
(Abrahams Station).96 One performs sai97 between Safa and Marwah98 with
four goings and three comings and perform waqfah in Arafat,99 and then visits
first Muzdalifah and then Mina,100 followed by stoning Satan, animal sacrifice,
shaving, and circumambulation around the Kabah. This time pilgrims do not
perform ramal or sai.
While Anas (r.a.) was talking about the pilgrimage of the Messenger of
Allah, he said:
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) reached Mina, he went right away
to Jamarat101 and threw the stones. Then he went to the resting place in Mina
and performed his sacrifice. When he was done with all these, he ordered the
barber to come and pointed out first the right side of his head and then the left
side and said:
Cut from here!
Then he gave away his hair to the Companions who were passionately
waiting for them. (Bukhari, Wudu, 33; Muslim, Hajj, 323-325)
96.
Translators note: Maqam-i Ibrahim is the stepping stone used by Prophet Abraham (pbuh)
during the original construction of the Kabah. The stone carries the imprints of his feet and
is housed in a glass enclosure on the north side of the Kabah.
97. Translators note: Sa`i is the ritual of walking seven times back and forth between the rocky
hillocks of Safa and Marwah. This act retraces the footsteps of Hagar (wife of Prophet
Abraham) during her desperate search for water to quench the thirst of her infant son Ismail
after they were left in the desert by the Prophet Abraham in response to a divine vision.
98. Translators note: Safa is a small hillock approximately half a mile (0.8 km) from the Kabah
and Marwah is a rocky hillock located approximately one hundred yards (91 meters)
from the Kabah and they are both inside al-Masjid al-Haram. The pilgrim performs the
devotional rite of Sa`i between the hillocks of Safa and Marwah.
99. Translators note: plane of Arafah is a desert location approximately 14.5 km (9 miles) east
of Mecca where the pilgrim spends the 9th of Dhul-Hijjah (the last month of the Islamic
calendar) as a rite of Hajj. The waqfah is performed at Arafat which is the ritual of standing
before Allah. It is a central rite of Hajj.
100. Translators note: Muzdalifah is a desert location approximately midway between Mina and
Arafat. The pilgrim spends the night of the 10th of Dhul-Hijjah there. And Mina is a desert
location approximately three miles (4.8 km) east of Mecca where several rites of Hajj are
performed.
101. Translators note: The three stone pillars in Mina that symbolically represent the locations
where the devil (Satan) tried to tempt Prophet Abraham (pbuh) away from the path of
Allah.
171
In these Holy lands, one must show respect and honor the marks of Islam
such as the Magnificent Kabah and hillocks of Safa and Marwah. It is not a nice
manner to sit or lay down turning ones feet towards Kabah, or engaging in idle
and useless talk in these Holy lands.
Allah the Almighty informs us that the respect showed to the symbols of
Islam comes from piety of heart:
Such (is his state): and whoever holds in honor the symbols of Allah,
(in the sacrifice of animals), such (honor) should come truly from piety of
heart. (Al-Hajj; 22:32)
For this reason, when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saw the House of
Allah in his pilgrimage, he raised his hands and prayed saying:
O my Lord! Advance the honor, magnificence, grace, and solemnity of Your
House. And advance the honor, grace, solemnity, homage, and kindness of those
who honor it! (Ibn Sad, II, 173)
One should pay attention to purity, dignity, peacefulness, deliberateness,
and avoid impetuousness during the journey and in these Holy lands.
Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was returning from Arafat to
Muzdalifah on the day of Arafat. He heard that some people in the back were
yelling and whipping their camels in order to speed them up. Upon that, he
pointed out to them with his lash and said:
O people, observe peacefulness! Goodness cannot be earned by walking fast
and in a hurry. (Bukhari, Hajj, 94; Muslim, Hajj, 268)
In the same manner, it is not nice to act inappropriately by pushing people around in order to reach some blessed places such as al-Hajar al-Aswad,102
Maqam Ibrahim, and Rawda-i Mutahhara (the tomb of Muhammad). This is
because the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) discouraged us from hurting other servants of Allah.
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised Umar (r.a.) to act politely
while circumambulating around Kabah and said:
102. Translators note: The Black Stone built into the southeast corner of the Kabah at a height of
approximately four feet. The stone does not belong to the geology of the region and is a piece
of the original construction of the Kabah by the Prophet Abraham (pbuh). The Prophet
Muhammad (pbuh) also kissed it during his Farewell Hajj. Thus, touching and kissing Hajar
Al-Aswad during Umrah and Hajj is considered a sunnah.
172
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
O Umar! You are a strong and big man. Do not push people and hurt the
weak to touch al-Hajar al-Aswad! Neither be bothered nor bother! If you find it
un-crowded, you can touch and kiss al-Hajar al-Aswad. Otherwise, make the
gesture of touching and kissing it from far, recite al-Kalima al-Tawheed and
Takbir, and pass by! (Ahmad, I, 28; Haythami, III, 241)
There are many benefits and lessons in Hajj. The Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Join Umra and Hajj! As a matter of fact, they extinguish poverty and sins
as bellow cleans the rust from iron, gold, and silver. (Tirmidhi, Hajj, 2/810; Nasai,
Manasik, 6/2629; Ibn Majah, Manasik, 3)
For the expenses made in Hajj, Allah gives divine rewards of one to seven
hundred times as if they were spent in the way of Allah. (Ahmad, V, 354-355)
The day that Allah sets His servants free from Hell most is the Day of Arafat. That day Allah gets closer and takes pride in His servants and says to His
angels:
What are they wishing for?! (Muslim, Hajj, 436; Nasai, Manasik, 194/3001; Ibn
Majah, Manasik, 56)
In other words, Allah accepts the prayers of His servants at that time.
In another hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gives the good news
that:
I swear to Allah, Allah resurrects it (or al-Hajar al-Aswad) on the Day of
Judgment as a creature having two eyes and a tongue, and it becomes a witness
for those who have appropriately touched and kissed it. (Tirmidhi, Hajj, 113/961)
Again, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that those who go to
Hajj will not be faced with poverty or neediness. (Haythami, III, 208)
During Hajj believers get an intensive training of worship, prayer, and remembrance of Allah. They remember Allah in each of their movements and
establish His love in their hearts. In fact the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Stoning (Satan) and sai between the hillocks of Safa and Marwah are
commanded only as the manifestation of remembrance of Allah. (Tirmidhi, Hajj,
64/902)
173
The real purposes of worship, that is to obey Allahs command and exalt
His religion, are fulfilled in Hajj at the level of the entire nation of believers.
That is because Hajj is the best example of unity of believers in faith and practice.
Those who go to Hajj engage in deep thinking about the blessings of Allah
by remembering the prophets, martyrs, loyals, and those who performed good
deeds, and be inspired from the blessed time and place that they are in. They
take steps towards moral maturity in this spiritually influencing environment.
They attain good traits such as humbleness, feeling of nothingness, patience,
submission, cooperation, sincerity, discipline in using the time and performing
acts, preparation for death and the Day of Judgment, not hurting any plants
or living things, and not to think ill of anybody. That is because Hajj that has
some symbolic practices as seen from the outside is really composed of various spiritual practices in different places. Therefore, everyone takes advantage
from one or more parts of it.
Muslims in Hajj experience spiritual unity by coming together in the same
place at the same time. They listen to each others problems and issues and send
their messages to others who are far away. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) used to deliver the message of Islam and divine truths in the preIslamic period festivals done during the pilgrimage season. Of course, while
doing this, he used to face with many troubles and difficulties and be patient
for the sake of Allah.
Umra (lesser pilgrimage) is also a virtuous act of worship like the Hajj.
Umra has some of the benefits and lessons of Hajj. For this reason Umra is also
called Lesser Hajj. Indeed, in our fifth hadith, we are informed about the
virtue of Umra and how it becomes expiation for the previous sins. Thus, those
who can perform Umra should take advantage of this act of worship.
For Umra, one goes into ihram by making intention in Miqat,103 circumambulates around the Kabah, performs sai between Safa and Marwah, and
then goes out of ihram by either shaving or shortening his hair.
According to Imam Abu Hanifa, Umra is a sunnah and can be performed
at any time of the year. However, it is considered reproachable only when it is
103. Translators note: Miqat is an imaginary boundary around Mecca. A prospective pilgrim
cannot cross this boundary without first changing into ihram.
174
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
done when the pilgrims perform waqfah in Arafat on the day of Arafat and
during the four days of the Festival of Sacrifice.
Due to the following verse in the Quran complete the Hajj or Umra
in the service of Allah,104 it is necessary to complete Hajj or Umra that has
already been started.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Performing Hajj and Umra one after another increases ones wealth and
life-time, and extinguishes poverty and sins as bellow cleanses the rust of iron.
(Ahmad, III, 446-447)
175
A prayer performed in this prayer room is better than one thousand prayers
performed elsewhere except al-Masjid al-Haram. (Bukhari, Fadl al-Salat fi Masjidi
Makka wa al-Madina, 1; Muslim, Hajj, 505-510)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had told that one was allowed to travel
for worship only to three masjids and listed al-Masjid al-Haram (Mecca), alMasjid al-Rasul (Medina), and al-Masjid al-Aqsa (Jerusalem). (Bukhari, Fadlu alSalat fi Masjidi Makka wa al-Madina, 1; Muslim, Hajj, 511-513)
Every Muslim has a special love for Madina. That is because the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) loved it. Whenever the Messenger of Allah returned from
a journey and saw the walls of Medina, he would speed his camel up. If he was
on an animal (e.g., a horse or a mule), he would speed it up because of his love
for Medina. (Bukhari, Fadail al-Madina, 10; Umra, 17; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 42/3441)
There are many narrations on the virtues of Enlightened Madina. For
details, one can see the chapter of virtues of Madinah (Fadail al-Madina) in
Bukharis Sahih .
9. Sacrifice
81. Aisha (r.anha) reported that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
176
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Among the acts that sons of Adam do on the first day of Festival of Sacrifice
(Eid al-Adha) Allah likes best to shed the blood of the sacrificed animal (there
is no better act on that day at the sight of Allah). On the Day of Judgment that
sacrificed animal comes with its horns, nails, and fur. Before the blood of the
animal drops to the ground, the sacrifice gets accepted by Allah and His content
is gained. Therefore, sacrifice your animal with ease of heart! (Ibn Majah, Adahi, 3;
Tirmidhi, Adahi, 1/1493)
82. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever does not sacrifice an animal while they can afford it should keep
away from our praying rooms! (Ibn Majah, Adahi, 2; Ahmad, II, 321)
Explanations:
Qurban (sacrifice) means something that helps someone to get closer or
approach to Allah. Since it carries the meanings of self sacrifice from wealth
and life, it is one of the most important means to get closer to Allah.
At the same time, animal sacrifice is the tradition of our forefather Abraham. (Ibn Majah, Adahi, 3)
It is commanded by Allah in the second year of the Hijra (immigration
from Mecca to Madina). According to Abu Hanifa, it is necessary to sacrifice
on the Festival of Sacrifice (Eid al-Adha) for those who own more than 96
grams of gold or 640 grams of silver. The passage of a year upon the ownership
of these minimum limits is not a requirement for offering sacrifice.
Majority of scholars believe that sacrife is a sunnah al-muakkadah.106
Some scholars say that the following verses constitute evidence for animal
sacrifice:
106. Translators note: Sunnah al-Muakkadah (Continuous Tradition) are the traditions (sunnah)
that our Prophet would always perform and hardly ever missed.
177
To every people did We appoint rites (of sacrifice), that they might
celebrate the name of Allah over the sustenance He gave them from animals
(fit for food) (Al-Hajj; 22:34, 67)
Therefore to your Lord turn in Prayer and Sacrifice. (Al-Kawthar; 108:2)
And We ransomed him with a momentous sacrifice. (Al-Saffat; 37:107)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) never missed to sacrifice after it is commanded107 and he even performed it on journey108 and said:
O humans! It is necessary to perform sacrifice every year for each household. (Ibn Majah, Adahi, 2; Tirmidhi, Adahi, 18/1518)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following for the virtues of the
days of Festival of Sacrifice (Eid Al-Adha):
The greatest day in Allahs sight is the day of sacrifice and next one is the
second day of Eid al-Adha (yawm al-qarr) (Abu Dawud, Kitab al-Manasik al-Umra wa
al-Hajj, 18/1765)
178
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
entire wealth and life and are martyred) are excluded! (Bukhari, Idain, 11; Abu
Dawud, Sawm, 61/2438; Tirmidhi, Sawm, 52/757)
Therefore, there is a strong relationship between sacrifice and being righteous. Only righteous people can sacrifice animal with peace of heart. On the
other hand, when sacrificing an animal, one must act piously. Due to this sincerity, the sacrificed animal enriches the person who performs the act and gets
him closer to Allah. The most valuable person in the sight of Allah is the one
who is the most righteous. (Al-Hujurat; 49:13)
On the other hand, Allah only accepts a sacrifice that is performed to fulfill His command and only to gain His content. For this reason, the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
179
May Allah curse upon those who sacrifice for other causes than gaining the
content of Allah. (Muslim, Adahi, 43-45; Nasai, Dahaya, 34)
In our second hadith, those who do not sacrifice while they can afford are
warned with a strong language. In this hadith, it does not mean that prayers are
not valid if one does not sacrifice. However, a punishment is given to a person
who does not sacrifice, and he gets away from righteous people and is in huge
loss. The Prophet (pbuh) wished that all of his followers perform sacrifice and
find salvation by gaining divine rewards.
In another noble verse of Quran, it is stated that:
The sacrificial camels we have made for you as among the symbols
from Allah. (Al-Hajj; 22:36)
For this reason, one must show respect to the animal sacrifice and to sacrificial animals for the sake of Allah. As in all other acts of worship, the essence
of sacrifice is righteousness and exalting Allah. One of the requirements of this
act of worship is that the sacrificial animal must be healthy and well-fed. This
is expressed in a noble hadith as follows:
Four (types of animals) should be avoided in sacrifice:
1. One-eyed animal which has obviously lost the sight of one eye,
2. A sick animal which is obviously sick,
3. A lame animal which obviously limps and
4. A lean animal with dried marrows. (Abu Dawud, Adahi, 5-6/2802; Tirmidhi,
Adahi, 5/1497)
One must be very sensitive in slaughtering the sacrificial animal and cover
its eyes tightly and should not sacrifice two animals in one hole. Also, one
should pay attention not to sacrifice one animal in front of another. It is not
right to hurt the animal while bringing it to the place where it will be sacrificed.
If the sacrificial animal is a sheep or goat, it would be nice to carry it gently and
180
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
tenderly. Cattle should also be gently brought to where it will be sacrificed. The
sacrificial animal should be turned towards direction of Kabah, the person
who will perform the sacrifice should say Bismillah (in the name of Allah)
and then Takbir (God is Greatest), and if it is possible whoever fulfills the
worship should sacrifice the animal himself.110 If not, he should find someone to slaughter the animal but try to be present when the sacrificial animal is
slaughtered.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
O Fatima! Go and be present in your sacrificial offering, and know it well
that with the first drop of blood, your (minor) sins will be forgiven. (Hakim, IV,
247/7524; Haythami, IV, 17; Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 483)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) ordered to sharpen and hide the knives
from the animals and then he advised:
When you slaughter an animal, do it fast! (Ibn Majah, Zabaih, 3)
Verily Allah has enjoined goodness to everything; so when you kill, kill in a
good way and when you slaughter, slaughter in a good way. So every one of you
should sharpen his knife, and comfort the slaughtered animal. (Muslim, Said, 57;
Tirmidhi, Diyat, 14/1409; Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Dahaya, 11-12/2815)
Here, the meaning of comforting the animal is to pet the animal gently
before the sacrifice and slaughter it quickly with a sharp knife.
Once, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saw a man slaughtering a sheep.
The man was trying to sharpen the knife after he had laid the sacrificial animal down. Upon this harsh and cold-hearted behavior, the Messenger of Allah
warned him as follows:
Are you trying to kill the animal several times? Shouldnt you have sharpened your knife before you lay it down? (Hakim, IV, 257, 260/7570)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) prohibited to cut the throat and some part
of the skin of the animal and leave it like that until it dies.111 It is necessary to
cut through the carotids, alimentary, and air tube. When the animal is slaughtered, one should wait for a while until the blood flow stops. One should not
start to skin the animal while it is still lingering.
110. Muslim, Adahi, 17-18.
111. Abu Dawud, Adaahi, 16-17/2826.
181
Not to sit and to wait standing up until the blood flow stops is among the
acts of righteous ones.
Jabir (r.a.) narrated how the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sacrificed an animal as follows:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sacrificed two horned white rams with
black markings. When he made them face the kiblah, he said:
For me, I have set my face, firmly and truly, towards Him Who created
the heavens and the earth, and never shall I give partners to Allah. (Al-Anam;
6:79)
182
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The purpose of this is to transform the unity in faith into a unity in practice all around the world by acting like those who are physically at Hajj as much
as possible.
Another lesson in acting this way is to save those who offer sacrifices from
the Hellfire with all their cells. That is because for each part of the body of the
sacrificed animal, as a reward, Allah saves the corresponding body part of the
person who sacrificed it.
After the sacrificial animal is slaughtered and divided appropriately, one
should eat from its meat and offer it to others. Allah the Almighty says:
then eat you thereof and feed the distressed ones in want. (Al-Hajj;
22:28, 36)
The proper manner is to divide the meat into three parts and leave one
part for the family memebers at home, offer one part of it to friends and neighbors, and give the rest as sadaqah (Abu Dawud, Adahi, 9-10/2813)
While it is permissible to use the skin and other useful parts of the sacrificed animal at home, it is not permissible to sell them. If it is sold, then
the money should be given as charity. Also, benefiting from the fur or milk of
the sacrificial animal (before sacrifice) is considered undesirable and if this is
done, it is advised to give charity as much as their value.
While sacrificing the animal, one should pay extreme attention to cleanliness and hygiene. The streets and environment should be kept clean and one
should avoid causing bad smells and sights in the streets.
If the lessons and virtues of sacrifice are to be summarized, one can list as
follows:
Sacrifice reminds us Abrahams and Ismails submission and how superior they were as servants of Allah. It physically shows us that Allah offered
everything to humans service and how we should appropriately benefit from
them and give charity out of them. Indeed, as it is wrong not to benefit from
the blessings of Allah, it is also extremely wrong to waste them. For this reason,
Islam ordered sacrifice but also prohibited wasting and torturing animals and
even put a minimum age limit for the sacrificial animals.
Sacrifice saves one from being stingy and having love for material goods.
Sacrifice develops the feelings of brotherhood, altruism, sharing, and pleasing
183
the needy in the society. Sacrifice builds bonds between people with love and
mercy. It ensures that everyone benefits from the blessings of Allah. It helps us
to gain the content of Allah and get closer to Him by acts of worship that are
performed both individually and socially in the society.
10. Being in the same state as in the Noble Quran
a. The Effort to understand the Quran
:
.
83. Uthman (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
The best among you (Muslims) are those who learn the Quran and teach it.
(Bukhari, Virtues of the Quran, 21; Abu Dawud, Witr, 14/1452; Tirmidhi, Virtues of the Quran,
15/2907)
.
:
...
84. Abu Huraira (r.a) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If a group of people assemble in a house among the houses of Allah
(mosques) and recite the Book of Allah and discuss the Quran (among themselves), then tranquility would descend upon them and mercy would cover them
184
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
and angels would surround them and Allah the Almighty mentions them in the
presence of those near Him. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Dhikr, 38; Abu Dawud, Witr, 14/1455; Tirmidhi, Qiraah, 10/2945; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 17)
Explanations:
Allah the Exalted revealed the Quran as a reference book and guide for
His servants to enter into Paradise. Therefore, Quran guides humans to the
most righteous way. (Al-Isra; 17:9-10)
The Noble Quran is sent to be understood and practiced. Allah the Almighty explained in the Quran all kinds of examples in various ways so that we
can benefit from them. (Al-Isra; 17: 41, 89), Al-Zumar; 39:27) (Al-Kahf; 18:54) (Al-Rum;
30:58)
In order for us to understand it, take lessons from it, and put it into practice, He made the Quran easy to understand. (Maryam; 19:97) (Al-Duhan; 44:58)
(Al-Qamar; 54:17, 22, 32, 40)
185
The most important and major duty of the Messenger of Allah was to recite the Quran116 and teach it to others. As a matter of fact, one day when Abu
Talha (r.a.) arrived where the Prophet (pbuh) was, he saw the Prophet standing
up and teaching the Quran to the Ashab al-Suffa.117 And, the Prophet (pbuh),
due to his hunger, had tied a stone to his belly in order to be able stand up. (Abu
Nuaym, Hilya, I, 342)
Companions and righteous people of next generations followed the tradition of the Messenger of Allah on learning and teaching Quran.
Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) used to say when he let someone recite a verse
from the Quran:
This verse is better than anything that the sun rises upon or everything
exists on this earth.
He used to repeat this sentence for each verse of Quran. (Haythami, VII,
166)
However, these services should be done only for the content of Allah. Material benefits and simple calculations should not interfere with it.
Once, Imran b. Husayn (r.a.) came across a person who was reciting the
Quran. When the man was finished his recitation, he asked for some things
from the audience. When Imran (r.a.) saw this, as if he was faced with a disaster, he said:
on top of it, taking it to bathroom are among the irrespectful acts towards the Quran and
indicates the weakness of faith. Showing respect towards the Quran is a sign of piety. (alHajj; 22:32)
116. Yunus, 61; Zamakhshari, Kashshaf, III, 17; Abu al-Suud, Irshad, IV, 156.
117. Translators note: Ashab al Suffa are those who stayed in the ante-chamber of the Mosque of
the Prophet to advance their Islamic knowledge.
186
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------
187
The sins of my followers are submitted to me. I did not see a worse sin
than them forgetting a Chapter or a verse from the Quran that they were blessed
with. (Abu Dawud, Salah, 16/461; Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 19/2916)
Those who recite (learn) the Quran but then forget it will come to the presence of Allah on the Day of Judgment with empty hands and as deprived of goodness. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 21/1474)
The term forgetting here means both literally forgetting the memorized
and learned Quran and also not reciting the Quran regularly, not putting it into
practice, and not paying attention to what is permissible (halal) and forbidden
(haram.) As a matter of fact the following verses express the same issue:
But whosoever turns away from My Message, verily for him is a life
narrowed down, and We shall raise him up blind on the Day of Judgment.
He will say: O my Lord! Why have You raised me up blind, while I had
sight (before)? (Allah) will say:
Thus did you, when Our Signs came unto you, disregard them: so will
you, this day, be disregarded. (Taha; 20:124-126)
He who has nothing of the Holy Quran in his heart is like a ruined house.
(Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 18/2913; Darimi, Fadail al-Quran, 1)
The implied purpose in learning and teaching Quran is for sure to put
it into practice in every aspect of life. In order to realize this, one must try
to understand the content of Quran. Our second hadith shows how Allah is
pleased with the works and efforts in this way. That is because Allah the Exalted
descends tranquility upon those who assemble and recite, study, and try to
understand the meaning of His Exalted Book and covers them with His mercy,
and the angels surround them and Allah makes a mention of them in the presence of those near Him. Thus, those servants who study the Quran receive the
prayers and love of select angels in the sight of Allah.
Allahs mercy covers such assemblies. All sins and faults of people who
are present in such assemblies are forgiven except the sins of violating others
rights. Angels of mercy surround them and protect them from every kind of
evil and danger by taking them into a ring that extends from the Earth up to
the sky. Angels give acuteness to their intelligence and openness and comfort
to their hearts, and they in a sense visit them and shake their hands.
188
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Companions of the Prophet used to assemble and discuss the Quran
and the hadith. Abu Nadra narrates:
When the Companions gathered, they used to study knowledge (noble
hadith) and recite a chapter from the Quran. (Khatib al-Baghdadi, al-Faqih wa almutafaqqih, II, 126)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
However, I like reciting the entire Quran in fifteen or twenty121 days better. If you ask why, in this way I can think about the verses and understand
them better. (Muwatta, Quran, 4)
b. Living the Quran
.
:
:
.
85. Ibn Umar (r.a.) reported that the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Do not envy, except two kinds of people:
First, a man whom Allah has given the knowledge of the Book and he recites
and practices it during the hours of the night and the hours of the day, and, second, a man whom Allah has given wealth, and he spends it in charity during the
night and the hours of the day. (Muslim, Musafirin, 266, 267. Also see Bukhari, Tamanni,
5; Tawhid, 45)
191
86. Muadh al-Juhani (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
If anyone recites the Quran and acts according to its contents, on the Day
of Judgment his parents will be crowned with a crown whose light is better than
the light of the sun would be in the dwellings of this world if it were among you.
So what do you think of the person himself who acts according to the Quran?
(Abu Dawud, Witr, 14/1453)
Explanations:
The real purpose of reading and understanding the Quran is to put it into
practice in every aspect of our life. This is stated in the noble verses of the
Quran as follows:
(Here is) a Book which We have sent down unto you, full of blessings,
that they may mediate on its Signs, and that men of understanding may
receive admonition. (Sad; 38:29)
Those who rehearse the Book of Allah, establish regular Prayer, and
spend (in charity) out of what We have provided for them, secretly and
openly, hope for a commerce that will never fail. (Al-Fatir; 35:29)
According to such verses of Quran, reading and understanding the verses
of the Quran must be followed by acts that reflect the lessons taken from its
commands and prohibitions. For this reason, in the second verse, reading the
Quran is followed by performing prayers and giving charity openly and secretly from the blessings of Allah. Since a person who reads and understands the
Quran obeys its rules by thinking about the good news, warnings, and clear
verses and explanations of Quran and avoids its prohibitions. Satan works hard
to keep people away from the Quran. Therefore, Allah the Almighty commands
to seek His protection especially before reading the Quran and says:
When you do read the Quran, seek Allahs protection from Satan the
rejected one. (Al-Nahl; 16:98)
With this command of Allah, Satans interference between the Quran and
putting it into practice will be prevented.
It is explained in the following saying by the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
what happens to Satan when the believers follow this command of Allah:
192
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
When, the son of Adam recites a verse of prostration and then falls down in
prostration, the Satan goes into seclusion and weeps and says:
Woe unto me, the son of Adam was commanded to prostrate, and he prostrated and Paradise was entitled to him and I was commanded to prostrate, but I
refused and am doomed to Hell. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Iman, 133)
The whole point is to read the Quran and put it into practice without
tripping in front of the obstacles of carnal self and Satan. As a matter of fact,
those who do not reflect the Quran into their lives are not considered as hafiz
(or the person who has memorized the entire Quran) no matter how well he
recites it from his memory. Indeed Abu Umar (r.a.) described being hafiz of
the Quran as:
The real hafiz is the one who knows the commands of it, and what is permissible and forbidden and puts them into practice. (Qurtubi, I, 26)
Abdullah b. Masud pointed out that being a real hafiz of the Quran is only
possible by living the Quran and said:
Those who memorized the entire Quran should be known by:
1. Waking up at night and worshipping,
2. Fasting while others are not fasting,
3. Thinking about their end while others are having fun,
4. Weeping because of their weaknesses in their servitude to Allah while
others are laughing,
5. Keeping their silence while others are talking to each other,
6. Being humble while others are arrogant.
Those who have memorized the Quran should:
1. Weep,
2. Look sad,
3. Be dignified and knowledgeable,
4. And think a lot and be peaceful.
Those who know the Quran should avoid;
193
This is the kind of study of the Quran which will lead a believer to salvation. As a matter of fact, Muhammad Hadimi, one of the famous Ottoman
scholars, said:
The only way to avoid all kinds of hardships, troubles, and disasters is
holding onto the Quran and putting it into practice. Keep performing acts
of worship and services! Especially hold on to reading the Quran, which is
among the best acts of worship, while thinking about its meaning, pronouncing its verses clearly, and showing respect to it! Indeed, reading the Quran in
this manner is like directly communicating with Allah. (See Hadimi, Majmuat alrasail, pp. 112, 194, 200)
Allah the Almighty glorifies those who sincerely read the Quran and put
it into practice, and degrades those who do not practice it even if they read it.
(Muslim, Musafirin, 269; Ali al-Qari, Mirqat, IV, 620)
In our first hadith, we are told that those who read the Quran in the
morning and evening and practice it come at the first rank of those whom one
can envy. How can someone not wish to be like them?!122 As a matter of fact, it
is the greatest wealth to have the knowledge of the Noble Quran and then to
122. The meaning of the term hasad mentioned in the Arabic original of the hadith is wishing
that someones wealth be off his hands. Its figurative meaning is to admire. There is no doubt
that in this hadith the term is used in its figurative meaning. In other words, one should
admire those who know the Holy Quran and try to be like them.
194
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
act in accordance with it. Believers should appreciate the value of this divine
blessing and should not turn attention to temporary and deceptive profits.
It is said in a noble hadith:
Quran is a wealth that no poverty can be experienced after it (in other
words, those who know the Quran obtain the most valuable wealth) and there
is no wealth save the Holy Quran (in other words, such divine wealth cannot be
compared to any material wealth.) (Haythami, VII, 158)
The following saying of Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) is really striking in terms
of expressing the wealth of those who know the Quran:
Whoever wishes for knowledge should contemplate about the meanings
of the verses of the Quran, and concentrate their exegesis and recitation! As a
matter of fact, it consists of the knowledge of the past and the future generations. (Haythami, VII, 165; Baihaqi, Shuab, II, 331)
About this topic, Husayn b. Fadl narrated the following story:
Seven caravans owned by the Jewish tribes of Bani Qurayzah and Bani Nadir arrived at the city of Medina on the same day. The caravans carried various
fabrics, perfume glasses, jewelry, and various sea products.
Muslims said:
We wish that these materials were ours so that we would get stronger and
spend it in the way of Allah.
Upon that, Allah the Almighty revealed the following noble verse:
And We have bestowed upon you the seven oft-repeated (verses) and
the Grand Quran. (Al-Hijr; 15:87)
In other words, Allah the Almighty meant I have blessed you with seven
verses which are more valuable than those seven caravans.
After this verse, the following verse was revealed:
Strain not your eyes (wistfully) at what We have bestowed on certain
classes of them, nor grieve over them: but lower your wing (in gentleness)
to the believers. (Al-Hijr; 15:88) (Wahidi, p. 283)
Aifa b. Abd (r.a.) reported the following incident:
195
When the tax revenues from Iraq came to Umar, he and his assistant came
out. Umar started to count the camels. When he saw that they are more than
what they have expected, he said Alhamdulillah! His helper said referring to
a verse of Quran:
O leader of the believers, I swear to Allah, these are from the blessings
and mercy of Allah.
Umar (r.a.) replied:
No you are wrong. These are not the things that Allah the Almighty referred in the verse let them rejoice in the bounty of Allah and in His Mercy123 Finding the right path, Sunnah, and Quran are the real blessings and
mercy of Allah. Let all believers rejoice for these. This is the wealth about which
the rest of the verse is talking The bounty of Allah and His Mercy is better
than the (wealth) they hoard124 since such wealth is also among the things
that humans collect. (Ibn al-Jawzi, Manaqib, p. 229)
In our second hadith is told the merits of those who practice the Quran
and the divine rewards that will be given to them in hereafter. From a literal perspective, rewards that will be given to parents of those who learn and
practice the Quran are being told in this hadith. However, the last sentence
elequantly shows the virtue and superiority of those who actually practice the
Quran. If the crown of their parents is so good, then who knows how valuable
and superior their reward will be. Therefore, a believer should try to live in
accordance with the Quran and also give his children a solid education of the
Quran.
Those who learn, teach, and practice the Quran will not only see its rewards in this world but also in their questioning in the grave and in the Hereafter. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informs us one of the rewards of those who
are acquainted with the Quran as:
When a person who memorized the whole Quran and who lived by the
commands of the Quran, who shaped his manners according to the Quran, and
who matured himself with the wisdom of the Quran passes away, Allah reveals to
the earth not to eat (ruin) his body. The earth says:
123. Yunus; 10:58.
124. Yunus; 10:58.
196
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
O My Lord! While Your words are within him, how could I eat his body?
(Dailami, I, 284/1112; Ali al-Muttaqi, I, 555/2488)
The Quran continued to list the evidences for him for so long that Allah told
the Quran:
I am leaving him to you. Do however he deserves!
Upon that, the Quran seen in human form holds the mans hand and does
not leave him. He dresses him with white clothes, crowns him like the kings, and
offers him water in the bowl of the kings. (Haythami, VII, 160-161; Bazzar, no: 2337)
As the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) complains in this world about those
who abandon the recitation and the practice of the Quran, he will also complain about them in the Hereafter. What a miserable situation for a believer it is
to face with a complaint of the Messenger of Allah at a time when he needs his
intercession the most! It is stated in another Quranic verse:
Then the Messenger will say: O my Lord! Truly my people took this
Quran for just foolish nonsense. (Al-Furqan; 25:30)
This complain contains not only disbelieving the Quran and having an
attitude against it but also not paying attention to its warnings and good news,
and especially abandoning to recite it. In a noble hadith, it is stated:
Whoever learns the Quran and puts the Book away and neither recites it
or looks at it, , the Quran comes on the Day of Judgment and gets a hold of that
person and complains as:
O the Creator of all! This servant of You abandoned me and stayed away
from me. You decide between us! (Qurtubi, XIII, 27-28; Alusi, Ruh al-maani, XIX, 14,
[Al-Furqan; 30 (see commentaries)])
There are also people who not only do not learn and practice the Quran
but also use it to be famous and receive some benefits. The following report
of Muadh b. Jabal (r.a.) which he very likely heard from the Prophet (pbuh)
contains very important warnings and signs. He says:
For sure there will be some trials in the future. At that time, wealth increases and Quran is opened and everyone including believers, hypocrites,
man, woman, slave, free, children, and adults read the Quran. Such days are
close when one of them will say:
What is wrong with these people that they do not follow me even though
I recite the Quran? They wont follow me in religion unless I say things against
the Quran.
198
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
:
.
199
:
.
:
.
88. Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
I recommend you the following two means of cure: Honey and the Quran.
(Ibn Majah, Tibb, 7)
Explanations:
Allah the Almighty has given the cure for every affliction that He has created.125 In order to find them, one has to search for the cures of the illnesses.
When people asked to the Messenger of Allah:
O Messenger of Allah! Should we make use of medical treatment? He
responded:
Make use of medical treatment, for Allah has not made a disease without
appointing a remedy for it, with the exception of one disease, namely old age.
(Abu Dawud, Tibb, 1/3855; Ibn Majah, Tibb, 1)
He said to people who said that they are being treated with wine:
It is not a cure but a trouble and forbid it. (Tirmidhi, Tibb, 8/2046)
Allah the Almighty, the owner and controller of everything, has related
every event to a cause. That is because Allah made this universe alam al-asbab
or the universe of causes. Therefore, He left the treatment of the illnesses to
certain medicines. As a matter of fact, studying illnesses is the topic of the
science of medicine. However, the necessity and the benefit of praying to Allah should never be denied as well. Since everything is in Allahs control, as in
everything else, praying to Him for the cure of an illness is extremely important. Many supplications that the Messenger of Allah recited for the sick have
been reported. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) not only recited some verses
125. Bukhari, Tibb, 1.
200
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
and chapters from the Quran in addition to other kinds of supplications but he
also approved people who did the same.
Since our first hadith informs us that the Quran is the best cure, believers should never abandon supplicating for getting well and reciting the Quran
along with taking the medications. As a matter of fact, the food and vitamins
cannot go beyond being a creature of Allah as a mean for the treatment of illnesses. In reality, Allah is the one who provides the cure. Therefore, while one
tries all the means of treatment on the one hand, on the other hand he should
sincerely pray to Allah for a cure and recite Quran.126
The Noble Quran is a source of guidance and cure. It is the most important cure for the hearts, bodies, and spirits. It combines the worldly science of
medicine and the divine medicine, the medicine for the body and the medicine
for the soul, and the cure that belongs to this world and the cure of the spiritual
world. However, the treatment of the Quran is more applicable to spiritual
illnesses. With this in mind, the features of the Quran treating many carnal illnesses for which the science of medicine cannot find any cure, despite all kinds
126. Recently, research has been done on the effects of having faith, praying, and reciting the
Quran on human health. We can mention some of them here:
A Muslim scientist Dr. Ahmet al-Qadi who works in the USA researched on Quran and
Stress and presented his works in 1984 in an Islamic Medicine Conference which took
place in Istanbul. In his research, this scientist found that the sound of the words of the
Quran had positive effects on relieving stress.
(http://www.thehealthnews.org/tr/news/05/11/10/dua.tedavi.iyilesme.html, [23.04.2007])
In the US, according to another study composed of analysis of many different previous
researches, religious faith affects life expectancy as much as good nutrition, exercise, regular
checkups, and receiving appropriate treatments for the illnesses. The study of Dr. Daniel
Hall from the University of Pittsburghs Center of Medicine indicates that the positive effects
of spiritual life on life expectancy are more easily seen than the effects of other variables.
Dr. Hall focuses on a particular side of the issue and argues that positive effects of believing
is due to the psychology of optimism and social solidarity that are created by the feeling of
belonging to a group which in turn decreases the effects of everyday stress. (http://www.
ktuvakfi.org.tr/h1.htm, [23.04.2007])
Another study is done on 393 patients between the August of 1982 and May of 1983. In
this research, the group divided into two and one is prayed for without their knowledge
and the other group is not prayed for again without their knowledge. The statistics of the
research show that the group that is prayed for experienced less congestive heart failure,
needed less diuretics and antibiotics, experienced fewer pneumonia and intubation cases,
and were administered less oxygen. When we look at the statistics, the group that is prayed
for, even though they did not know it, drew a better picture in every aspect. The results
of this experiment are published in a New York Times article in October 2001. (http://
www.benotesi.com/index.php?option=com_content&task=view&id=38&Itemid=56,
[23.04.2007])
201
of research, are being observed by the qualified people all along. (Razi, XXI, 29;
Elmall, V, 3195, [Al-Isra 17/82 explanation])
It is not right to think that the Quran revealed by Allah, the Lord of all
the Universes, would not offer treatment for the illnesses, while it is accepted
that even some human words can positively affect the course of illnesses. When
looked objectively, it can be seen that when recited with full faith in its benefits
and blessings, the Quran can heal many illnesses.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) never abandoned the recitation of the
Quran for illnesses and troubles. Aisha (r.anha) said:
Whenever Allahs Apostle went to bed, he would recite Surat al-Ikhlas,
Surat al-Falaq and Surat al-Nas and then blow on his palms and pass them over
his face and those parts of his body that his hands could reach. And when he
fell ill, he used to order me to do like that for him. (Bukhari, Tibb, 39)
Aisha (r.anha) also said:
During the Prophets terminal illness, he used to recite the Muauwidhat
(Surat al-Nas and Surat al-Falaq) and then blow his breath over his body. When
his illness was aggravated, I used to recite those two Chapters and blow my
breath over him and make him rub his face with his own hand for its blessings.
(Bukhari, Tibb, 32)
A man saw a scar on the knee of the Companion Salama b. Aqwa and
asked:
What is this?
Salama (r.a.) told him his story:
This scar was afflicted on the Day of Khaibar. Upon that, the people
around me screamed saying:
Salama got hit! Then the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) came near me and
blew on me three times. Finally, one hour later I was completely cured. (Abu
Dawud, Tibb, 19/3894)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
She is under the effect of an evil eye; so treat her with a Ruqya (protective
and healing supplications.) (Bukhari, Tibb, 35)
Abu Said al-Khudri reported.
We were at a military expedition that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had
sent us. We landed at a place where a maid came to us and said:
A poisonous snake has bitten the chief of our tribe. The soldiers that can
treat him are not with us right now. Is there any incantator (someone who
recites Ruqya which means reciting protective and healing supplications)
amongst you?
A person amongst us which we had no idea that he had been a good incantator stood up and went with her. But he practiced incantation and the chief
was all right. They gave our friend thirty sheep, and he served us their milk.
We said to him:
Are you a good incantatory? Thereupon he said:
No, I only did it by reciting the chapter al-Fatiha.
We said to him [to make sure it is his right]:
Do not benefit from these sheep until we ask Allahs Messenger about
this!
When we came to Medina and told Allahs Apostle (pbuh) of what happened, he said:
How did you come to know that this (al-Fatiha) could be used as an incantation? So distribute them (amongst those who had been present there with him)
and allocate a share of mine also!127 (Muslim, Salam, 66, 65; Bukhari, Fadail al-Quran,
9; Ijara, 16; Tibb, 33, 39)
203
Ilaqah b. Sahar came to the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) and embraced Islam.
He then returned and on his way stopped by some people who had a lunatic
fettered in chains. His people said:
We are told that your companion (i.e. the Messenger of Allah (pbuh))
has brought some good from Allah. Do you have anything with which you can
cure him?
Ilaqah (r.a.) continued his words as:
I then recited al-Fatiha and he was cured. They gave me one hundred
sheep. I then came to the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) and informed him of it and
asked whether it is permissible for me to take the sheep. He asked:
Did you say anything other than this (Quran)?
I said:
No, I have not.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Take it, for by my life, some accept if for a worthless chain, but you have
done so for a genuine one! (Abu Dawud, Tibb, 19/3896; Buyu, 37/3420; Ahmad, V, 211)
The reason why the Messenger of Allah asked his companion whether or
not he has recited something else was to see if some traditions of pre-Islamic
Ignorance era are mixed with it. When he saw that this was not the case, he told
the man that the reward was permissible (halal).
Jabir (r.a.) narrated as follows:
A scorpion stung one of us while we were sitting with Allahs Messenger
(pbuh) and a person said:
O Allahs Messenger, should I use incantation (for curing the effect of the
sting)?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
He who is competent amongst you to benefit his brother should do so!
(Muslim, Salam, 61, 62, 63; Ahmad, III, 302, 304)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Allah (pbuh) had first forbidden to perform Ruqya, but later said: Bring your
Ruqya to me! and he gave permission to recite their Ruqya after cleaning up
the parts that are not permissible.
The scholars agreed that a Ruqya would be permissible under the following three conditions:
a. It should be done by reciting the words of Allah, His names or attributes;
b. It should be done in Arabic or some other language that is clearly understood;
c. One must believe that the Ruqya is not the cure by itself but it cures
only if Allah the Almighty wishes so. (Ibn Hajar, Fath al-Bari, X, 206)
In other words, Ruqya is permissible only when it is composed of verses
of the Quran and sayings of the Prophet (pbuh) in which the names and attributes of Allah are mentioned, and when it is recited in an understandable
language. A Ruqya performed by saying unclear words, meaningless sounds,
and unknown names is forbidden (haram). Also performing Ruqya by using
iron and salt or by knotting a rope is forbidden. A Ruqya performed by praying, seeking refuge, or asking help from something other than Allah is committing polytheism.
The hadith that reports those who do not perform Ruqya or do not let
Ruqya be done to himself will enter into Paradise without questioning128 refers
to the forbidden (haram) kind of Ruqya that is done in pre-Islamic era which
contains polytheism.
The most practiced method in treating with Quran is reciting the verses
that are about healing. Qushayri narrates that his son got sick. His condition
got so bad that they lost hopes from his life. Imam Qushayri saw the Messenger
of Allah in his dream. He explained the condition of his son to him. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) reminded him the verses of the Quran about healing
and advised him to recite them. When Qushayri followed the Prophets advice,
soon his son got well. (See Alusi, XV, 145, [Commentary on al-Isra 17/82])
The verses of Quran about healing are as follows:
128. Bukhari, Riqaq, 50; Tibb, 17, 43; Libas, 18; Muslim, Iman, 367, 369, 371, 374.
205
help you (to victory) over them, heal the breasts of Believers. (AlTawbah; 9:14)
a healing for the (diseases) in your hearts (Yunus; 10:57)
there issues from within their bodies a drink of varying colors,
wherein is healing for men. (Al-Nahl; 16:69)
And when I am ill, it is He Who cures me. (Al-Shuara; 26:80)
In seeking cure with the recitation of the Quran, it is very important for
the heart to be sincere. In order for this method to work, one must act faithfully
and sincerely and only for the sake of Allah and must always be acting upon
the Quran. If the acts of the person do not conflict with his words and with the
verses and supplications that he recites, the treatment occurs quicker.
Ibn Qayyim al-Jawziyye explains how Quran cures for both physical and
spiritual illnesses as follows:
206
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Quran is a complete cure for the illnesses of the heart and body which are
either related to this world or to the Hereafter. However, not everybody is capable
of receiving treatment with it. If a sick person receives a good treatment with the
Quran, and he puts it in front of his illness with a strong faith, complete trust and
righteousness, and by paying attention to its requirements, then the illness cannot resist it. How can illnesses resist to the word of Allah, the creator of the heavens and the earth? If the words of Allah descended onto mountains, they would
be disarrayed and if it descended onto the earth, the earth would be destroyed. 129
There is no spiritual and physical illness that its remedy and its prevention cannot be found in the Quran! However, only those who are blessed with a special
understanding of the Quran can benefit from them. 130
In the second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised the use of
honey next to Quran as a treatment.
Allah informs us that there are many cures in honey produced by bees in
various colors. (Al-Nahl; 16:69)
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) who liked sweet things and
honey131 said in a hadith:
Healing is in three things:
1. A gulp of honey,
2. Bloodletting, 132
3. Branding with fire (cauterizing). But I forbid my followers to use (cauterization) branding with fire unless it is necessary. (Bukhari, Tibb, 3)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised his Companions to drink honey
syrup when they got ill. Abu Said al-Khudri reported that a person came to
129. In some of the verses of the Quran, it is said that:
Had We sent down this Quran on a mountain, verily, you would have seen it humble
itself and cleave asunder for fear of Allah. Such are the similitudes which We propound
to men that they may reflect. (al-Hashr; 59:21)
If there were a Quran with which mountains were moved, or the earth was cloven
asunder, or the dead were made to speak, (this would be the one!) (al-Rad; 13:31)
130. Ibn Qayyim al-Jawziyya, Zad al-Maad, IV, 352; Qasimi, Mahasin al-tawil, X, 3978.
131. Bukhari, Tibb, 4.
132. Bloodletting: It is drawing some blood between the shoulders, from the back, from the
back of the head, or from some other part of the body for treatment purposes. This method
is among the advices of the Messenger of Allah for medical treatment and also a Sunnah
that he practiced.
207
Allahs Messenger (pbuh) and told him that his brothers bowels were loose.
Thereupon Allahs Messenger (pbuh) said:
Give him honey. So he gave him that and then came and said:
I gave him honey but it has only made his bowels more loose.
He said these three times; and then he came the fourth time, and he (the
Holy Prophet) said:
Give him honey. The man said:
I did give him, but it has only made his bowels more loose, whereupon
Allahs Messenger (pbuh) said:
Allah has spoken the truth and your brothers bowels are in the wrong.
So he made him drink (honey syrup) and he was recovered. (Bukhari, Tibb, 4;
Muslim, Salam, 91)
With his last words, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) expressed that the
Quranic verse133 stating there are cures in honey for humans is true and every
Muslim should believe in this.134
d. The Intercession of the Quran
: .
89. Abu Umame al-Bahili (r.a.) reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) say:
Recite the Quran! That is because, on the Day of Judgment, Quran will
intercede for those who live by it. (Muslim, Musafirun, 252)
208
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
:
:
209
.
:
91. Narrated Abdullah b. Amr (r.a.) reported that the Apostle of Allah
(pbuh) said:
One who was devoted to the Quran will be told in the Hereafter:
Recite and ascend, and recite carefully as you recited carefully when you
were in the world, for the final abode you reach will be the height of the last verse
you recite. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 20/1464; Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 18/2914)
Explanations:
The Noble Quran was revealed to ensure the happiness of human beings
both in this world and the Hereafter. Since the real purpose of being happy
in this world is to reach the happiness in the Hereafter, the most important
purpose of the Quran is to ensure the eternal salvation and happiness of the
servants of Allah.
Believers who follow the commands and prohibitions in the Quran will
reach salvation both in this world and in the Hereafter and their levels will also
elevated by the intercession of the Quran. In the first hadith Allahs Messenger
(pbuh) gives the good tidings of this by saying:
Recite the Quran! That is because, on the Day of Judgment, Quran will
intercede for those who live by it.
In another noble hadith:
Whoever learns a verse from the Quran will happily be met by this verse on
the Day of Judgment. (Haythami, VII, 161)
Here the emphasis is that the Quran will intercede for those who learn the
Quran and live in accordance with its rules. People of the Quran or Companions of the Quran are the ones who recite it, follow its instructions, and
shape their actions and behaviors accordingly. Otherwise, they are not those
who recite it without understanding and contemplating about its meaning and
putting them into practice. Ali al-Qari tells that the Quran will not intercede
for such people but on the contrary it will complain about them. That is be210
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
cause, the Quran is not revealed just to be read but also to be practiced in
everyday life.
Those who learn, live, and teach the Noble Quran are the special servants
of Allah. As a matter of fact, one day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
For sure there are those who are closer to Allah among His servants!
The Companions of the Prophet asked:
O Messenger of Allah! Who are they?
He (pbuh) said:
They are the people of Allah, people of the Quran, and the exceptional servants of Allah! (Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 16)
According to the good news informed in this hadith, Quran will testify on
the Day of Judgment for those who recite it and practice its commands and it
will intercede for their forgiveness. In turn, Allah the Almighty will treat such
servants with His mercy.
Another noble hadith about this topic reads as follows:
On the Day of Judgment, the Noble Quran comes to its reader like a pale
man and says:
I am the one that left you sleepless during the night and thirsty during the
day! (Ibn Majah, Adab, 52)
In other words, the Quran will help so much to those Muslims who tried
hard and overcame difficulties in order to read and practice the Quran in this
world that in a sense it will get tired and exhausted. The Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) used this expression in order to explain that the Quran will help those
who practice it on the frightful Day of Judgment, ease their questioning, and
relieve the heat and hardship of the Day.
In turn, Allah the Almighty will not punish such servants. As a matter of
fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Recite the Quran... That is because Allah does not punish the heart that has
the Quran in it (Darimi, Fadail al-Quran, 1)
In the second hadith, after stating that the Quran will intercede for those
who live in accordance with its rules, Allahs Messenger also informs us that
211
certain chapters of the Quran such as Al-Baqarah and Al-i Imran will come
and intercede even more for the people of the Quran.
In the rest of the hadith, in order to express the importance and spiritual
rewards of these specific chapters of the Quran, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
gave three examples for these chapters.
The superiority of a chapter of the Quran over another chapter is something related to their contents and the depth of their meaning. Chapters of alBaqarah and Al-i Imran almost cover the entire issues of religion.
The following narration shows that the al-Baqara is so rich in terms of its
content, and therefore this chapter of the Quran is considered more virtuous.
Once, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was going to send a military expedition. He made them read the Quran. Each of them recited from the verses of
Allah as much as they knew. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) approached the
youngest Companions and said:
O so and so! What do you have in your memory?
And he said:
I have such and such chapters in my memory, and I also memorized
chapter al-Baqarah!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
Do you have in your memory the chapter al-Baqarah?
The young man said:
Yes! Upon this, our Master Pride of the Universe (pbuh) said:
Now you can go and be the leader (commander) of them! That is because
this chapter covers almost the entire religion.
One of the leaders of the congregation said:
O Messenger of Allah! The fear that I may not be able to practice the
content of this chapter prevented me from memorizing it.
Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Know, recite, teach, and practice the Quran! That is because, those who
learn, teach, and practice the Quran are like a leather bag filled with musk whose
212
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
scent spreads to everywhere. Those who learn but do not practice it are like a
tightly closed leather bag filled with perfume. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 2/2876; Haythami, VII, 161)
In our third hadith, it is expressed how the state of those who recite the
Quran by paying attention to its manners and put it into practice in every aspect of their lives will be advanced in Paradise. Their levels in paradise will be
commensurate with their relationship with the Quran in this world.
In another hadith, in a way explaining our third hadith, the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) said:
The Quran comes on the Day of Judgment and says for the person who lived
by it in the world:
Dear Lord! Adorn him!
Upon this, he gets crowned with the crown of honor and divine blessings.
The Quran says:
O my Lord! Bless him with more!
The person who reads and practices the Quran will be dressed with the garment of honor and divine blessings.
The Quran says:
O my Lord! Be content with him!
Allah becomes content with that person and says to him:
Recite and ascend!
So with each verse he recites, his spiritual rewards get increased. (Tirmidhi,
Fadail al-Quran, 18/2915)
The recitation of the Quran in Paradise of those who know and live the
Quran will be like the angels remembrance of Allah so this wont prevent them
in any way from experiencing other blessings. In fact, reciting the Quran in
the best fashion by paying attention to the rules of recitation will be their best
pleasure.
The term best fashion (tartil) mentioned in the hadith essentially means
harmony and order, in other words, reciting the Noble Quran with measured
rhythmic tones and slowly by pronouncing the letters appropriately, namely by
giving the Quran its due.
The recitation of the Prophet was clear and deliberate, by emphasizing the
letters and watching for the measured rhythmic tones, and at the same time by
paying attention to the rules of its recitation. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 23)
That is because Allah the Almighty commanded him:
recite the Qur'an in slow, measured rhythmic tones. (Al-Muzzammil;
73:4)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
many others who memorized and recited the Quran better than Abu Bakr
(r.a.). However, there is an agreement that Abu Bakr was the best of the Noble
Companions. That is because he was the one who knew Allah and the spirit of
the Quran best, and the one who shaped his life according to the contents of
the Quran.
On the other hand, we benefit not only from the Quran that we personally
recite but also from the Quran that we teach to others. So, we gain the honor
of its intercession. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The past and the future sins of those who teach their children how to read
the Quran are forgiven. And whoever makes the child memorize the Quran, Allah resurrects him like a full moon on the Day of Judgment and the child will be
told:
Read!
With each verse the child recites, Allah elevates the level of the father. This continues till the end of the verses that the child remembers. (Haythami, VII, 165-166)
On the Day of Judgment, just as the Quran, those who knew the Quran
will also intercede. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informs us of that saying:
Whoever recites the Quran and nicely memorizes it, and accepts its permissions as permissible (halal) and prohibitions as prohibited (haram), Allah places
them into His Paradise and gives them permission to intercede for ten people from
their family who deserved to be in Hell. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 13/2905; Ibn Majah,
Muqaddimah, 16; Ahmad, I, 148)
May Allah bless us with learning and reciting the Quran in the best
fashion by understanding its contents and putting them into practice and
benefiting from its intercession on the Day of Judgment! Our Almighty
Lord, bless our lives with the services to the Quran!
Amin!...
11. Times of Dawn
215
.
:
92. Bilal (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying:
Try your best to wake up at night, because it was the tradition of the righteous
people before you. There is no doubt that waking up at night for worship is the sign
of being close to Allah. (This act of worship) prevents from wrongdoings, becomes
expiation to sins, and treats the illnesses of the body. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 101/3549)
: .
:
216
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
94. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Every night when only the last third of the night remains, our Lord descends
to the nearest heaven and says:
Is there anyone to invoke Me that I may respond to his invocation? Is there
anyone to ask Me so that I may grant him his request? Is there anyone asking My
forgiveness so that I may forgive him? (Bukhari, Tawhid, 35; Tahajjud, 14; Daawat, 13;
Muslim, Musafirin, 166)
.
:
95. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Satan puts three knots at the back of the head of any of you when you are
asleep. On every knot he reads and exhales the following words, The night is
long, so stay asleep. When one wakes up and remembers Allah, one knot is undone; and when one performs ablution, the second knot is undone, and when one
prays, the third knot is undone and one gets up energetic with a good heart in
the morning; otherwise one gets up lazy and with a mischievous heart. (Bukhari,
Tahajjud, 12; Bad al-khalk, 11; Muslim, Musafirin, 207. Also see Abu Dawud, Tatawwu, 18/1306;
Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 174)
Explanations:
The night compared to the day and the hours of early dawn compared to
the night are considered better periods of time. So, believers who want to be
217
blessed with Paradise should take the advantage of these valuable periods of
time. As a matter of fact, Allah the Almighty advises the following to His servants who do not want to neglect the Hereafter:
And part of the night, prostrate yourself to Him; and glorify Him a
long night through. As to these, they love the fleeting life, and put away
behind them a Day (that will be) hard. (Al-Insan; 76:26-27)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Those who are afraid travel during the night. Someone who travels at night
reaches where he wants to go. Know it well that Allahs merchandise is very expensive, and Paradise is Allahs merchandise. (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 18/2450)
By this rhetorical narration, Allahs Messenger (pbuh) wants the believers,
who are in this world the travelers to the Hereafter, not to lose time. He advises
us to take measures and take the advantage of the hour of early dawn to prepare
ourselves for the Hereafter just like a person acting cautious during a war time
and gains victory as a result of it.
When a period of time is so precious, the acts of worship performed at
such periods of time also become very valuable. For this reason, performing a
prayer, reciting the Quran, remembering Allah, and thinking about His blessings are even more valuable when performed during the early parts of dawn.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The best prayer after the obligatory prayers is the late night prayer. (Muslim,
Siyam, 202, 203)
Allah does not listen to anything as much as He lsitens to the Quran recitation of His servant who performs two units of late night prayer. Allahs mercy
descends upon the servant as long as his prayer lasts. The servants of Allah can
never get as close to Allah as they do when they recite the Quran while praying.
(Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Quran, 17/2911)
Even the dreams seen in the hour of early dawn are different than the
dreams seen at other times. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
The most trustworthy dream is the one seen in the early parts of dawn.
(Tirmidhi, Ruya, 3/2274)
218
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Allahs Messenger (pbuh) would sometimes wake up for the late night
prayer at early parts of the night, and sometimes in the middle of the night,
but mostly at the early hours of dawn. The Companions used to be able to see
him worshipping or resting in various times rather than a fixed time. However,
towards the end of his life, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to wake up for
the late night prayer in the last third of the night, in other words, at the early
hours of dawn.
Aisha (r.anha) explained the features of Prophets late night prayers as:
Allahs Apostle never exceeded eleven cycles (rakah) of prayer in Ramadan or in other months; he used to offer four cycles -- do not ask me about
their beauty and length, then four cycles, do not ask me about their beauty and
length, and then three cycles (Bukhari, Tahajjud, 16; Tarawih, 1; Muslim, Musafirin,
125)
219
They were in the habit of sleeping but little by night, And in the hour
of early dawn, they (were found) praying for Forgiveness. (Al-Zariyat; 51:1718)
Lets give some examples from the beautiful states of the righteous people
who used to regularly perform night prayers:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I recognize the Quran reciting voices of the soft-hearted tribe of al-Ashariyun
when they enter their homes at night. In military expeditions, I recognize their residences at night from their voices when they are reciting the Quran although I had
not seen where they stay during the day time... (Bukhari, Al-Maghazi, 38)
Aisha (r.anha) reported:
The Prophet performed the Tahajjud prayer in my house, and then he
heard the voice of Abbad b. Abdullah who was praying in the Mosque, and
said,
O Aisha! Is this Abbads voice? I said,
Yes, He said,
O Allah! Be merciful to Abbas! (Bukhari, Shahadat, 11)
For eight or nine nights, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) performed the
obligatory night prayer (salat al-isha) until the one third of the night. Upon
that Abu Bakr (r.a.) said:
O the Messenger of Allah! If you lead the salah al-isha a little earlier, it
would be easier for us to wake up for the late night prayer!
220
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
From that time on, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) led the salah al-isha
earlier. (Ahmad, V, 47)
When Umar (r.a.) woke up for the late night prayer, he used to pray as
follows:
O Lord! You know where I am and You know what I need! O Lord! Return me from Your presence as a servant whose needs are satisfied, who is safe
from all kinds of fears and troubles, who fulfills Your commands right away,
whose prayers are answered, whose wrongdoings You forgive and upon whom
You have shown Your mercy.
After performing his prayer, he would continue his supplication saying:
O Lord! I cannot see anything eternal on this world. There is no upright
state on it, either. O Lord! Make me among Your servants who speak with
knowledge and keep silent with wisdom! O Lord! Do not make me too rich so
that I wont go astray, and do not put me in a difficult position so that I wont
forget my acts of worships and responsibilities. For sure, wealth that is not
much but just the right amount is better than too much wealth that causes one
to forget his worships and responsibilities. (Ibn Abi Shayba, Musannaf, VII, 82)
The following story is an exemplary one that shows how the late night
prayer (salat al-tahajjud) makes a believer among the righteous people and
leads him to salvation:
Amir b. Rabia who paid extra attention to the late night prayers passed
away while he was performing one. When people of his time were faced with
an unsolvable disorder, a voice said to Amir in his dream as:
Wake up! Ask Allah to save you from this unrest from which Allah saves
His righteous servants!
He woke up right away and performed a prayer. He got sick after the prayer
and he passed away before going out of his house. (Haythami, IX, 301; Ibn Abi Shayba,
Musannaf, VI, 362/32044)
Qatadah said:
Amir b. Abdiqais started to cry in his death bed.
When he was asked why he was crying, he said:
221
I am neither crying form the fear of death nor from the passion of this
world. However, I am crying that I will be deprived of fasting in hot days and
waking up at night to perform a late night prayer. (Dhahabi, Siyar, IV, 19)
Allah the Almighty mentions the other merits of such righteous people
who paid attention to the early hours of dawn as follows:
Their limbs do forsake their beds of sleep, the while they call on their
Lord, in fear and hope: and they spend (in charity) out of the sustenance
which We have bestowed on them. (Al-Sajdah; 32:16)
In other words, taking advantage of the early hours of dawn directs them
to good services such as charity.
In the rest part of this verse, our Almighty Lord gives the following good
news for those who wake up leaving their beds in early dawn and live a life of
charity:
Now no person knows what delights of the eye are kept hidden (in
reserve) for them - as a reward for their (good) deeds. (Al-Sajdah; 32:17)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) explains this verse as:
Allah the Almighty said:
I have prepared for My righteous servants (such excellent things) as no eye
has ever seen, nor an ear has ever heard nor a human heart can ever think of!
(Bukhari, Bad al-khalk, 8; Tafsir, 32/1; Tawhid, 35; Muslim, Jannah, 2-5)
This noble hadith shows that the blessings of the Paradise are far more
than the blessings that are mentioned in other verses and ahadith. In some
narrations, it is said that those blessings are not known even by the prophets
or the angels.
This is the best sign that shows the love of Allah the Almighty for those
who wake up for the early dawn worship. The following noble hadith is another
proof of this fact:
There are three types of people that Allah loves most, and there are three
types of people the Allah hates most. The three types that Allah loves most are:
1. A man comes into a community and asks for something not because he
knows them but only for the sake of Allah. They dont give him what he asks for.
One of them slowly and secretly goes towards the back of the community and
222
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
gives something to the man. (He gives so secretly that) Only Allah and the man to
whom he helped know about it.
2. A community is on a trip. They walk the whole night. Then they all
feel sleepy and suddenly sleep becomes the most precious thing for them. The
caravan stops and everybody falls asleep. One of them wakes up and prays to
Me and reads my verses with passion and submission.
3. A person joins to a military expedition. They meet the enemy and lose the
war. However, the person moves ahead and fights until he either wins or dies.
The three types of people that Allah hates most include the one who commits
adultery in his old age, the haughty poor, and the cruel rich. (Tirmidhi, Jannah,
25/2568; Nasai, Zakat, 75/2568)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) likes those who take advantage of the early
hour of dawn as well. This is understood from the following hadith:
It is asked to the mother of the believers Aisha (r.anha):
Who does the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) love the most?
She replied:
Fatima!
How about from the males?
Upon this Aisha (r.anha) said:
Her husband! and then she pointed out an important fact and continued:
To the best of my knowledge, he is a person who fasts a lot and performs
late night prayers a lot. (Tirmidhi, Manaqib, 60/3874)
The following report is quite important whivh gives the news that those
who perform late night prayers will go to Paradise:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There are some mansions in Paradise. (Due to their transparency and
beauty) Their inside is seen from outside and outside is seen from the inside.
A Bedouin who heard this stood up and asked:
For whom are these mansions O the Messenger of Allah?
223
O humans! Spread the salutation, feed others, keep your connection alive
with your relatives and continue to help them! Pray at night when everyone is at
sleeps! In this way, you will safely go to Paradise. (Ibn Majah, Atimah, 1; Iqamah,
174; Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 42/2485)
The matter in these two reports which draws our attention is to do something different than others by worshipping at night while everyone is at sleep.
Something which most people cannot do is surely a thing that is difficult to do.
One should acknowledge that waking up for late night prayer while everyone is
asleep is a good deed that only exceptional people can perform. For this reason
late night prayers hold great value. Another fact that makes this worship im135. Translators note: People of Medina who helped to the immigrant Muslims.
136. Translators note: The immigrant Muslims from Mecca.
224
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
portant is that it is an act of worship away from hypocrisy (showing off). Truly,
an act of worship performed when everyone is at sleep is not seen by anyone
else. Therefore, believers who wake up for prayer at dawn are the sincere servants of Allah who worship only for the sake of Allah.
As a matter of fact, the prayer that is not performed in this manner or the
late night prayer performed for other reasons do not have any value. For them,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There are many who wake up for night worship and the only thing they
receive from it is the lack of sleep. (Haythami, III, 202)
In our first hadith, we are informed that the night prayers are expiation
for our sins. This worship also protects one from committing sins and evil. As
a matter of fact, this fact is clearly seen in the following narration:
A man came to the Prophet (pbuh) and said:
There is a man who prays at night and steals in the morning.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If he truly performs a prayer, the verses of the Quran that he recites in his
prayers will take him away from his wrongdoing. (Ahmad, II, 447)
In the second hadith, we are informed of a period of time in every night
when all the supplications coinciding with that period will be accepted. This
shows that nights are more valuable than days. That is because there is only
one period of time during the days, which is in Fridays, when all the prayers
get accepted, whereas such a period of time exists in every night. This is a great
blessing of Allah the Almighty to His servants. So, in order to find this period
of time, believers should wake up at night to turn towards Allah and seek refuge in Him.
When we examine the third hadith, we can say that this time period is in
the last third of the night, or, in other words, just before dawn. As a matter of
fact, we are informed that Allah is closer to His servants who are awake at dawn
and pre-dawn time, accepts their prayers, forgives who ask for forgiveness, and
blesses them with health.
Amr b. Abasa (r.a.) reported that he asked to the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh):
225
The friends of Allah consider the dawn time the most precious treasure
which the worships hold the utmost value, supplications get accepted, sins get
forgiven, and the bodies become healthier. And they say:
Worshipping at night is the true wealth and power that Allah refers to in
the Quran as O Allah. Lord of Power (and Rule), You give power to whom
You please (Al-i Imran; 3:26)137
In our fourth hadith, it is explained how Satan works to prevent believers
to benefit from these rewarding times and hence from eternal salvation. Satan
makes sleeping sweeter in the early parts of dawn in order to prevent people
from worshipping and whispers into the ears excuses for them, such as There
is still time, go back to sleep, to miss these valuable hours.
In order not to get deceived by such tricks, one should go to sleep with the
intention to wake up for worship around dawn time. When one wakes up at
night, one should remember Allah and think about His greatness, necessity of
fulfilling His commands and the abundance of His rewards, and be filled with the
desire of gaining His content. Then one should control his willpower, get up and
drive away his sleepiness by performing ablution. And then, he should overcome
Satan and perform the late night prayer and try to get closer to Allah.
Taking advantage of the nights like this surely brightens up the days, too.
When the nights are lightened up with acts of worship, the days come to life
with services to Allah and good deeds. Spending the nights sleeping by getting
defeated by Satan also takes away the productivity of the days. When the nights
of a person are dark, his days also become dark. The hearts of people who
perform worldly duties without receiving the spiritual nourishment get weak.
137. Hadimi, Majmuat al-Rasail (Risalat al-Wasiyya wa al-Nasiha), p. 194.
226
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Of course, this is the case for the supererogatory acts of worship. The responsibility of obligatory worships does not drop with excuses such as travelling, being ill, or sleep.
There are other ways to compensate not being able to wake up:
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) missed his late night prayer for reasons such as pain, ache, or something else, he used to perform twelve units of
prayer the next morning. (Muslim, Musafirin, 140)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also said:
If a person falls asleep before he completes the supplications or the prayers
that he used to perform and perform them the following morning between the
227
dawn prayer and the noon prayer, he receives rewards as if he has performed it at
night. (Muslim, Musafirin, 142)
12. Dhikr (Remembrance of Allah)
.
:
96. It is narrated from Abu Musa (r.a.) that the Prophet (pbuh) said:
The difference between those who remember (performs dhikr) Allah and
who dont is like the difference between the living person and the dead one.
(Bukhari, Daawat, 66)
.
:
:
228
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
.
97. It is narrated from Muadh al-Juhani (r.a.) that a person came to the
Prophet and asked:
Which jihad is rewarded more?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The jihad of those who remember (perform dhikr) Allah the most!
The man asked:
Which fasting is rewarded more?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The fasting of those who remember (perform dhikr) Allah the most!
After that the Companion repeated the same question for performing
prayers, for giving zakat, performing Hajj, and giving charity. The Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) gave the same answer for all:
Those who remember (perform dhikr) Allah the most!
Upon this, Abu Bakr (r.a.) said to Umar (r.a.):
O Abu Hafs! Those who remember (perform dhikr) Allah the most carried all of the rewards!
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) heard this, he turned towards them
and said:
Yes, that is right! (Ahmad, III, 438; Haythami, X, 74)
229
:
:
.(
98. It is narrated from Muadh b. Jabal (r.a.) that one day the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) held his hand and said:
By Allah, I love you, Muadh!
Muadh (r.a.) said:
May my parents be sacrificed for you138 O Messenger of Allah! I love you
back!
Then, the Messenger of Allah said:
I advise you to never leave to recite the folllowing supplication after every
(prescribed) prayer:
O Allah, help me in remembering You, in giving You thanks, and worshiping You well. (Ahmad, V, 244-245; Abu Dawud, Witr, 26/1522; Nasai, Sahw, 60/1301)
:
138. Translators note: An Arabic expression of respect and love.
230
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
.(
)
99. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
There are two words that are light on the tongue but weigh heavily in the
balance, and loved by the Most Merciful Allah:
Subhan Allahi wa bi Hamdihi, Subhan Allah al-Azim: Allah is free from
imperfection and all praise is due to Him. Allah is free from imperfection, the
Supreme. (Bukhari, Aiman, 19; Daawat, 65; Tawhid, 58; Muslim, Dhikr, 31. Also see Tirmidhi,
Daawat, 59/3467; Ibn Majah, Adab, 56)
: : .
.
100. It is narrated from Ibn Umar (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Do not forget Allah and be lost in vain talk. That is because talking too
much by forgetting Allah hardens the heart. The people who are furthest away
from Allah are those whose hearts are hardened. (Tirmidhi, Zuhd, 62/2411. Also see
Muwatta, Kalam, 8)
Explanations:
The Arabic word dhikr means mentioning and remembering. This can be
done by tongue or by heart. Allah the Almighty is the One that we should remember the most.
231
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
the mornings and evenings; and do not be of those who are unheedful. (AlAraf; 7:205)
O you who believe! Celebrate the praises of Allah, and do this often;
and glorify Him morning and evening. (Al-Ahzab; 33:41-42)
This noble verse does not set limits for the worship of remembering Allah
as set for the other acts of worships. So, it is asked from humans to remember
Allah in all circumstances and never to forget Him.
Since it can easily be done and it is very rewarding, there is no excuse for
not fulfilling this worship. Possible excuses for other worships such as being
ill, travelling, or working conditions are not considered as valid excuses for
remembering Allah and as a matter of fact, they might even be good opportunities to fulfill this act of worship. We may find better chances to remember
Allah in such conditions.
The goal of dhikr is to remember Allah in the heart and shape our acts
accordingly. Otherwise, the goal is not just repeating the noble name of Allah
without being aware what we are doing. Therefore the best dhikr is to remember Allah the Almighty at all times and in every act, or in other words to try not
to forget Him at all. Nothing can prevent remembering Allah in the heart.
Those who remember Allah all the time not only earn abundant spiritual
rewards but also embrace other acts of worships with aspiration and perform
them easily.
Abdullah b. Busr (r.a.) narrated:
Two Bedouins came to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) to ask a question.
One of them asked:
O Messenger of Allah! Who is the best kind of all humans?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Those whose life is long and deeds are righteous.
The other one said:
O Messenger of Allah! The rules of Islam increased, tell me such an act
that I can strongly adhere to it.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
233
Let your tongue always be wet for mentioning the name of Allah (always
remember Allah)! (Ahmad, IV, 188; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 4/3375)
As it can be understood from the above narration, those who always remember Allah obey the commands of Allah more and show submission to His
commands and prohibitions by freeing themselves from negligence and forgetfulness. On the other hand, this hadith also shows us that remembering Allah
is one of the easiest and most rewarding supererogatory acts of worships.
If people forget their Lord who provides with all kinds of blessings, they
would commit a huge disloyalty. In this respect Allahs Messenger (pbuh) said
that:
If people gather in a meeting but do not mention the name of Allah, they
would do something imperfect, they would commit a sin. Whoever walks on the
street and does not remember Allah the Almighty would do something imperfect
and would commit a sin. Whoever goes to his bed and does not remember Allah
again would do something imperfect and would commit a sin. (Ahmad, II, 432; Abu
Dawud, Adab, 25/4855, 97-98/5059)
In the Hereafter, people will feel strongly the regret for the time that they
wasted in this world due to their negligence. They will long for and regret the
times that they wasted by not remembering Allah.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The people of Paradise will regret most for nothing but the times that they
have wasted without remembering Allah in this world! (Haythami, X, 73-74)
Therefore, a believer must try to mention the name of Allah under all
circumstances. As a matter of fact, according to the report of Aisha (r.anha),
our beloved example the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) would remember Allah
under all circumstances. (Muslim, Hayd, 117; Abu Dawud, Taharah, 9/18; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 9/3384; Ibn Majah, Taharah, 11)
Hussein (r.a.) asked his father Ali about the general behavior and morals
of the Messenger of Allah, and his father explained them in detail. The following sentence that he mentioned in his speech shows how much importance the
Messenger of Allah attached to remembering Allah:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) would neither sit nor stand without mentioning the name of Allah (Ibn Sad, I, 424)
234
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Therefore, reviving the heart and finding peace is only possible through
dhikr. As a matter of fact, Allah the Almighty says in a noble verse:
for without doubt in the remembrance of Allah do hearts find satisfaction. (Al-Rad; 13:28)
When the heart is not busy with dhikr, it lives under the tyranny of the
carnal self. It is impossible for this kind of a heart to find peace.
Once, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following about the virtues
of those who remember Allah:
The mufarridun have surpassed all!
The Noble Companions asked:
O Messenger of Allah! Who are the mufarridun?
He replied:
235
Those men and women who remember Allah abundantly139 and then he
made the following explanation:
Mufarridun are those who are devoted themselves to remember Allah. They
resurrect weightless on the Day of Judgment since dhikr takes the weight of their
sins away from their shoulders. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 128/3596)
The following story is very important in terms of expressing the situation
of those who remember Allah in the Hereafter:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah the Almighty resurrects a group of people on the Day of Judgment.
Their faces shine from divine light, they sit on pulpits made out of pearls and
everyone envies them. They are neither prophets nor martyrs!
One Bedouin bent on his knees and said:
O Messenger of Allah! Please let us know about them so we know!
Our Master the Pride of the Universe (pbuh) explained as:
They are from different tribes and places but love each other for the sake of
Allah and get together in order to remember Allah. (Haythami, X, 77)
Those who do not remember Allah incur huge losses both in this world
and in the Hereafter. The sad situation of those is told in the noble verses as:
But whosoever turns away from My Message, verily for him is a life
narrowed down, and We shall raise him up blind on the Day of Judgment.
(Taha; 20:124)
If anyone withdraws himself from remembrance of (Allah) Most Gracious, We appoint for him an evil one, to be an intimate companion to him.
(Al-Zukhruf; 43:36)
O you who believe! Let not your riches or your children divert you
from the remembrance of Allah. If any act thus, the loss is their own. (AlMunafiqun; 63:9)
236
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
dislikes the hearts that are harsh, busy with idle work, and that spend the whole
night sleeping without being sure that their souls will be returned to them, and
that remember Allah rarely. (Dailami, I, 158)
Our Almighty Lord has warned us many times in order to protect us from
the harms and dangers of not remembering Allah. For example, in one those
warnings Allah the Almighty says:
Has not the time arrived for the believers that their hearts in all humility should engage in the remembrance of Allah and of the Truth which
has been revealed (to them)? (Al-Hadid; 57:16)
This verse was revealed about some of the Companions of the Messenger
of Allah who had somewhat been overcome with languor after the migration
despite the fact that they had been living in difficulties while they were in Mecca. (Suyuti, Lubab, p. 227)
Even if they were prophets, Allah the Exalted said to Moses (r.a.) and Aaron (r.a.) when He sent them to Pharoah:
Go, you and your brother, with My Signs, and slacken not, either of
you, in keeping Me in remembrance. (Taha; 20:42)
As we can infer from this verse, remembrance of Allah should not be abandoned even under very difficult and dangerous circumstances. Also, remembrance of Allah gives a person strength to overcome the difficulties of life.
The difference between those who remember Allah and those who are
heedless, which is mentioned in our first hadith, can be applied to our homes
as well. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The difference between a house in which Allah is remembered and the
house in which Allah is not remembered is comparable to the difference between the alive and dead. (Muslim, Musafirin, 211)
The way to save our houses from being places like graves or arid fields is
to perform the acts of worships and prayers, recite the Quran, and remember
Allah in them. As a matter of, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When you perform an obligatory prayer in a mosque, leave performing
some of (the sunnah) parts of the prayer to your homes. As a matter of fact, Allah
creates goodness to your house for that performed prayer. (Muslim, Musafirin, 210.
Also see Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 186)
237
The Prophet also said about recitation of the Quran in our homes:
Do not turn your houses into graves. For sure, Satan runs away from a
house in which the chapter al-Baqarah is recited! (Muslim, Musafirin, 212)
As dhikr (remembrance) revives the hearts and spiritual life, it also adds
another dimension to the worship. Acts done in remembrance of Allah are
superior to and are more rewarding than the acts that are not done in this way.
That is because acts done in remembrance of Allah are perfectly performed
with sincerity. Those who fill their lives with the remembrance of Allah would
attain several goodnesses.
The following event is so meaningful in expressing how continuously remembering Allah adds a deep meaning to our lives:
Three people from the Bani Uzra Tribe had come to the Messenger of Allah and converted to Islam. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
Who will take the responsibility of taking care of these people?
Talha (r.a.) said:
I can take care of them, O Messenger of Allah!
While they were with Talha, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had sent a
sariyya140 (minor military expedition.) One of the three people joined this expedition and became a martyr. After that, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sent
another minor expedition. In this expedition, the second man became a martyr. A while later, the third man passed away in his bed.
Talha (r.a.) reported the rest of the narration as:
I saw those three people who stayed with me in my dream that they were
in Paradise. The one who passed away in his bed was at the front and the person who became a martyr in the second expedition was following him. The
person who became martyr in the first expedition was behind them. I got surprised and a little disappointed. I immediately went to the Prophet (pbuh) and
told him what I saw in my dream.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
140. Sariyyah is a political and military expedition of our Prophet in which he did not take
part, instead he consigned one of his Companions as the leader of such military units.
238
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
In the third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) teaches us to ask help
from Allah in remembering Him. The Prophet taught a supplication to recite
after prayers to Muadh whom he said that he loved him by taking an oath. This
is enough to prove the worth and value of the remembrance of Allah.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) taught other supplications which can be
recited after the prayers as well. As a matter of fact, in one of such noble ahadith, he said:
Those who recite the following supplications done after the obligatory
prayers never incur losses. Those are the recitation of tasbih (Subhan Allah) thirty-three times, tahmid (al-Hamdu li-Allah) thirty-three times, and takbir (Allah-o-Akbar) thirty-three times. (Muslim, Masajid, 144, 145. Also see Tirmidhi, Daawat,
25/3412; Nasai, Sahw, 92/1347)
In our fourth hadith, we are informed that Allah the Exalted shows mercy on His servants and gives many divine rewards even for very little and easy
efforts. That is because dhikr that is easy on the tongue will weigh heavy on the
divine scale and will make our Merciful Lord pleased.
The dhikr Subhan Allah mentioned in the hadith means I absolve Allah
the Most High and Exalted from all imperfections that do not fit to the state of
being God. I do not let any evil to be associated with Him nor be close to Him.
I praise Him with the most high and perfect attributes, and it is a dhikr that
Allah taught to the angels. (Al-Baqarah; 2:30)
Allah desires that the hearts always be with Him. For this reason, He made
dhikr easy on tongues and said:
239
(men of understanding) Men who celebrate the praises of Allah, standing, sitting, and lying down on their sides (Al-i Imran; 3:191)
Therefore, one must not take a back seat by only performing some of the
practical dhikrs such as the ones taught in the hadith. The reason that we are
informed that those dhikrs will be greatly awarded is to express their importance.
Therefore, a believer should not limit the remembrance of Allah only to those
dhikrs, but should try to be in a state of remembrance of Allah at all times. As a
matter of fact, filling life with idle talk by forgetting Allah hardens the heart, and
people who are in this situation eventually get further away from Allah.
It is said in a noble verse:
Woe to those whose hearts are hardened against celebrating the praises of Allah (Al-Zumar; 39:22)
Even if someone has to speak for a long time, he should not continue with
his speech without remembering Allah, and instead he should often remember
his Lord.
Our words may not always be necessary and appropriate. People many
times put themselves in difficult positions and commit sins with their tongues.
For this reason, Islam has brought a discipline to our words and commanded
Muslims to be extremely careful about this issue. That is because well be held
accountable for our words as well.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
All of the words except the ones that enjoin the good and forbid the evil
or the ones that are said to remember Allah the Exalted work against the son of
Adam not for him. (Tirmidhi, Zuhd 63/2412)
Thus, a Muslim should pay attention to say good and beneficial words and
should know when to prefer silence over talking. By acting this way, he would gain
both the rewards for the talk, for the dhikr and for the contemplation when he
keeps his silence. The following word of the wise is so meaningful and significant:
One should not waste his time and instead should things beneficial to
Islam and the Muslims! The smallest good deed is more valuable than saying
the greatest right word since talking is easy.
A Muslim should reach to such a maturity level by continuously remembering Allah that those who see him should too remember Allah.
240
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Those are the people who remind Allah when their faces are seen! (Haythami, X, 78; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 4)
As it can be seen, the best people are those who remember Allah a lot and
as a result their spiritual states get elevated and therefore their faces and actions
help reminding Allah the Exalted. This is because they continuously remember
Allah wherever they are. They turn their faces away from idle talk and acts, and
they always guide and advise others to righteousness and goodness.
O my Lord! Make us among Your servants who are keys to Your remembrance! Make us one of Your servants who reminds You when seen!..
Ameen!..
13. Praising and Thanking Allah
.
:
241
101. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Every important matter which is not begun by an expression of praise to Allah turns out unproductive. (Ibn Majah, Nikah, 19. Also see Abu Dawud, Adab, 18/4840)
: .
:
102. It is narrated from Anas bin Malik that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Allah becomes pleased when His servant eats or drinks something and praises and thanks Him for them. (Muslim, Dhikr, 89. Also see Tirmidhi, Atima, 18/1816)
242
.
:
: :
: : :
:
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
103. It is narrated from Abu Musa al-Ashari (r.a.) that the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) said:
When a child of a person dies, Allah the Exalted says to His angels:
Did you take the soul of the child of my servant?
Angels say:
Yes.
Allah the Exalted says:
Did you get the fruit of his heart (his beloved)?
Angels say:
Yes.
Allah the Exalted says:
Then, what did my servant say?
Angels say:
He praised you and performed istirja141 by saying Inna lillah wa inna
ilayhi rajiun (To Allah We belong, and to Him is our return)
Upon that Allah the Almighty says:
Then build a house in Paradise for my servant and name it The House of
Praise! (Tirmidhi, Janaiz, 36/1021)
141. The word istirja used in the hadith is remembering Allah and the Hereafter by saying:
104. Jabir b. Abdullah (r.a.) reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) say:
The best dhikr is La ilahe illallah (There is no god but God), and the best
prayer is al-Hamdu lillah. (Praise be to Allah) (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 9/3383)
105. As narrated from the mother of believers Aisha (r.anha), the Prophet
of Allah (pbuh) used to offer prayer at night for such a long time that his feet
used to crack.
Aisha (r.anha) said:
O Allahs Apostle! Why do you do this (endure such hardship) since Allah has forgiven you your faults of the past and those to follow? 142
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Shouldnt I want to be a thankful servant of Allah? (Bukhari, Tafsir, 48/2; Muslim, Munafikin, 81. Also see Bukhari, Tahajjud, 6; Riqaq, 20; Muslim, Munafikin, 79-80; Tirmidhi, Salah, 187/412; Nasai, Qiyam al-layl, 17/1642; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 200)
142. A note about Aishas statement: Allah has forgiven you, your faults of the past and those to
follow: As a matter of fact, prophets do not commit a sin on purpose. Their mistakes consist
of either not performing the better act or some minor lapses. And there are various wisdoms
for these acts to happen. However, Allah does not leave the mistakes of the Prophets as is
and corrects them right away.
244
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
106. According to a narration from Suhaib b. Sinan the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Strange are the ways of a believer for there is good in every affair of his and
this is not the case with anyone else except in the case of a believer for if he has an
occasion to feel delight, he thanks (God), thus there is a good for him in it, and if
he gets into trouble and shows resignation (and endures it patiently), there is also
a good for him in it. (Muslim, Zuhd, 64)
Explanations:
Hamd (praise) is the way of expressing gratefulness for someones beneficence, kindness, and goodness.
Shukr (thanking) is to acknowledge a favor which is done to a person
and respond to it by praising the beneficiary and letting others know about it.
Therefore, hamd (praise) is a more general than the concept of shukr.
There is no other word than hamd that expresses the respect, love, and
gratefulness which we feel towards Allah, because a believer who says Alhamdulillah means that all praises are due to Allah and Allah is the only One who
is worthy of hamd.
There is no superior spiritual rank than The Rank of Hamd for the good
servants of Allah, because:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) is the one who praised Allah most among
all people in this world and the Hereafter. For this reason he was named as Ahmad.
245
Hamd is the name of the flag that the Messenger of Allah will carry in
Paradise. All prophets from Adam to the Day of Judgment will gather under
this The Flag of Hamd or Liwa al-Hamd.
Maqam-i Mahmud is the name of the highest rank of intercession,
which Allah will give only one of His servants, i.e. His Messenger Muhammad
(pbuh).
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) performs prostration at the most
terrifying moment of the Day of Judgment to intercede for the entire humanity,
Allah will inspire him the best hamd that He did not inspire anyone before.
So the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) will intercede after saying this special hamd.
Those who are saved because of his intercession will praise this exalted Ahmad.
And this way, his other names Mahmud and Muhammad will gain their meanings.
One of the characteristics of the followers of Muhammad, who are
praised in previous Scriptures as well, is that they are called Hammadun
which means the ones who praise Allah a lot. As a matter of fact, Allah especially blessed the followers of Muhammad (pbuh) with chapter of Hamd
(al-Fatiha) in the Quran and they recite this chapter in every unit of their
prayers.143
The only duty of the angels, the special creatures who are closest to Allah, is to praise Allah. This is expressed in the noble verses of the Quran as
follows:
And you will see the angels surrounding the Throne (Divine) on all
sides, singing Glory and Praise to their Lord. (Al-Zumar; 39:75)
Those who sustain the Throne (of Allah) and those around it sing Glory and Praise to their Lord. (Al-Mumin; 40:7)
All of the creatures glorify and praise Allah, however humans cannot
understand their way of exalting. (Al-Isra; 17:44)
Even thunders loudly join this praising. Allah informs us about this as:
Nay, thunder repeats His praises, and so do the angels, with awe. (AlRad; 13:13)
143. See Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 17/3148; Ahmad, I, 281; Ibn Hajar, Fath al-Bari, VI, 555; Elmall, I,
506.
246
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
So (give) glory to Allah, when you reach eventide and when you rise in
the morning; Yea, to Him be praise, in the heavens and on earth; and in the
late afternoon and when the day begins to decline. (Al-Rum; 30:17-18) (Ahmad,
III, 439)
Allah begins the Noble Quran with All praise be to Allah, the Lord of
all the worlds in order to emphasize the importance of praising Him (hamd)
and repeated this fact several times.
Allah the Almighty says the following addressing to each one of His servants:
Say: Praise be to Allah (Al-Isra; 17:111)
Therefore praising Allah is a very important act of worship and a big honor for us. A smart believer who wants to get closer to Allah should praise Allah
by referring to what Hamd really means by saying O my Lord! I praise You
as what hamd really means on Your sight without restricting the meaning of
hamd to his limited comprehension. One should enrich his life with hamd and
it should be expressed at the beginning of every act. One must begin his every
144. Al-Najm; 53:37
247
word and act with hamd. As mentioned in our first hadith, it is impossible to
hope from an act which does not start with hamd to be blessed and fruitful.
As we are told in the second hadith, Allah becomes pleased when His
servants praise and thank Him after they eat or drink something. The Prophet
(pbuh) gave the good news that the sins of those who praise and thank Allah
after they eat will be forgiven:
If anyone eats food and then says: Praise be to Allah Who has fed me with
this food and provided me with it through no might and power on my part, he
will be forgiven his former and later sins. (Abu Dawud, Libas, 1/4023; Tirmidhi, Daawat,
55/3458. Also see Ibn Majah, Atima, 16)
Eating and drinking is one of the most important blessings since they are
necessary for survival. It is harder for those who do not appreciate these blessings to realize and thank for lesser blessings.
Shaqiq b. Abraham said:
There are three conditions to thank Allah for His blessings properly and in
the best manner. These are:
1. To know from whom it comes when Allah the Almighty bestows upon
you something,
2. To be satisfied with the blessings of Allah no matter how much they
are,
3. Not to disobey Allah as long as you have the energy in your body
which you obtained from the blessings of Allah. (Qurtubi, I, 134)
It is necessary to praise and thank Allah not only after eating or drinking
something but under any circumstances. The following story is so exemplary
in expressing how Aisha used to express her gratefulness:
Qasir b. Ubayd narrated:
When someone in her family had a newborn baby, Aisha would not ask:
Is it a boy or a girl? rather she would ask:
Is the baby all right?
When she is told:
Yes, the baby is all right she would then say:
248
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
If he praises Allah and lauds Him when the visitors come, angles take that up
to Allah, the Mighty, the Majestic, and All Knowing, and He says:
If I make my slave die, I will make him enter the Garden. If I heal him, I will
replace his flesh with better flesh and his blood with better blood and I will efface
his evil actions. (Muwatta, Ayn, 5)
In the fourth hadith, we are told that the best prayer is to say All praises
are due to Allah. Allah advances His blessings to those who praise Him and
who are grateful to His blessings before they even wish for anything. So, first we
must acknowledge the value of the blessings that we have and be loyal to Allah
by praising and thanking Him appropriately before asking for new blessings.
Only when we can achieve this, we would have prayed Allah in the best manner and His blessings would increase before we ask.
Allah informs us of this:
If you are grateful, I will add more (favors) unto you. (Ibrahim; 14:7)
Since hamd includes the term shukr or being grateful as mentioned in the
verse above, it is the best type of prayer that ensures what is asked for. For this
reason, we start our prayer by praising Allah. As a matter of fact, the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) gave the good news that Allah responds to supplications that
begin with exaltation and praising Him and then invoking blessings on His
Messenger (pbuh). He also advised to those who are in a hurry to begin their
supplications with praising Allah and invoke blessings to the Prophet (pbuh).
(Tirmidhi, Daawat, 64/3476; Abu Dawud, Witr, 23/1481)
On the other hand, there are levels in praising Allah. The Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) informed us about one of the best ways of praising Allah:
One of the servants of Allah said:
O my Lord! All praises which are proper to Your Majesty and Greatness
of Your Power be to You!
This praising incapacitated the two angels that were appointed to record the
deeds of the servant since they did not know how many rewards they should write
in return for this hamd. They ascended to the Heavens and said:
250
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
O our Lord! Your servant said such a word for which we do not know how
many rewards to record. Even though All-knowing Allah already knew well what
the servant had said, He asked:
What did my servant say?
The angels responded:
O our Lord! That servant praised You as: O my Lord! All praises which are
proper to Your Majesty and Greatness of Your Power be to You
Upon this, Allah orders to those two angels:
Record these words as my servant had said it until he reaches Me and I give
him the rewards of these words! (Ibn Majah, Adab, 55)
Praising Allah is one of the good deeds that saves one from the Hell and
ensures him to enter the Paradise. The following story reported by Abu Huraira
(r.a.) is one of the proofs of this fact:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Get your shields!
We asked:
Is there an enemy approaching so you ordered us to get our shields?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
No, get your shields that will save you from the Hell:
Say Subhanallahi Walhamdulillahi wa La ilaha illallahu wallahu Akbar:
Glory be to Allah and All praise be to Allah and there is no god but Him and
He is the greatest! These words come to save and greet you on the Day of Judgment. These words are one of the good deeds which will stay till eternity. (Hakim,
I, 725/1985)
Our fifth hadith explains how significant praising Allah and thanking
Him was in our beloved Prophets life.
251
As the servant who knows Allah best, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) exemplified with his actions that no matter what we do, it can not be enough to
thank Allah.
As understood from this hadith, being grateful to Allah is also necessary
for the forgiveness of our sins.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also expresses in this hadith that worships
and thanking Allah should not be performed in return for worldly rewards and
benefits but rather they are expressions of servitude out of love for Allah.
As can be inferred from the answer that the Messenger of Allah gave to
Aisha, he would have endless pleasure from thanking Allah. So, he loved to
feel thankful to Allah and reflect his gratitude in his actions. In spite of his
heavy responsibilities such as conducting the affairs of Muslims, preaching the
religion, protecting his followers, fighting in the name of Allah, protecting the
borders of the country, there was no one else who worshipped and obeyed Allah more to express his gratitude than he did.
On top of that, our Master the Pride of Universe (pbuh) used to ask Allah
to help him to thank Him more:
O my Lord! I pray to You to keep me on the right religion and help me to
stay on the straight path, and to be able to thank Your blessings appropriately
and be a good servant of You. I ask from You a tranquil heart and a truthful
tongue. I ask for Your forgiveness of my sins that You know of (but I dont). I wish
for every goodness that You know of (but I dont), and I seek refuge in You from
all such evil. (Ahmad, IV, 125)
Our sixth hadith praises and informs about those who live a calm and
peaceful life since they feel grateful to Allah and act patiently due to their
strong faith.
Life is full of happy and sad moments. Those moments visit our hearts
by turns. It is not possible for anyone to avoid them. For this reason, Allah informs us that we should not go to extremes when we are sad for the things that
we lost and also when are happy for the things that we gain. (Al-i Imran; 3:153)
(Al-Hadid; 57:23)
Then, we must know how to benefit from our happy moments by showing our gratitude and from the sad moments of our lives by being patient. One
must not forget that being grateful to blessings increases them and being pa252
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
tient to unfortunate events transforms them into goodness. That is how a believer follows an exemplary and peaceful life by continuously taking advantage
of these two good traits.
As a matter of fact, believers should be grateful to Allah under any circumstances. Otherwise, they would be ungrateful and punishment of ingratitude is
very harsh. As a matter of fact, it is expressed in several verses of the Quran:
Then remember Me; I will remember you. Be grateful to Me, and reject not Faith. (Al-Baqarah; 2:152)
if you show ingratitude, truly My punishment is terrible indeed.
(Ibrahim; 14:7)
The believers who express their gratitude in this life also will continue to
be busy with hamd in Paradise:
Their prayers end with:
Praise be to Allah, the Cherisher and Sustainer of the worlds! (Yunus;
10:10)
.
:
107. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
253
If any one of you greets me, Allah returns my soul to me and I respond to
the greeting. (Abu Dawud, Menasik, 96/2041. Also see Ahmad, II, 527)
: :
108. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If anyone invokes blessings on me once, Allah the Almighty will bless him
ten times. (Tirmidhi, Witr, 21/485. Also see Muslim, Salah, 70; Abu Dawud, Witr, 26/1530;
Nasai, Adhan, 37/676; Sahw, 55/1294)
.
:
109. It was narrated from Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) that the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) said:
Among the people the closest one to me on the Day of Judgment is the one
who invokes blessings on me most. (Tirmidhi, Witr, 21/484)
254
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
110. It was narrated from Ali b. Abi Talib (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
The true miser is the one in whose presence I am mentioned but he does not
invoke blessings for me. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 100/3546. Also see Ahmad, I, 201)
.
:
()
111. It was narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
May those who do not invoke blessing on me upon hearing my name become miserable! May those who reach the month of Ramadan and pass it without receiving forgiveness become miserable! May those whose parents live their
elderly years with them and the children cannot enter into Paradise by pleasing
their parents become miserable! (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 100/3545)
Explanations:
It is impossible for the followers of the Muhammad Mustafa (pbuh) to
thank enough for having the honor of being his followers. That is because the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) is the most beloved servant of Allah and the most
eminent among His prophets. Allah the Almighty has commanded His servants who love Allah to follow the Messenger of Allah as an indication of their
love. Allah tells us that He will love us back and that He will forgive our sins if
we act in this way. (Al-i Imran; 3:31)
One of the verses of the Quran related to Allahs love for His messenger
is as follows:
255
Allah and His angels send blessings on the Prophet: O you who believe! Send you blessings on him, and salute him with all respect. (Al-Ahzab;
33:56)
In this verse, after our Almighty Lord expresses His love, blessings, and
compassion towards the Prophet, He then commands us to invoke blessings on
him, salute him with all respect, and obey his orders.
Salat has several meanings such as asking for forgiveness and mercy, supplication, blessings, praising, celebrating, and honoring. Muslim scholars made
various interpretations of this word depending on who is saying it:
- The meaning of Allahs invocation of salat upon one of His servants
is that He shows mercy on that servant, purifies him by exalting his name and
honor, bestows upon him divine rewards, and protects him by making him
successful.
- The meaning of angels invocation of salat upon a servant of Allah is
that they ask for his forgiveness, pray for him to realize the blessings of Allah,
to elevate his spirituality, and to help him in any cases.
- The meaning of Muslims invocation of salat upon the Messenger of
Allah is that they pray for his goodness, show their respect to him, and exalt
his reputation.
The meaning of Salam mentioned in the above mentioned verse refers
to salvation, soundness, peace, and safety. Salam also means submission, obedience, and be in peace.
In this case, when we invoke blessings upon the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh), as if we pray to Allah the Almighty as follows:
O my Lord! Exalt the reputation and honor of the Prophet both in this
world and Hereafter! Spread the religion Islam that he brought to the whole
world and protect this religion as long as the world exists! In the hereafter,
give him the right to intercede for his followers and give him countless divine
rewards! Bless him with salvation, peace, and safety!
256
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
257
them? Probably our psychology would change, and we would try to invoke
salat on the Messenger of Allah all the time. Indeed, this is very honorable and
an important blessing for a believer. By invoking salats upon the Messenger of
Allah, one can both communicate with the Endless Pride of the Worlds (pbuh)
and also gain many divine rewards.
It is a blessing of Allah that He bestows so many rewards so easily upon His
servants. When we think about this, would we consider invocation of blessings
as a difficulty? It is just a matter of uncovering from the veil of heedlessness.
On the other hand, there is no precondition that one must fulfill before
invoking blessings upon the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) either. One can invoke
blessings on the Messenger of Allah anytime, anywhere and under any circumstances. As a matter of fact, the Pride of the Universe (pbuh) said:
invoke blessings on me, for your blessings reach me wherever you may be.
(Abu Dawud, Manasik, 96-97/2042)
Ali (r.a.) said about the virtues of invoking blessings on the Prophet on
Fridays:
Whoever invokes blessings on the Messenger of Allah a hundred times
on Fridays, he appears on the Day of Judgment with his face very beautiful and
shining with the divine light. Everyone envies him and asks each other:
What good deed did this man perform? (Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 212)
258
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Allah gives ten times the divine rewards and elevates the spiritual level
of those who invoke blessings on the Messenger of Allah. It is said in a noble
hadith:
Whoever invokes blessings on me ten times, Allah sends ten blessings upon
him, erases his ten mistakes, and advances his spiritual level ten levels. (Nasai,
Sahw, 55/1290)
Again the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to one of his Companions who
said that he will invoke lots of blessings on the Prophet in his supplications:
If you do so, Allah removes all of your difficulties and forgives your sins.
(Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 23/2457)
In addition, Gabriel (pbuh) also responds with many times more to those
who invoke blessings on the Prophet:
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) came to his followers with a smiling face and let them know that Gabriel (pbuh) gave him the following good
news:
O the Messenger of Allah! Would you not be happy if I pray to Allah ten
times for the forgiveness of the sins of one of your followers when he invokes blessings on you once, and if I respond to one of your followers greetings ten times
when he greets you? (Nasai, Sahw, 55/1293)
This shows the degree of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) in the sight of
Allah and His angels.
The greetings we sent to the Prophet (pbuh) are to our benefit before anyone else. By invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), we obtain
significant rewards such as mercy of Allah, His forgiveness, prayers and supplications of Angels for our forgiveness, and enrichment of the spiritual life. Most
importantly, because of our invocations for the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), we
will be closer to him in the hereafter. As believers recite the Noble Quran and
advance their levels in the Paradise, they also get closer to the Endless Pride of
the Worlds (pbuh) in Paradise as they invoke blessings on him. Allahumma
salli ala sayyidina Muhammadin wa ala alihi wa sahbihi wa barik wa sallim!
Only when the crowded Day of Judgment comes, one can realize the importance of being closer to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), the loved one of
259
Allah and the sunshine of this world and the hereafter. It is extremely easy to
gain this reward which not everybody is blessed with.
By keeping our tongues busy with invoking blessings on the Messenger of
Allah all the time
Those who act reluctant in performing this much rewarding act of invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah for their own happiness in hereafter
are the ones who caught the worst and evil spiritual illness, such as misery.
As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that the real
miser is the one in whose presence the holy honorable name of the Prophet is
mentioned but he does not supplicate for the Prophet.
The miser person thinks that his wealth will vanish or it will cost him a
lot when he gives something. He thinks that he will profit and be better when
he does not give anything to anyone. As a matter of fact, all of these thoughts
are wrong. Giving alms increases the wealth. Just like this, those who do not
invoke blessings on the Messenger of Allah are making a big mistake. Since invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah does not require any compensation
or anything to give, those kinds of people are the real misers and they are the
ones who will be inflicted more losses. As a matter of fact, a simple effort will
benefit them a lot in hereafter.146
So, those who act reluctant and become miser in invoking blessings on
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) are inflicted with losses without even realizing
them. Since our Master the Pride of Universe (pbuh) could not stand this, he
146. As bad traits such as being miser are harmful and undesirable in material subjects, they
are also harmful in terms of spirituality. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said that those
who abandon the chance of enhancing their own spiritual development are the real miser
people.
A person came to the Noble Prophet and asked for:
O the Messenger of Allah! So and so has a date tree in my garden. Would you tell him to
sell or donate that tree to me!
The man did not accept this offer.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Do what we say and you will receive a date tree in the Paradise!
The man still did not accept the offer. Upon that, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
This man is the most miser of all humans. (Ahmad, V, 364)
That person would have not only gained a date tree in hereafter but also ensured his entrance
to the paradise. However, due to his misery, he lost unimaginable benefits. Those who do
not invoke blessings on the Messenger of Allah waste an opportunity of easily gaining many
divine rewards. Such people are for sure the most miser people on earth and the real misery
is the one shown in spiritual matters.
260
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
warned with a strong language those who do not invoke blessings on him upon
hearing his name.
As a matter of fact, one of the requirements of having strong faith is to love
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh). We would not have had faith in Allah if we do
not love His Messenger more than our parents, children, and even more than
our own selves. (Bukhari, Iman, 8; Ayman, 3; Muslim, Iman, 69-70)
One must ensure such love so that his faith would gain perfection, and he
would be happy both in this world and the hereafter, because it is the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) who announces and delivers the message of Islam, which
ensures the happiness in this world and in the hereafter. Therefore those who
do not love the Messenger of Allah can neither ensure happiness in this world
nor in the hereafter. One of the most important acts that can help us to achieve
such love is to invoke blessings upon the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) when his
name is mentioned.
Despite all these benefits, one who abandons invoking blessings on the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) deserves to be miserable, to deflate, and to fall from
both Allahs and mens favor and bring shame on himself. As a matter of fact,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever neglects and forgets to invoke blessings on me gets confused on the
way to Paradise. (Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 25)
Gabriel (pbuh) came to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and prayed saying:
Those who do not invoke blessings on you when your name is mentioned be
away from the mercy of Allah! and the Prophet said Amin! (Hakim, IV, 170/7256;
Tirmidhi, Daawat, 100/3545)
The reason that our beloved Prophet (pbuh) wanted us to invoke blessings
on him and warned those who abandon it is not a personal demand but rather
to ensure the respect the rank of prophethood and the spiritual link between
the servant of Allah and this rank. As a matter of fact, accepting the existence
and oneness of Allah is not enough for a person to be Muslim, one must aslo
believe in that the Prophet Muhammad is His Messenger.
Another reason of attaching this much importance to invoking blessings
on the Messenger of Allah is the following:
261
Our Almighty Lord who is so merciful towards His servants wants to forgive them. Therefore, He made invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) an opportunity for His servants.
On the other hand, wishing for the Prophet to be elevated to Maqam-i
Mahmud147 in our supplications after performing our prayers or invoking
blessings on him is something that will benefit us at the end; because, in this
rank, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) will intercede for the entire humanity.
Invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah is something that the whole
humanity should perform. Humanity that had been struggling with injustices
relieved by the religion that he brought. Even those who do not believe in his
prophecy benefitted from the divine light of the truth that he brought. He opened
up the true path not only for Muslims but for the entire humanity. Mawlana Jalaladdin Rumi expresses this fact in his work called Fihi Ma Fih as:
The way to Truth was very frightening, closed, and covered with snow.
First, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) took the burden, rode his horse, and
opened up the path. Whoever can go through this path can do so due to his
guidance and protection. He opened up the path, put signs on every corner and
built columns, and told which ways to go and which ways to avoid.
Muslims debt to the Prophet is even greater, because by bearing unimaginable troubles throughout his life, he saved them from eternal darkness and
unbelievable deviations. Mawlana who wants to awaken our feelings of gratitude addresses the Muslims as follows with his style, full of wisdom:
O todays Muslims! If it werent for Ahmads (pbuh) efforts and zeal and
his help to crush the idols, you would be worshiping idols today as your ancestors did.
For this reason, may our Almighty Lord reward our Prophet as appropriate for his name, and in the most beautiful and good fashion!..
Then, how should we invoke blessings on the Messenger of Allah?
Qab b. Ujra (r.a.) narrated:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had come to our circle and we
asked him:
147. Translators note: Maqam-i Mahmud is the name of the highest rank of intercession
(shafaat) that Allah will give only to the Messenger of Allah.
262
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
O Allahs Apostle! We know how to greet you; but how can we send Salawat (invoking blessings) upon you?
He said:
(
.
Allahumma Salli ala Muhammadin wa ala Ali Muhammadin, kama sallaita ala al-i Ibrahima innaka Hamidun Majid. Allahumma barik ala Muhammadin wa ala al-i Muhammadin, kama barakta ala al-i Ibrahima, innaka
Hamidun Majid.
O Allah! Let Your mercy come upon Muhammad and the family of Muhammad as You let it come upon Abraham and the family of Abraham! Truly
You are Praiseworthy and Glorious. O Allah! Bless Muhammad and the family
of Muhammad as You blessed Abraham and the family of Abraham. Truly You
are Praiseworthy and Glorious. (Bukhari, Daawat, 32; Tirmidhi, Witr, 20/483; Ibn Majah,
Iqamah, 25)
Also, when the honorable name of the Prophet is heard, either one of the
following blessings can be said:
Also we should keep saying short versions of the salawats such as Sallallahu alayhi wa sallam, alaihissalatu wa al-salam, or Alaihissalam.
The word barik stated in salats means abundance. Abundance refers
to increase goodness, kindness, and favor, and to purify from mistakes and
improve.
The Family of Muhammad, i.e. al-i Muhammad refers to the wives, children, and other relatives of the Prophet. Scholars like Imam Malik have said
that the entire followers of the Prophet Muhammad are included in the term
al-i Muhammad. On the other hand, some scholars limited this term with Godconsciousness and said that the term al-i Muhammad includes only Godconscious and pious followers of Prophet Muhammad. As a matter of fact, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Notice that my friends are not the family of my father. My real friends are
Allah the Almighty and righteous believers. (Muslim, Iman, 366; Bukhari, Adab, 14)
According to another narration, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gathered
the tribe of Quraish and said:
My friends among you are the ones who are pious. (Hakim, II, 358/3266)
15. Supplication (dua)
.
:
.
112. Anas bin Malik (r.a.) narrated that the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Supplication (dua) is the essence of being the servant of Allah. (Tirmidhi,
Daawat, 1/3371)
264
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------: .
.
113. Aisha (r.anha) said:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) liked comprehensive supplications and
abandoned the other kinds. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 23/1482)
thereafter he should supplicate Allah for anything he wishes. (Abu Dawud, Witr,
23/1481)
115. Ubai b. Qab (r.a.) narrated that when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
would mention someone and pray for him, he used to start his supplication
first by saying prayers for himself. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 10/3385)
.
:
:
.
116. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
One of you is granted an answer to his supplication provided he does not
say: I prayed but I was not granted an answer. (Bukhari, Daawat, 22; Muslim, Dhikr,
90, 91. Also see Abu Dawud, Witr, 23; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 12; Ibn Majah, Dua, 7)
: .
:
266
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
117. Abu al-Darda (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
He who supplicates for his brother behind his back (in his absence), the
Angel commissioned (for carrying supplication to his Lord) says: Amin, and may
you receive the like. (Muslim, Dhikr, 86. Also see Abu Dawud, Witr, 1534)
Explanations:
In a noble verse Allah the Almighty says:
And your Lord says: Call on Me; I will answer your (Prayer): but
those who are too arrogant to serve Me will surely find themselves in Hell in humiliation,148 and declares that prayer is one of the fundamentals of being
servants of Allah.
Supplication (dua), which means to call, to invoke, to ask, and to appeal
for help, is for a servant of Allah to turn towards Allah with all his consciousness or as a mortal being whose power is limited and finite, to accept his
impotence before the omnipotent Allah and to ask for help. Supplication is to
turn to Allah and humbly and modestly express our own individual needs to
Him. In fact with our supplications, we want to express our respect and trust
in Allah and that we expect everything only from Him rather than asking the
realization of our personal wishes.
If a person prays to Allah with all his heart and takes refuge in Him, then
he expresses his respect to Allah Who is closer to him more than anything.
According to the Quran, offering a supplication is the easiest way to get
closer to Allah. As a matter of fact, Allah is closer to us than our carotid and He
is omniscient and All Hearing Even a single thought that passes our minds
cannot be secret to Allah. In order to show the right path to His servants by
eliminating their doubts on this matter, Allah the Almighty says:
When My servants ask you concerning Me, I am indeed close (to
them): I listen to the prayer of every suppliant when he calls on Me. Let
them also, with a will, listen to My call, and believe in Me that they may walk
in the right way. (Al-Baqarah; 2:186)
148. Al-Mumin; 40:60.
267
268
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah explained the following verse Say (O Muhammad, unto the disbelievers): My Lord would not concern Himself with you
but for your prayer. But now ye have denied (the Truth), therefore there
will be judgment150 saying There is nothing before Allah that is more valuable
than dua.151 The Prophet also encouraged us to pray continuously to Allah by
saying:
Ask from the graciousness of Allah! As a matter of fact, Allah likes when He
is being asked.152
According to a noble hadith that is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.), the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Ask Allah for everything, even if it is only a shoelace, because if Allah does
not make it easy, then even that will not be possible!153 and he integrated the
lives of Muslims with dua.
Abdullah b. Umar (r.a.), who held tight on every advice of the Messenger
of Allah, said:
I pray to Allah in everything even to give ease to the walk of my animals I have witnessed good things that made me happy due to this. (Bukhari,
al-Adab al-mufrad, no: 628)
Aisha (r.anha), the mother of the believers, told that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) loved concise prayers. Allah gave our Prophet (pbuh) the trait of
jawami al-kalim: expressing a lot with a few words.154 For this reason, as his
speeches, he used to say his prayers concise.
Believers should also be concise in their prayers while they express their
needs and wishes to Allah. When a person prays, he should keep in mind that
he is in the presence of Allah and pay attention to his words. Since prayer is a
way to express wishes to Allah, one must ask from Him good things both in
this world and in the Hereafter.
The son of Sad b. Abi Waqqas said:
Al-Furqan; 25: 77.
Tirmidhi, Daawat, 1/3370.
Tirmidhi, Daawat, 115/3571.
Baihaki, Shuab, II, 41/1118.
Bukhari, Jihad, 122; Muslim, Masajid, 5-8.
269
150.
151.
152.
153.
154.
My father heard me say; O Allah, I ask You for Paradise, its blessings, its
pleasure and such-and-such, and such-and-such; I seek refuge in You from
Hell, from its chains, from its collars, and from such-and-such, and from suchand-such. Upon this, he said:
I heard the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) say There will be people who will
exaggerate in supplication. You should not be one of them. If you are granted
Paradise, you will be granted all what is good therein; if you are protected from
Hell, you will be protected from what is evil therein. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 23/1480;
Taharah, 45/96; Ahmad, I, 172, 183, 269)
270
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
One has to start his prayer by praising and thanking Allah and invoking
blessings on the Messenger of Allah. We have already mentioned that praying
is a way of remembering and praising Allah in addition to expressing our wishes and needs. In the prayers of the prophets mentioned in the Quran our Lord
is exalted together with His characteristics. The Prophet (pbuh) indicated that
a prayer that does not start by praising and thanking Allah and invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah is a prayer performed in haste. When praying,
one must distant himself from everything else except Allah. Then, in order to
perfectly acknowledge his impotency, he must praise and thank Allah by turning towards Him. After that he should express his gratitude to the Messenger
of Allah for delivering the message of Islam by invoking blessings on him, and
finally he must continue on with his prayer. This is like greeting the one who
is holding the keys to the door at which you are knocking. On the other hand,
the meaning of invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) is to ask
that he be given the same blessings that were given to Abraham and his family
and be blessed with the same kind of respect that Abraham had in the hearts of
people. In a way, following this process in sayng supplications guarantees that
requests followed by these two acceptable forms of prayers will be granted.
One day, when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was sitting at the prayer
room, a man came in. After the prayer, the man supplicated saying O Allah,
forgive me and show mercy on me! Upon this the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
O performer of the prayer! You made haste. When you pray and then sit,
you should mention the exaltation of your Lord in the beginning and praise Him;
then you should invoke blessings on me; thereafter you should supplicate Allah
for anything you wish.
Then another person performed a prayer. After the prayer, the man mentioned the greatness of Allah and invoked blessings on the Prophet (pbuh). The
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to this man:
O the man who performed a prayer! Make dua (supplication), you will be
answered. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 64/3476; Abu Dawud, Witr, 23/1481)
Another manner of praying is to begin from oneself and then praying
for others starting from the closer people to the further ones. As a matter of
fact, the same order is recommended when spending money or donating it
(sadaqah). This order should not be confused with being selfish. Above all, a
271
When someone sees that his wish did not come true, he may think that
his prayer is not accepted. In reality, the acceptance of a prayer may be in three
ways. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When a Muslim asks Allah for something other than asking for something
forbidden or getting disconnected from his relatives, then Allah accepts his prayer
156. Translators note: Not part of the Quran but words of God reported by the Messenger.
157. Bukhari, Tawhid ,15, 35; Muslim, Tawba, 1; Dhikr 2, 19.
272
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
for sure or prevents a bad thing happening to him as big in value as the person
has asked for.
Upon these words of the Prophet (pbuh), someone present there said:
In this case, we would ask Allah for many things. Then the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
The blessings of Allah are more than what you ask for. (Tirmidhi, Daawat,
115/3573; 9/3381)
Should I say something that will save you from your enemies and make
your bread abundant? Pray to Allah at night and during the day. That is because
prayer is the weapon of a believer. (Haythami, X, 147)
While we pray with absolute submission, we also must pay attention to
certain conditions for our prayers to be accepted. A person who says that his
prayer did not get accepted even if he fulfilled all the requirements is for sure
mistaken. There is either a fault with him or his prayer. Otherwise, his prayer
will be accepted in one of the three ways that we have mentioned before.
For our prayers to be accepted, one of the most important requirements
is being fed by permissible food that is earned by honest work. The Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
A person who travels widely, his hair disheveled and covered with dust lifts
his hands towards the sky (and thus makes the supplication): O Lord, O Lord,
whereas his diet is unlawful, his drink is unlawful, and his nourishment is unlawful. How can then his supplication be accepted? (Muslim, Zakat, 65; Tirmidhi, Tafsir
al-Quran, 3)
273
Ibn Ata said that there are elements, wings, facilitators, and times of a
prayer and continued: If the elements of a prayer are complete the prayer gets
stronger, if the wings fit, it ascends to Heavens, if the time is caught it wins,
and if its facilitators are found, it reaches its goal. The elements of a prayer are
peace in heart, compassion, obedience and awe; its wings are righteousness; its
time is dawn, and its facilitator is invoking blessings on the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) (N. Yeniel-H. Kayapnar, Snen-i Eb Dvd Terceme ve erhi, V, 479)
In several of his sayings, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said that the time
of a prayer is also important. He informed us that the prayers said in certain
times are acceptable such as while the call to prayer (adhan) is being recited,
when facing with the enemy in a war,158 between the call for prayer and call for
actual start of the prayer (al-Iqamah),159 in a short period of time hidden on
Fridays,160 during the last hours of the night, after the obligatory prayers,161 and
while its raining.162
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Extol in bowing (ruku) the Great and Glorious Lord, and while prostrating yourselves be earnest in supplication, for it is fitting that your supplications
should be answered. (Muslim, Salat, 207; Abu Dawud, Salat, 148/876; Nasai, Tatbiq, 8, 62)
The time when the servant of Allah gets closest to Allah is the time of prostration. For this reason, try to pray Allah a lot in prostration! (Muslim, Salat, 215;
Abu Dawud, Salat, 148/875; Nasai, Tatbiq, 78)
274
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
you receive the like, he drew our attention to another point that we should be
careful about in our prayers.
One day, when Umar (r.a.) asked for permission to go to Umrah, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
My beloved brother, do not forget us in your prayers!
With the expression my beloved brother, the Messenger of Allah gained
the love of Umar and became an example to us how to ask for a prayer from
each other.
Upon such a compliment, Umar (r.a.) said:
This compliment of the Messenger is worth the whole world to me. I
would not be happier if they have given the world to me and expressed what it
meant for the Noble Companions to receive the compliment of the Messenger.
(Also see Abu Dawud, Witr, 23/1498; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 109/3562; Ibn Majah, Manasik, 5)
In this hadith, it is told that when Muslims pray for each other in their absence, their prayers get accepted and an angel prays for them in order the same
things that they wish for their brothers to be given to them as well.
When it is said in his absence, the first thing comes to mind is in somewhere far from him, or not in his appearance. The intended meaning of in
his absence in this hadith is that the prayer is not heard by the person who is
prayed for. In other words, he does not know about the prayer that is made for
him. As this can be by being physically away from the person one is praying for,
it can also be by praying next to him from his mind or so quietly that he does
not hear the prayer.
The prayers done for Muslims in their absence are so important since they
indicate real sincerity and are free from hypocrisy or two-facedness. Also, this
indicates the noble-heartedness of the person who prays, and it distances him
from bad traits such as greed and jealousy. He would experience the noble
feeling as mentioned in the hadith of You would not have the perfect faith unless you pray for the same things (that you pray for yourself) for your brother in
Islam.163 Praying for the other Muslims makes believers get used to altruism.
163. Bukhari, Iman, 7; Muslim, Iman, 71-72; Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 59; Nasai, Iman, 19, 33; Ibn
Majah, Muqaddimah, 9.
275
The verses of Quran that command Muslims to pray for each other and
teach how they can do this prove the importance of the subject:
O our Lord! Cover (us) with Your Forgiveness - me, my parents, and
(all) Believers, on the Day that the Reckoning will be established! (Ibrahim;
14:41)
and ask forgiveness for your fault, and for the men and women who
believe. (Muhammad; 47:19)
And those who came after them say: Our Lord! Forgive us, and our
brethren who came before us into the Faith... (Al-Hashr; 59:10)
As humanity gained economic freedom, people started to see themselves
as not in need of anything and in time got further away from praying to their
Lord. This situation is harmful for them both in this world and in the hereafter. Hence, believers should get back to practice praying as soon as possible,
which is the essence of being servants of Allah and try to live a life filled with
prayers.
16. Steadfastness in Supererogatory Deeds
: .
:
276
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
119. Alqama (r.a.) narrated: I asked Aisha, the mother of the believers:
Did the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) use to allocate any day to a certain
kind of worship?
Aisha answered:
No. His deeds were like a light and constant rain. Who among you is able
to do what the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was able to do in worshipping Allah?! (Bukhari, Sawm, 64; Riqaq, 18; Muslim, Musafirin, 217)
.
:
.
120. According to a narration from Abu Said al-Hudri (r.a.) the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
Winter is the spring of the believers. (Ahmad, III, 75)
.
:
277
121. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah said, I will declare war against him who shows hostility to a pious
worshipper of Mine. And the most beloved things with which My slave comes
nearer to Me, is what I have enjoined upon him; and My slave keeps on coming
closer to Me through performing Nawafil (praying or doing supererogatory deeds
besides what is obligatory) till I love him, so I become his sense of hearing with
which he hears, and his sense of sight with which he sees, and his hand with which
he grips, and his leg with which he walks; and if he asks Me, I will give him, and if
he asks My protection (Refuge), I will protect him; (i.e. give him My Refuge) and
I do not hesitate to do anything as I hesitate to take the soul of the believer, 164 for
he hates death, and I hate to disappoint him. (Bukhari, Ar-Riqaq, 38. Also see. Ahmad,
VI, 256; Ibn Hibban, Sahih, II, 58/347)
: .
:
122. Utba b. Abd (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If a person spends every minute of his life from his birth to his death for the
sake of Allahs content by worshipping, obeying Allah and serving in His way, on
the Day of Judgment, he would not see this enough and wish that he would have
done more. (Ahmad, IV, 185; Baihaqi, Shuab, I, 479; Haythami, I, 51; X, 225, 358)
164. Allah is excluded from humanly traits such as hesitating. The expressions used in this
hadith are for us to understand the great care and diligence that Allah shows to His beloved
servants.
278
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
The Prophet informed us that supererogatory acts of worship are very important in getting us closer to Allah and encouraged us to perform them regularly. Few but regular deeds are considered more virtuous than the deeds that
are more but performed irregularly.
Supererogatory acts of worship should be done without forcing it on people and tiring them out. There is no limit or end for being a servant of Allah. If
a person gets further from moderation, he may exhaust himself by too much
worship and may feel bored. However, no matter how many acts of worship we
perform, it would not be enough. As Allah does not get bored from bestowing His blessings upon His servants, His treasure does not get reduced by His
generosity.
Another version of this hadith mentioned in Bukhari explains its meaning
better:
Once the Prophet came home while a woman was sitting with Aisha
(r.anha) and asked:
Who is this lady?
Aisha (r.anha), the mother of believers, said:
She is so and so165 and told him about her (excessive) praying.
Upon this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said disapprovingly:
Do not mention this; Doing (good) deeds within your capacity (without
being overtaxed) is enough. I swear to Allah, unless you are tired of asking, Allah
does not get tired (of giving rewards) but (surely) you will get tired.
At the end of the narration, it is said:
The best kind of good deeds that the Messenger of Allah liked the most
were the deeds of the Companions which are done regularly. (Bukhari, Iman, 32;
Tahajjud, 18; Muslim, Musafirin, 221)
279
ship when introducing him/her. Introducing him/her in such a way may lead
to pride and hypocrisy. Also, encouraging people to compete in their supererogatory acts of worship may lead some unintended negative consequences.
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used the term within your
capacity when defining their limits.
It is true that the power and the capacity of people are limited. Before this
power is gone, it should be spent in the best way. Our Lord has pointed out that
we must not take the responsibility of things that we cannot do by teaching
us how to pray for not laying upon ourselves a burden greater than we have
strength to bear,166 and He referred to us as justly balanced nation.167 Allahs
Messenger (pbuh) did not perform some of the deeds and worships regularly
thinking that his followers would not be able to perform them regularly and he
encouraged us to do easier deeds which we can perform regularly. As a matter of fact, when Companion Abdullah b. Amr b. As (r.a.) wanted to perform
excessive supererogatory acts of worship in his youth, the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) did not give him permission to do that.
Abdullah (r.a.) reported this exemplary story as:
Allahs Apostle was informed that I had taken an oath to fast daily and to
pray (every night) all the night throughout my life.
Upon that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) came to me and asked whether
it was correct:
Are you the one who said that?
I replied:
Let my parents be sacrificed for you! I said so.
He said:
You cannot do that. Fast (for some days) and give up fasting (for some
days); pray and sleep, for your eyes have a right on you, and your body and your
family (i.e. wife) has a right on you. Your children have a right on you as well.
Fast three days a month as the reward of good deeds is multiplied ten times and
that will be equal to one year of fasting.
166. Al-Baqara; 2:286.
167. Al-Baqara; 2:143.
280
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
I replied:
I can do better than that.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Fast one day and give up fasting for a day!
I replied:
I can do better than that and the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Fast one day and give up fasting for a day and that is the fasting of Prophet
David and that is the best fasting. The best prayer on the sight of Allah is the
prayer of Prophet David. He used to sleep half of the night and wake up to pray
one third of the night and then again go to sleep for the one sixth of the night. He
used to fast one day and give up fasting for a day and he used not to flee on meeting the enemy.
I replied:
I can do better than this. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There is no better fasting than that. He then said:
Whoever fasts daily throughout his life is just as the one who does not fast
at all and he repeated this three times.
I realized that it would have been better for me if I had accepted the permission of the Prophet (i.e. to fast only three days a month).
Then the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked me:
How do you recite the whole Quran?
I replied:
I recite it every night.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Recite the whole Quran once a month!
I replied:
O the Messenger of Allah! I could do more than this.
The Prophet said:
281
People should take the responsibility of the things within their capacity
and shouldnt skip performing the things that they have started for the sake
of Allah unless there is a valid excuse. Even if one cannot perform this kind
of worship on time, he should perform it at another time. The following story
describes an easier way on this subject:
One night, Umar (r.a.) couldnt recite the Noble Quran. The next day, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to him:
O the son of Hattab, Allah has revealed a verse about you and recited:
282
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
And it is He Who made the Night and the Day to follow each other: for
such as have the will to celebrate His praises or to show their gratitude.168
Then he said:
Perform the deeds that you could not perform at night during the day, and
perform the deeds that you could not do during the day at night. (Razi, XXIV, 93,
[In the interpretation of Al-Furqan; 25:62)
283
Performing few but regular good deeds may seem easy and not a big deal
at first, however when it is performed patiently, it builds up an important richness in time. This is the abundance of regularity.
In the hadith, it is expressed that the Messenger of Allah did not save
any one of his days for a special worship. However, one shouldnt infer from
this sentence that he never appointed some of his worships to certain times.
There are strong reports that the Messenger of Allah fasted on certain days. We
know from various reports that he fasted on Mondays and Thursdays, three
days in every month, and on the day of Ashura in the month of Muharram,
and increased his obedience and worships on holy days and nights. The hadith
expresses that the Messenger of Allah did not limit his deeds to these special
days but rather performed good deeds on other days as much as he could, and
he was tolerant on this subject.
Performing acts of worship only for a couple of hours during the holy days
and nights and not practicing any of them on other days would not be consistent with the spirit of the hadith. Everyone knows the fact that the deeds that
are not performed on a regular basis cannot be fruitful and productive.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh), sent to humanity to save it from the darkness, has enlightened the humanity in the extent that has never seen before and
brought it back to life. He sometimes used the symbols of revival and mercy
such as rain and spring in his sayings that brought life to humanity, which
will last until the Day of Judgment. In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) compared winter with spring for Muslims. Spring is a cheerful,
blessed and an anticipated season since it brings life and blessings to earth. It
gives the good news that the summer is approaching in which farmers harvest
their crops. In the same manner, by comparing winter with the spring of a
believer, the hadith points out that days and nights of winter can be utilized by
performing good deeds and can be conducive towards the life of a believer in
order to be spiritually alive and fruitful. During this time period where most of
the animals go on hibernation and most of our activities are limited, believers
spiritual energy will surely make him experience a new spring. As a matter of
fact, one of the reports of Baihaqi reads as follows:
Winter is the spring of a believer. Its days get shorter so he fasts during
them; its nights are longer so he revives them with acts of worship. (Baihaqi, Shuab,
III, 416)
284
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
285
will realize how little they have worshipped in this world and wish that they
had done more. Even if a believer spent his whole long life with worship, what
he had done would look too little then. As Muhammad b. Abi Umayra said:
theyll wish to return to earth to increase their deeds and rewards.
(Ahmad, IV, 185; Haythami, I, 51; X, 225)
Then, before we die, while the opportunity is in our hands, lets increase
our supererogatory deeds so that our regrets will be less in the Hereafter. In
this respect, one shouldnt belittle even the smallest effort. As Abu Huraira said,
even a two cycle prayer performed with the recitation of short chapters from
the Quran will be more valuable in the grave and in the hereafter than the
worlds.
17. Worshiping during the period of widespread turmoil
.
:
123. Maqil b. Yasar narrated that Allahs Apostle (pbuh) said:
Worshiping during the period of widespread turmoil is like emigration towards me. (Muslim, Fitan, 130. Also see. Tirmidhi, Fitan, 31/2201; Ibn Majah, Fitan, 14)
:
286
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
124. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Woe to the situation of Arab (humanity) due to widespread turmoil that
is coming soon! A person reaches the morning as a believer but becomes nonbeliever in the evening. People will change their religions in exchange for a little bit
of worldly benefit. Those who stick to their religion in such a difficult time will be
like holding a fire ball with bare hands. (Ahmad, II, 390; Also see Muslim, Iman, 186;
Tirmidhi, Fitan, 30/2196)
Explanations:
Fasad means turmoil, chaos, disorder and going astray. It refers to all kinds
of rebellious behavior starting with disbelief. We can also describe fasad as the
act of separating humans from the Quran and the Sunnah. The most dangerous kind of fasad is to appear like someone in favor of the religion but to be
someone spreading views causing confusion in the minds about the religion.
Those who rebel against Allah and who encourage others to do so as well
are the ones who cause disorder in this world. As a matter of fact, the improvement of the heavens and the earth can be achieved through obedience to Allah.
Those people who listen to their carnal soul and Satan cause corruption
in this world under the influence of their bad traits such as greed, desires, and
naughtiness. Allah the Almighty says:
and do no evil or mischief on the (face of the) earth. (Al-Baqarah;
2:60)
That is because the trouble that they cause for Muslims is huge. For this
reason Allah the Exalted taught us to pray as Prophet Lot (pbuh) did:
Those who cause mischief on earth do not like religion and religious people. Therefore, it becomes very difficult to practice the religion of Allah in a
society in disorder caused by them. In such an environment, as acts of worship,
belief is also wanted to be under control. People who are placed under such
pressure retire into themselves in time and be afraid of worshipping.
On the other hand, since the religious and moral values of people get
weak, everyone starts to follow values of this world. Some people try to benefit
from chaos and obtain some temporary gains from the situation. The number
of those who are interested in spirituality decreases. In conclusion, Muslims
find themselves in a lonely situation as they were in the first days of Islam.
Trying to practice the religion of Allah and worship Him under such difficult circumstances becomes as valuable as the extent of their difficulty. As a
matter of fact, in our first hadith, we are told that worshipping during the periods of widespread turmoil is like emigration towards the Messenger of Allah,
in other words, it is like a travel towards his world.
As it is known, until the conquest of Mecca, emigration (hijrah) was a very
virtuous and desirable act. Those who emigrated at that time are praised and
showed as an example in various places of the Noble Quran. Worshiping during the periods of widespread turmoil is a must and praiseworthy deed just like
emigration. Distancing oneself from the turmoil and experiencing the climate
of peace through worshipping, evaluating the situation from the point of Islam
and acting accordingly is like a moral and spiritual emigration to blessed city
of Medina, the city of the Messenger of Allah. As it was possible to save oneself
from the darkness of infidelity by immigrating to Medina, it is possible to save
oneself from the darkness of mischief by practicing Islam and immigrating to
Sunnah.
As a matter of fact, the reason for emigration was to get away from the
evil and practice the commands of Allah. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
288
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
A real Muhajir (emigrant) is the one who gives up (abandons) all what Allah has forbidden. (Bukhari, Iman, 4; Riqaq, 26)
Muslims should avoid sins in periods of mischief and seek refuge in Allah from their evil environments, and should gain strength against chaos and
disorder by practicing the acts of worship commanded by Allah. Worshipping
Allah in good days but showing weakness in this respect and inclining to objectionable acts in difficult times is not a desirable approach for the servants of
Allah. The real servanthood is to practice the commands of Allah during the
hard times as well. Therefore, a conscious believer should save his eternal life
by protecting his religion and obeying the commands of Allah in periods of
mischief as well.
In our second hadith, Muslims are warned about the future mischiefs and
informed that practicing the religion at those times will be as difficult as holding a fire ball in their bare hands. As a matter of fact, in such times people may
change their religions in return for a small worldly benefit and become a nonbeliever in the evening while they were believers in the morning. And during
such times everything will become measured by its worldly benefits. No more
respect is paid to faith. Believers will feel themselves not wanted in the society
since people who cause mischiefs will worry that believers will cause trouble
to their life styles. It will be very difficult for believers to live in such a society
where no one knows who is who. There is no doubt that its rewards will be in
the extent of its difficulty.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
In the period when my followers are subjected to mischief, those who practice my sunnah are given the rewards of being a martyr. (Haythami, I, 172; Abu
Nuaym, Hilya, VIII, 200; Suyuti, al-Jami, no: 9171)
In the reports of Baihaqi, this hadith is recorded as the rewards of a hundred martyrs. (Baihaqi, al-Zuhd al-kabir, s. 151/209)
As a matter of fact, it is very difficult to find people who practice the Sunnah in periods of fasad. On the contrary, there will be many people who belittle
the Sunnah and try to destroy it during such periods of time. Those who want
to practice Islam will be persecuted and face with troubles. Since such believers
practice the Sunnah no matter what kind of persecutions they face with, they
will be elevated to the levels of martyrs.
289
In another hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave the good news to
those believers who worship in the period of fasad as:
Islam began as something strange, and it shall return to being strange as it
were, so give glad tidings to the strangers! They are the ones who correct my sunnah which has been corrupted by the people after me. (Tirmidhi, Iman, 13/2630. Also
see. Muslim, Iman, 232-233; Ahmad, I, 184; IV, 73)
The meaning of correction here is tha they try to practice the sunnah of
our Prophet and teach others as much as they can at a time when the number
of Muslims decreases and they are seen as stranger by others. As a matter of
fact, in Baihaqis narration, when he was asked:
Who are those strangers, O Messenger of Allah? he replied:
Those who practice my sunnah and teach it to others. (Baihaqi, al-Zuhd alKabir, p. 150/207)
Therefore, the strangers who were praised by the Prophet (pbuh) are the
ones who protect their religion by sticking to the commands of Islam in periods of mischief and try to direct others to the straight path as well. (See. Ahmad,
I, 184; IV, 73)
In periods of turmoil, great rewards are given even to small deeds. Even
if they are few in numbers, good deeds performed in a corrupt society and
despite the obstacles of the evil and dark-spirited people of the society are very
valuable. Thus, ultimate salvation for Muslims becomes easier during such periods of time.
For this reason, one should serve even more in the way of Islam in difficult
times for believers. As a matter of fact, it is very profitable to utilize such pe290
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
riods od time when Allah the Almighty gives many rewards to even few good
deeds.
With that being said, one should stay away from the evil things that take
place in such times of mischief. In such a period of time, a person who sits is
better than who stands up, who stands up is better than who walks, and who
walks is better than who runs.170 In other words, one must prefer to be inactive,
show effort only on the issues that are possible to be corrected but stay away
from the evil in other matters and spend time with worship.
That is because people then would abandon the right path all together.
They would not listen to those who warn and call them to the right path. When
Muslims who fight for the ultimate wisdom during such times think that they
cannot influence anyone, they should at least try to protect themselves and
their families from the mischief and disorder.
Therefore, a Muslim should fight against the evil in the society as much as
he can and try to correct them. That is because this is the only way to practice
all the commands of Allah. However, if one sees that the evil in the society is
growing and will eventually influence him and his family, then he should retire
from active life and practice the religion with his family. As a matter of fact,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised believers to go aside and worship Allah
and protect their religion from the evil things. (See Bukhari, Iman, 12; Jihad, 2; Bad
al-khalk, 15; Riqaq, 34; Muslim, Imara, 122-123)
291
Father, are you busy with your camels and your sheep while people are
contending with each another to get the political power? Sad (r.a.) struck his
chest and said:
Be quiet! I heard Allahs Messenger (pbuh) as saying:
Allah loves the servant who is God-conscious and is free from want and is
hidden (from the view of people). (Muslim, Zuhd, 11)
Because of this and other similar sayings of the Prophet, Sad b. Abi
Waqqas (r.a.) retired from the active life completely and stayed away from the
complicated things when Uthman (r.a.) was martyred and disorder emerged
in the society.
18. Itikaf
: .
.
125. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated:
The Prophet used to perform Itikaf for ten days every year in the month
of Ramadan, and when it was the year of his death, he stayed in Itikaf for
twenty days. (Bukhari, Itikaf, 17. Also see Abu Dawud, Sawm, 78; Ibn Majah,
Siyam, 58)
: .
292
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
The term itikaf literally means to imprison, to detain, to settle down in a
place and to put down roots there, and to prevent oneself from doing regular
and mundane activities. In technical terms, it means to retreat in a mosque for
a certain period time to improve spiritually and to get closer to Allah through
acts of worship. Those who are in itikaf are called mutakif or akif.
Keeping oneself away from all kinds of the human acts and desires, even
if they are permissible, and keeping oneself busy with acts of worship is one
of the most important means of spiritual development. For this reason, Itikaf
used as an important acts of worship performed with some variations by the
previous prophets as well. As a matter of fact, the following verse of the Quran
refers to this matter:
We covenanted with Abraham and Ismail, that they should sanctify My House for those who compass it round, or use it as a retreat, or bow,
or prostrate themselves (therein in prayer). (Al-Baqarah; 2:125)
Our beloved Prophet (pbuh) used to retreat in the Cave of Hira even before he had chosen as a prophet and keep himself busy with meditation. When
it got closer to the times of his prophethood, he increased his meditations. On
the first days of his prophethood, Allah commanded him to perform night
prayers (tahajjud.) Since he was going to be busy with delivering his message
of calling people to the right path during the day, he needed to gain spiritual
power by being with his Lord during the quiet early hours of dawn. When
the message of Islam reached to a certain point and fasting was declared to be
obligatory in Medina, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) increased his acts of worship and good deeds during the month of Ramadan which is the most virtuous
of all months and is like the early hours of dawn compared to the rest of the
day. He even started to spend the second ten days of Ramadan only with acts
of worshipping. When the possibility of the Night of Qadr being in the last
ten nights of the month Ramadan increased, the Messenger of Allah started to
perform his itikaf on these days. (Bukhari, Itikaf, 1)
He used to perform itikaf in a small in a Turkish tent with a mat hanging
at its door. (Muslim, Siyam, 215; Ibn Majah, Siyam, 62)
Aisha (r.anha) said:
293
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to practice itikaf in the last ten days
of Ramadan. I used to pitch a tent for him, and after offering the dawn prayer
he used to enter the tent for itikaf.
Once, some of the wives of the Prophet pitched tents for themselves in the
mosque. When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saw the tents, he asked:
What are those?
When he was told of the whole situation, he said:
Do you think that they intended to do righteousness by doing this? and
he therefore abandoned the itikaf in that month and practiced itikaf for the
first ten days in the month of Shawwal. (Bukhari, Itikaf, 6, 7, 14; Muslim, Itikaf, 6; Abu
Dawud, Sawm, 77; Tirmidhi, Siyam, 71)
Based on this hadith, it is seen more appropriate for women to retire for
itikaf in a part of their house instead of going to mosques.
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) intended for itikaf, his bed was
placed in Masjid al-Nabawi next to the Column of Penitence towards the direction of Mecca. The Prophet (pbuh) used to lean on that column. (Ibn Majah,
Siyam, 61; Tabarani, Kabir, XII, 385/13424; Baihaqi, Kubra, V, 247)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said about the virtue of those who perform itikaf:
He stays away from the sinful acts and evils. Divine rewards are given to
him as he has performed all kinds of good deeds. (Ibn Majah, Siyam, 67)
In another noble hadith:
Whoever performs itikaf for ten days in Ramadan, he is like he has performed two major pilgrimages and two lesser pilgrimages to Mecca as well. (Tabarani, Kabir, III, 128/2888; Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 425)
A believer who goes to a mosque and starts itikaf is like a person who is
in prayer at all times. In this state, he is like a person who takes refuge into the
protection of a strong castle. Ata, one of the prominent fgures of Islam, said:
The similitude of a person who in itikaf is a person who knocks the door
of an important person and says I will not leave without getting what I need.
That is because he is the one who entered one of the houses of Allah and says
I will not leave before You forgive me.
As expressed in our second hadith, just like the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
himself concentrated on worshipping in the last ten days and nights of Noble
Ramadan, he encouraged his family to do so as well, and they together reduced
their sleep times. The mothers of the believers who used to practice itikaf continued to perform it even after the death of the Prophet. (Bukhari, Itikaf, 1; Muslim,
Itikaf, 5. Also see Abu Dawud, Sawm, 77)
Those who are in itikaf spend their time by performing prayers as much
as they can, by reciting the Noble Quran, pledging, praying and supplicating,
reciting the Kalimah Al-Tawheed and Taqbir, and sending invovations for the
Messenger of Allah, thinking about the existence of Allah, His Oneness and
His signs of power in this universe, reading books about the life of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and other Islamic books. At this time, he stays away from
all kinds of unnecessary things.
The Hanafi scholars examine itikaf under three categories and state that
each of them has different rulings. According to this:
1. Performing itikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan is considered Sunnah al-Muakkadah (regular tradition of the Prophet) by comparing to similar
cases.
295
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------
One day, when Abdullah b. Abbas (r.a.) was in itikaf in the masjid of the
Messenger Allah, someone approached him and sat after saluting him.
Ibn Abbas (r.a.) said:
My friend, I see you worried and sad and their conversation continued
as:
Yes, O the son of the Prophets uncle! I borrowed some money from so
and so, but I swear to the owner of this tomb (the Messenger of Allah), I cannot
repay my debt.
Should I talk to him for you?
If you dont mind.
Ibn Abbas (r.a.) put his shoes on and go out of the mosque.
The man called:
Did you forget that you were in itikaf, why did you go out of the
masjid?
Ibn Abbas (r.a.) said:
No, I didnt. I have heard from the noble person in this tomb who recently left us, (with tears in his eyes while speaking):
Whoever tries to help his brother in Islam and acts on it, this is better for
him than staying in itikaf for ten years. As a matter of fact, if a person stays in
itikaf for three days, Allah creates three trenches between that person and the
Hell, and the distance within each trench is as much as the distance between the
east and west.171 (Baihaqi, Shuab, III, 424-425. Also see Haythami, VIII, 192)
171. For more details about itikaf see. Mehmed ener, tikf Diyanet slm Ansiklopedisi,
XXIII, 457-459.
297
.
:
127. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Allah has a sense of ghira (jealousy), and Allahs sense of ghira is provoked
when a believer does something which Allah has prohibited. (Bukhari, Nikah, 107;
Muslim, Tawbah, 36. Also see Tirmidhi, Rada, 14/1168; Ahmad, II, 519, 536, 539)
: .
:
.
128. Abdullah bin Masud reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
No being has more sense of ghaira (jealousy) than Allah. Therefore, He
prohibits shameful sins whether committed openly or secretly (Muslim, Tawbah,
33, 32-35. Also see Bukhari, Tafsir, 6/7; Tawhid, 15)
298
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
:
.
.
129. Thawban reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
A person can be destitute of his livelihood due to a sin that he committed.
Only prayer can change destiny. Only good deeds, manners, and being virtues can
extend life time. (Ahmad, V, 277, 280, 282; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 10; Fitan, 22; Hakim,
I, 670/1814)
Explanations:
Sinful acts include beliefs, words, acts, and behaviors that are against the
divine commands and the religion. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) defined sin
in his noble hadith as:
(Sin) is the thing that scratches your heart and the thing that you do not
want others to know. (Muslim, Birr, 14, 15. Also see Tirmidhi, Zuhd, 52)
Sin is the thing that you fret about and the thing that questions and bothers you even others give permission (religious ruling) for you to do it. (Ahmad, IV,
227-228; Darimi, Buyu, 2)
Humans, who have been sent to this world to be tested, are able to perform
both good and bad deeds. The inclination in human character towards sinful
acts is due to their desires originating from their carnal self. That is because the
carnal soul is the enemy inside of us which is certainly prone to evil172 and
makes dark suggestions to us by whispering all the time in order to lead us to
commit sins.173
Another motivation that leads humans to sinful acts is the desire for an everlasting life in this world and forgetting about the life in the hereafter.174 Those
172. Yusuf; 12:53.
173. Qaf; 50:16; Al-Najm; 53:23.
174. Al-Baqara; 2:95-96.
299
who follow these poisonous desires act without thinking about the hereafter
and fall into a trap by committing a sin in order to satisfy their desires.
Also, there are other factors that drag man into committing sins such as
having been created weak,175 and being fond of wealth, possession, and children.176
There are external causes of sinful acts as well. The appeal of this world,177
ubiquity of bad examples,178 and the pledge of Satan to deviate men by sitting
on the True Path 179 are some of the examples.
In order to fight with all of these distracting temptations, one must be busy
with purifying the human soul and heart. Therefore, one must learn to follow
a life without being unwary of Allah and remembering Him at all times. As a
matter of fact, all of such sinful acts start to step in when men forget Allah.
Quitting sinful acts and staying away from them come before performing the commands of Allah. First, the heart should be purified from all kinds
of evil, and then it should be filled with the divine light by performing the
obligatory acts. That is because sinful and forbidden acts are like poisons which
destroy spirituality. However, in appearance they seem like sweet honey to the
people. Those who believe them waste their spiritual lives in the end.
One must not forget that every blessing necessitates some effort. Believers
who wish to be in Paradise and to see Gods Face should bear some difficulties
in order not to be trapped by the sins that seem sweet to human soul. This situation is one of the secrets of the divine test.
Since Allah loves His servants a lot, He always wants the best for them and
treats them with His mercy. Therefore, Allah does not want His servants to fail
in this test by committing sins and He never likes this. As expressed in our
first hadith, Allah has a sense of ghira (jealousy) so He doesnt like when His
servants commit sins. Omnipotent Allah never wishes His servants to deviate
from the true path and the path to Paradise by committing sins due to being
carried away by the carnal soul and Satan. He wishes that His servants improve
their spirituality by coming towards Him and enter into Paradise. He advises
175.
176.
177.
178.
179.
300
An-Nisa; 4:28.
Al-Baqara; 2:155; Al-i Imran; 3:14.
Al-i Imran; 3:14, 185; Yunus; 10:23; Ar-Rad; 13:26.
Anam; 6:116; Al-Furqan; 25:27-29.
Al-Araf; 7:14-18; Al-Hijr; 15:36-42.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
His servants not to forget His Exalted Being and gain the consciousness of being close to Him at all times, because this is the approach which benefits the
human beings.
When it is used in respect to Allah, the word ghira in the hadith, which
we translated from Arabic as jealousy, refers to His discontentedness with
His servants performances of prohibited and illegitimate acts, their utterances of illegal words, and going astray from the straight path. Rather He wants
them to be on the true path and be happy due to His mercy for them. Otherwise, it is not imaginable to think of jealousy for Allah as it reveals itself in
some people as abrupt and abnormal reactions.
Allah expresses that He does not want His servants to be in a difficult
position as:
If you reject (Allah), Truly Allah has no need of you; but He likes not
ingratitude from His servants (Az-Zumar; 39:7)
As a matter of fact the term jealousy is generally used for a feeling between wife and husband whereby they guard each other from others due to
their feelings of love and protection towards each other and sometimes it is
expressed by passion and reproach. As in this example, Allah wants to protect
His servants and does not want them to get further away from Him. For this
reason, He prohibits committing sins and punishes those who commit sins in
order to keep them away from sinful acts and purify them. In such situations,
it is said that this action provokes the ghira of Allah.
Our Almighty Lord does not like His servants to decline spiritually and be
miserable in the hereafter. Sins transform spiritual feelings into bestial feelings
and prevent souls to advance towards perfection and drag it to the lowest level
(asfal al-safilin). Sins eventually darken the heart and cause it lose its purity.
This means the exhaustion of blessed human beings who is created in the best
form. Therefore, in order to protect the purity of the heart, one must be extremely careful to avoid sins and negative inspirations.
Allah made everything clear and easy to protect His servants from sins. The
following noble hadith clearly presents how merciful Allah the Almighty is:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah the Almighty commands to His angels:
301
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Are you surprised with this sense of jealousy and sense of honor of Sad? I
have even more sense of jealousy than Sad. Allah has even more sense of jealousy
than me. (Bukhari, Nikah, 36, 107)
Of course, the discontent of Allah and His Messenger when one of Allahs
commands is violated is much more than the feeling of jealousy between the
couples. Despite this, Allah had prohibited to make rushed decisions and to
act impulsively. He restricted the approach how to react against sins with firm
and fundamental principles. Therefore, it is not right for someone to give judgments on ones own and punish sinners accordingly. One must acknowledge
that there are many virtues in Allahs commands and should obey them.
The term fawahish mentioned in our second hadith means all kinds of
shameful deeds whether committed in actions or in words. All of the shameful
deeds that are prohibited by Allah are included in this term.
The statement He prohibits shameful sins whether committed openly or
secretly in this hadith refers to the following Quranic verse:
Say: Come, I will rehearse what Allah has (really) prohibited you
from: Join not anything as equal with Him; be good to your parents; kill
not your children on a plea of want; We provide sustenance for you and for
them; come not nigh to shameful deeds whether open or secret; take not
life, which Allah has made sacred, except by way of justice and law: thus
does He command you, that you may learn wisdom. (Al-Anam; 6:151)
Our Almighty Lord says do not come near to shameful deeds whether
open or secret instead of do not perform shameful deeds whether open or
secret. In other words, let alone performing them, He does not even want us
come near them. This is one of the wise remarks that show how much Allah is
jealous of His servants from shameful deeds.
Allah permitted in the Quran benefiting from the permissible, nice, and
clean blessings and warned those who want to prohibit them. Then, He said the
following to explain that He did not prohibit beneficial things to humans but
only prohibited things that are harmful to them:
Say: the things that my Lord has indeed forbidden are: shameful
deeds, whether open or secret; sins and trespasses against truth or reason;
assigning of partners to Allah, for which He has given no authority; and
saying things about Allah of which you have no knowledge. (Al-Araf; 7:33)
303
Even though Allah the Almighty has a sense of strong jealousy towards
His servants from sins, He does not punish them immediately. He gives them
time to repent, ask for forgiveness and to turn back to the right path. To be
deceived by this and be caught up in sins would be utmost foolishness and
causes misery.
It is expressed in another verse:
If Allah were to punish men according to what they deserve, He would
not leave on the back of the (earth) a single living creature: but He gives
them respite for a stated term: when their term expires, verily Allah has in
His sight all His Servants. (Al-Fatir; 35:45)
However, in order sinners to wake up from being negligent or to ease their
punishment in the Hereafter, Allah may inflict various troubles upon them.180
These may not be the same for everyone, and they may appear as a variety of
warnings. For example, one of them is to decrease in ones daily bread.
In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that one
may be deprived of some livelihood due to his sins.181 Even the livelihood predestined for him reaches him, it may somehow get off his hands, and he cannot benefit from it due to his sins. As a matter of fact, when the owners of the
garden mentioned in the Chapter the Qalam wanted to secretly harvest their
crops to avoid giving some to the poor, their garden faced with a disaster and
turned into pitch black. Almighty Allah explains this event in detail182 for us to
learn our lesson and concludes the story as:
180. Ibn Majah, Fitan, 22; Hakim, IV, 583/8623.
181. At the end of the third hadith, we are informed that good deeds may extend ones lifetime.
The scholars of hadith mention having good relations with the relatives at the top of the list.
These scholars also argue that the meaning of extending ones lifetime is to make it fruitful
and blessed with good deeds. Those who perform good deeds benefit from their lifetime a lot
even if it is short. For sure, this blessed and spiritual benefaction is very important in terms
of eternal happiness. On the other hand, there are those who also believe that the lifetime
written in our destiny and known by the angel can actually change. That is because Allah
may delete the things that He wishes from The Protected Book (Lawh Mahfuz) and keeps
the things that He does not want to change as they are. (Al-Rad; 13:38) Prayers effect of
changing destiny is also understood in the same manner. Praying prevents bad happenings
to take place and calls attention to divine mercy. This is also a part of destiny (See. Haydar
Hatipolu, Snen-i Ibn Majah Tercemesi ve erhi, I, 159-160)
182. Al-Qalam; 68:17-33.
304
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Such is the punishment (in this life); but greater is the punishment in
the Hereafter, if only they knew! (Al-Qalam; 68:33)
Ali (r.a.) told a story as an example to an immediate warning of a sin:
During the time of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), a man walking in the
streets of Medina looked at a woman who was walking as well. Satan cast upon
them some doubts, and they thought that they have looked at each other with
affection. While they were looking each other like this, a wall appeared in front
of the man. The man hit his nose to the wall, and his nose started to bleed. The
man realized that he did something wrong and said:
I swear to Allah I wont treat my nose and wipe off this bleeding before I
go and tell what happened to the Messenger of Allah.
Then he told the Prophet (pbuh) what happened.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
This is the punishment of the sin that you have committed.
Upon this incident, Almighty Allah revealed the following noble verse:
Say to the believing men that they should lower their gaze and guard
their modesty: that will make for greater purity for them: And Allah is well
acquainted with all that they do. (Al-Nur; 24:30) (Alusi, XVIII, 138)
Therefore, it is necessary to pay extra attention to stay away from shameful deeds and take refuge in Allah. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) became an
example to his followers in this respect by praying as:
O My Lord! I ask to perform good deeds that make me gain your mercy and
forgiveness, and I ask to be safe from all evil deeds, to perform all good deeds and
Your commands, to reach Paradise and be safe from the Hell with Your help!
(Hakim, I, 706/1925. Also see Tirmidhi, Witr, 17/479; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 189)
305
2. Major Sins
a. Ascribing Partners to Allah and Disobedience to Parents
.
:
: - -
:
. :
103. Abu Bakr (r.a.) narrated that the Prophet (pbuh) asked three times:
Shall I inform you of the biggest of the great sins?
His Companions said:
Yes, O the Messenger of Allah!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
To ascribe partners in worship with Allah, to be undutiful to ones parents.
Then he sat up from where he had been reclining and added:
And listen well as I warn you against giving forged statement and a false
witness; I warn you against giving a forged statement and a false witness.
The Prophet kept on saying that warning till we thought that he would
not stop (and wished that he would do so that he wouldnt be sorry any more).
(Bukhari, Shahadah, 10; Al-Adab, 6; Istizan, 35; Istitabe, 1; Muslim, Iman, 143. Also see Tirmidhi, Shahadah, 3; Birr, 4; Tafsir, 4/5)
306
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
131. Shaddad b. Aws narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I am most worried about my followers that they may ascribe partners to Allah. With these words, I do not mean worshipping to the moon, sun, or idols. The
thing that worries me is their deeds which are performed for someone other than
Allah and their hidden desires (their feeling of showing-off). (Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 21)
307
.
:
133. Abdullah b. Amr narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The contentedness of Allah can be gained by pleasing the parents. The anger
of Allah can be atracted by angering the parents. (Tirmidhi, Birr, 3/1899; Hakim, IV,
168/7249)
.
:
:
.
134. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Let him be humbled (on his nose), let him be humbled (on his nose)! It
was asked:
O the Messenger of Allah! Who is he?
The Prophet (pbuh) answered:
He who finds his parents in old age, either one or both of them, and does not
enter Paradise. (Muslim, Birr, 9, 10)
308
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
In fact, one must stay away all kinds of shameful deeds that Allah has
forbidden, no matter how great or little they are. That is because why and for
whom the act has been done is more important than the act itself. Therefore,
even the smallest mistake done to Allah without an excuse is a shame for a
believer. However, considering mistakes that can easily be fallen into due to
human nature can be divided into two sub-categories as the minor ones and
the major ones according to their consequences.
The major sins are the ones cursed and severely threatened mistakes in the
Quran and the sayings of the Prophet. They are also the ones whose performers
are called sinners and deserve to be punished. Such sins necessitate torments in
the tombs and in the hereafter. Also, it is clear that the deeds cursed by Allah,
referred to as away from His mercy, and end with misery are the ones that are
considered the forbidden (haram) deeds or one of the major sins.
Major sins contain very serious dangers for humans. As a matter of fact,
the pervasiveness of insurgency and major sins and inability to prevent them
may cause total destruction of humanity.
Those who do not avoid major sins provoke Allahs anger and receive punishment even for their minor sins and would not benefit from their good deeds
a lot. As a matter of fact, in previous subjects, we have seen that some of the
good deeds and acts of worship can be expiation for our minor sins. However
this is conditioned on avoiding major sins.183
In other words, only if the servant avoids major sins then their good deeds
can be expiation for the minor sins. Allah says:
If you (but) eschew the most heinous of the things which you are forbidden to do, We shall expel out of you all the evil in you, and admit you to
a gate of great honor. (Al-Nisa; 4:31. Also see Al-Najm; 53:32)
In our first hadith, due to the importance of the subject, the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) used an attention grabbing style by first asking Shall I inform
you of the biggest of the great sins? before he talked about them. Then he
listed ascribing partners to Allah, disobeying the parents, and lying.
183. For example see Bukhari, Hajj, 4; Muhsar, 9, 10; Muslim, Taharah, 14, 16; Hajj, 438; Tirmidhi,
Mawaqit, 46; Hajj, 2; Nasai, Hajj, 4; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 79; Manasik, 3.
309
The biggest of the major sins is not to acknowledge the existence of Allah
and to ascribe partners to Him in His being, attributes, and deeds. This is called
akbar al-kabair. Allah the Almighty explained ascribing partners to Him as
the highest wrong-doing184 and devise a sin most heinous indeed.185 That
is because ascribing partners to Allah is the most wrongful approach in the
face of the truth. Those who ascribe partners to Allah would be doing wrong to
themselves and do injustice by not giving Allah His due. The result of this is to
be strayed far, far away (from the true path).186
Ascribing partners to Allah who created man and the whole universe is
a very disrespectful and misbehaved way of acting. As a matter of fact, when
Abdullah b. Masud asked the following question to the Prophet (pbuh):
Which offense is the most grievous in the eye of Allah? the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
That you associate a partner with Allah (despite the fact) that He created
you. (Muslim, Iman, 141)
If attention is paid, it can be seen that the same thing applies to when one
disobeys to his parents. As a matter of fact, Allah appointed them as a means
for a person to come to this world and gain existence. Parents gladly do all
kinds of sacrifices to raise their children until they grow up and take care of
themselves. Therefore, we must give the right due to Allah and to our parents
to whom we owe our existence.
Ascribing partners to Allah does not harm Allah in any way. All harm
of ascribing partners to Allah is for people. Since Almighty Allah has a sense
of jealousy towards His servants from sins and mistakes, He strictly prohibits
ascribing partners to Him.
Almighty Allah explained how bad ascribing partners to Allah is and how
harmful it is to humans as:
Being true in faith to Allah, and never assigning partners to Him: if
anyone assigns partners to Allah, is as if he had fallen from heaven and been
snatched up by birds, or the wind had swooped (like a bird on its prey) and
thrown him into a far- distant place. (Al-Hajj; 22:31)
184. Luqman; 31:13.
185. Al-Nisa; 4:48.
186. Al-Nisa; 4:116.
310
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
While believing Allah elevates people and makes them spread their wings
to everlasting spirituality, ascribing partners to Him causes them to fall from
heavens and get shattered. Ascribing partners to Allah is such a destructive sin
and it breaks ones heart into pieces and throws it down from cliffs and drags
it to places where all sorts of danger are present. As a matter of fact, when one
is trapped into the sin of ascribing partners to Allah, each one of the fanciful
desires of the carnal soul drags him to different ways and Satan, who is the
wind of destruction, throws him to the furthest corners of the valleys of Hell.
This destruction of the heart is much worse than the destruction of the body.
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Even if you are cut into pieces or burned in fire, never ascribe partners to
Allah!.. (Ibn Majah, Fiten, 23)
There is no stability and peace in the hearts of those who ascribe partners
to Allah. They never know whom or what they want to please. How nicely their
confused situation is expressed in the following Quranic verse:
Allah puts forth a Parable a man belonging to many partners at variance with each other, and a man belonging entirely to one master: are those
two equal in comparison? Praise be to Allah, but most of them have no
knowledge. (Al-Zumar; 39:29)
Think about a servant and some partners who disagree with each other.
Each partner wants the servant to obey only his commands and gets angry
when the servant obeys other partners. Anyone in this situation would not
know what to do and angers one partner while trying to please the other one
since while the servant thinks about performing the command of one, other
partners give different commands. As a result, this servant would be worthless
in the eyes of each of the partner and his life would be wasted with neverending troubles and exhaustion.
On the other hand, think about a servant who is devoted only to one master and who is in peace. He would please his master each time and earns rewards. In turn, his master helps him with his works and needs and grants his
wishes. Could the situation of these two servants be the same?
As the state of those who ascribe partners to Allah is dishonorable and
miserable in this world, it is also very frightening in the Hereafter. Allah the Al311
mighty does not forgive those who ascribe partners to Him while He forgives
anything else if He pleases. (Al-Nisa; 4:48, 116)
Those are the ones who waste the eternal life. It is said in a noble verse of
the Quran:
Those who reject (Truth), among the people of the Book and among
the Polytheists, will be in Hell-Fire, to dwell therein. They are the worst of
creatures. (Al-Bayyinah; 98:6)
Each prophet surely explained the truth about ascribing partners to Allah.
They have warned their followers to acknowledge Allah, the Cause of all causations, without getting fooled by the perceptible causes. We can list the acts that
the Prophets explained as acts of ascribing partners to Allah:
Prostrating to something or someone other than Allah,187
Presenting the needs to someone other than Allah and expecting the
results (which should be expected only from Allah) from other powers and
persons,
Naming some creatures as the daughters of Allah or the sons of Allah,
Adopting rulers as Lord who make things permissible (halal) or forbidden (haram). That is because the power to make things permissible or forbidden for people is unique to Allah.
Sacrificing an animal for the name of someone other than Allah,
Swearing in the name of someone other than Allah,
Visiting places special to beings ascribed as partners to Allah,
Naming children after the beings that remind ascribing partners to
Allah...188
187. It is said in the Noble Quran that:
Among His Signs are the night and the day, and the Sun and the Moon. Adore not the
sun and the moon, but adore Allah, Who created them, if it is Him you wish to serve.
(Al-Fussilat; 41:37)
188. See Shah Waliyyullah al-Dihlawi, Hujjatullah al-Baligha, I, 183-188.
In our first hadith, lying is listed among the major sins after ascribing partners to Allah and
disobeying ones parents. We will cover the subject of lying in the next chapter. For now it
suffices to express this: in order to show how important the issue is, the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) sat up from where he had been reclining and said And listen well as I warn you
312
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In our second hadith, the dangers of showing off, being insincere, and
performing some deeds for something other than Allahs contentedness which
is also known as implicitly (secretly) ascribing partners to Allah are being
drawn attention to. Performing the things that should be done for the contentment of Allah for others to see, admire, and for some worldly benefits is
a situation that the Messenger of Allah was worried about his followers. That
is because acting this way is among the major sins and is also something very
easy to be trapped into since it is not obvious. On the other hand, the greater
shirk, i.e., ascribing partners to Allah openly (explicitly), is evident. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) explained this with all its aspects to his followers. After
that, it is not possible for a sane believer to worship creatures such as moon or
sun. However, the desires of the carnal self and sense of showing-off is not like
that so one must be aware of them at all times. For example, the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) considered trying to perform a prayer better knowing that it
is being observed by others as a manifestation of ascribing partners to Allah
implicitly. (Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 21)
The result of the implicitly ascribing partners to Allah is a surprise misery. While the person expects divine rewards from the worships that he has
performed as showing-off, he will face with a punishment in the Hereafter and
realize that he gained nothing.
One day, the Prophet (pbuh) said:
The thing that worries me the most about you is the lesser (implicit ascription of partners to Allah.
The people around him asked:
What is the lesser ascription of partners to Allah, O the Messenger of
Allah?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered:
It is hypocrisy, or, in other words, it is showing-off. On the Day of Judgment, while people receive what corresponds to their deeds, Allah will tell the
hypocrites:
against giving forged statement and a false witness and he kept on saying that warning so
many times that the Noble Companions of the Messenger who love him more than anything
else wanted him to stop since they did not want the Messenger to get tired.
313
Go to those whom you wanted to see your deeds! See if you can find any
rewards with them? (Ahmad, V, 428, 429)
Therefore, a Muslim should sincerely perform his acts of worships and
good deeds, and avoid anything other than the content of Allah such as hypocrisy, showing-off, and similar senses of benefits.
It is said in the Noble Quran:
whoever expects to meet his Lord, let him work righteousness, and,
in the worship of his Lord, admit no one as partner. (Al-Kahf; 18:110)
In our third hadith, we are informed that Allah the Exalted prohibits disobedience to parents and to break off relations with them. Even if mothers
is used in the original text of the hadith, it is clear that both of parents are implied. The reason why mothers are specifically mentioned in the hadith is the
fact that they are mistreated and abused more often than fathers since they are
more merciful, gentler, and weaker.
The Prophet (pbuh) informs us that, on the Day of Judgment, He will not
look at the faces of those who disobey their parents. (Nasai, Zakat, 69/2560)
Almighty Allah says:
Serve Allah, and join not any partners with Him; and do good to parents, kinsfolk, orphans, those in need, neighbors who are near, neighbors
who are strangers, the companion by your side, the wayfarer (ye meet), and
what your right hands possess: For Allah loves not the arrogant, the vainglorious (Al-Nisa; 4:36)
In this verse, our Exalted Lord prohibits ascribing partners to Him and,
right after that, commands being nice to parents. This is enough to prove the
importance of being nice to parents and how bad it is to disobey them.189
189. In the rest of our third hadith, our Almighty Lord also prohibits not helping the poor and
asking for alms from others, not paying ones debt back and asking for more loans, being
miser and begging while one is not in need, in short, not performing ones duties and asking
for the things that one does not deserve.
The command of not to bury baby girls alive follows this. The scholars of exegesis of the
Quran tell that the most scary and alarming Noble verse of the Quran is When the female
(infant), buried alive, is questioned for what crime she was killed; (Al-Taqwir; 81:8-9)
This killing was one of the worst practices of the Era of Ignorance (the era before Islam).
In those days, the parents were committing a grave sin by killing their baby girls while
the eternal life of the babies killed were being saved since they pass away in childhood. In
todays world, the same kind of crime takes place by dragging pure and innocent generations
314
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
For this reason, the way of gaining the consent of Allah passes through
gaining the consent of parents. Angering the parents attracts the wrath of Allah.
Someone came to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and asked:
O Messenger of Allah! What is the right of parents upon their children?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
They are either your Paradise or your Hell. (Ibn Majah, Adab, 1/3662)
In other words, parents are two big opportunities presented to everyone.
A Muslim can make it easy to gain Paradise for himself by pleasing his parents.
If one does not act in this way and displeases his parents, this time, he makes
the ways of Paradise difficult for himself. As a matter of fact, Almighty Allah
lets us know that the Paradise lies under the feet of our mothers.
Aisha, the mother of believers, told a story about an act of a Companion
who gained Paradise by being nice to his mother:
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I fall asleep and saw myself in Paradise. I heard someone reciting the
Quran.
Who is this? I asked.
They said This is Haritha b. Numan.
The Messenger (pbuh) continued saying:
Doing goodness should be like this, doing goodness should be like this!
At the end of the narration, it is told that Haritha advanced his spiritual
level by acting nicely towards his mother and said:
He was one of the Noble Companions who treated his mother in the best
fashion. (Ahmad, VI, 151-152; Hakim, IV, 167)
that are entrusted to parents into a moral breakdown and both of their worlds are wasted.
Therefore, as being His creation, reviving the hearts of our kids by raising them with Islamic
moral values and ensure their happiness in both worlds is our duty to Allah.
In the second part of the hadith, we are also informed that Allah does not like gossip, asking
too many questions, and wasting ones money by spending it in a way that Islam does not
permit.
315
Our Master the Pride of the Universe (pbuh) prayed for those who are
nice to their parents as:
How happy those who treat their parents well are! May Allah lengthen
their lives! (Haythami, VIII, 137)
While one must treat his parents well all the time, it is an important duty
to serve them nicely especially in their old age.
It is said in a noble verse:
Your Lord has decreed that you worship none but Him, and that you
be kind to parents. Whether one or both of them attain old age in your life,
say not to them a word of contempt, nor repel them, but address them in
terms of honor. And, out of kindness, lower to them the wing of humility,
and say: My Lord! Bestow on them your Mercy even as they cherished me
in childhood. (Al-Isra; 17:23-24)
That is because; humans need kindness, help and service most in their old
ages. And there is no one else who could do this better than ones own child.
Those children who take advantage of this can easily gain Paradise. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) harshly warned those who reach the old age of their
parents and lose the chance of earning Paradise since they avoid serving them
and treating them nicely.
There is only one exception for not obeying ones parents: A child should
not obey his parents if they ask to ascribe partners to Allah. However, he should
still continue to keep his relations with his parents and treat them nicely. (Luqman; 31:14, Al-Ankabut; 29:8)
:
.
:
135. Anas (r.a.) said: When it was asked about the major sins to the Messenger of Allah:
316
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
: .
:
136. Abdullah b. Umar (r.a.) said that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
A faithful believer remains at liberty regarding his religion (hoping for Allahs mercy) unless he kills somebody unlawfully. (Bukhari, Ad-Diyat)
:
.
317
: .
.
139. Abu al-Hakim al-Bajali said: I heard Abu Said al-Hudri and Abu
Huraira narrating the sayings of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) as:
If the dwellers of heaven and earth participated in committing the sin of
killing a believer unjustly, Allah would send all of them to Hell. (Tirmidhi, Diyat,
8/1398)
318
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
140. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Prophet (pbuh) said:
He who killed himself by falling from (the top of) a mountain would constantly fall in the Fire of Hell and would live there forever and ever. He who drank
poison and killed himself would sip that in the Fire of Hell where he is doomed
forever and ever; and He who killed himself with steel (weapon) would be the
eternal denizen of the Fire of Hell and he would have that weapon in his hand
and would be thrusting that in his stomach forever and ever. (Bukhari, Tibb, 56;
Muslim, Iman, 175; Tirmidhi, Tibb, 7/2044-2045; Nasai, Janaiz, 68; Abu Dawud, Tibb, 11/3872)
Explanations:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) listed killing someone among the greatest
sins. In various reports, it is listed among the sins right after ascribing partners
to Allah.190
Ibn Umar (r.a.) described killing someone unjustly as a very dangerous
and dead-end cliff. (Bukhari, Diyat, 1)
According to Imam Shafi, the second biggest sin after ascribing partners
to Allah is to kill someone.
As stated in our second hadith, as long as a believer does not kill anyone,
he can hope for the mercy and forgiveness of Allah. In other words, all sins can
be forgiven but when it comes to killing someone, one has to stop there. One
has to be careful about that.
On the other hand, Muslim scholars who agree that all the sins can be
forgiven except ascribing partners to Allah state that this hadith aims to discourage us strongly from killing someone. Here, homicide is described as one
of the greatest sins and is very difficult to be forgiven.
In Islam, reviving someone is considered as great and as important deed
as bringing the whole humanity into life. Also, killing someone is as bad as killing the whole humanity.
On the other hand, in the sight of Allah, killing a believer is as bad as destruction of the Earth. In other words, destruction of the whole world is lighter
according to Allah than slaying of a believer other than for a valid reason.
190. For example see Bukhari, Diyat, 2; Nasai, Tahrim al-Dam, 3/4007.
319
Adams son, Cain, had killed his brother Abel by obeying his carnal self
due to his jealousy towards Abel. He acted this way regardless of his brothers
warnings, and this shows that he has forgotten Allah and was not afraid of
Him due to his heedlessness. In the end, by killing someone, he took upon hs
shoulders both his own sins and the sins of the person whom he killed and
became one of the dwellers of the Hell. This grave sin that he had committed
by obeying his carnal self dragged him into a complete misery. Finally, he had
realized his weakness and mistake and started to burn in the fire of great regret.
This is because the sin that he had burdened himself with was a very heavy one.
As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah informed us that Cain will receive
his share of the sin from all of the killings in the world after that.191 That is because he is the one who opened the path to this bad act.
Almighty Allah says the following after telling about the story of Cain and
Abel in the Noble Quran:
if any one slew a person - unless it be for murder or for spreading
mischief in the land - it would be as if he slew the whole people: and if any
one saved a life, it would be as if he saved the life of the whole people. (AlMaidah; 5:32)
320
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Therefore, the punishment of this sin in this world is to be executed according to the principle of an eye for an eye. Even if many people participate
in a killing of one person, all of them receive the same punishment.192 In our
fifth hadith, this situation is expressed with a more striking style. It says that,
if all humans participate in killing one believer, Allah the Almighty can punish
all of them with the Fire in return for the death of that one soul. This way of
thinking shows the best value that can be given to human life. Therefore, one
must not participate or help the unjust killing of a believer. It is said in a noble
hadith:
If a person helps the killing of a believer even with a half of a word, he
reaches Allah with a note written in between his eyes This person lost his hope
from the mercy of Allah. (Suyuti, al-Fath al-kabir, III, 164)
One of the most frightening verses of the Quran about the punishment
for bloodshed is:
If a man kills a believer intentionally, his recompense is Hell, to abide
therein (For ever): And the wrath and the curse of Allah are upon him, and
a dreadful penalty is prepared for him. (Al-Nisa; 4:93)
The scholars of the Quranic exegesis say that such a threatening language
is used in this verse in order to strongly discourage people from intentionally
killing someone. As a matter of fact, Allah informed us that He could forgive
all kinds of sins except ascribing partners to Him. A believer who kills someone will sure face a great punishment even if he does not stay in Hell forever.
Therefore this verse is interpreted as forbidding Muslims from killing someone
on purpose or unjustly with a strong and frightening language.
However, there is no doubt that those who kill a believer just because he is
a believer will stay in Hell forever.
No one has the right to take away a life that Allah has entrusted to us.
Allah has given the life to humans and He is the One who will take it back.
Interference in this matter angers Almighty Allah. Committing suicide, not to
mention homicide, is strictly forbidden and considered among the major sins.
As a matter of fact, in our sixth hadith it is seen that the punishment of committing suicide is sharply expressed. In this hadith, we are told, three times,
that those who commit a suicide will be punished in the same manner they
192. Bukhari, Ad-Diyat, 21.
321
kill themselves, and this punishment will repeat forever and ever. It is attention drawing that in the hadith the words khuld and abad which express
eternity are repeated three times after mentioning each punishment. This style
refers to a very rarely used threat.
Those who kill themselves in this world will torture themselves in the
Hereafter as well. Their punishment in the Hereafter will be exactly the same as
they killed themselves. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in another hadith:
Whoever commits suicide in a certain manner will be punished with the
same method on the Day of Judgment. (Bukhari, Al-Janaaiz, 84; Adab, 44, 73; Iman, 7;
Muslim, Iman, 176, 177)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
None will enter Paradise but a Muslim, and Allah may support this religion
(i.e. Islam) even with a disobedient man. (Bukhari, Jihad, 182; Maghazi, 38; Qadar, 5;
Muslim, Iman, 178)
:
:
:
.!
141. Safwan b. Sulaim (r.a.) narrates:
It is asked the Messenger of Allah (pbuh):
Can a believer be coward?
Yes, he can be! he said.
Can a believer be a miser person? it is asked.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said again:
Yes, he can be!
Can a believer be a liar? it is asked.
323
:
:
: .
:
143. Abu Umamah (r.a.) narrated: I heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) say:
I guarantee a house in the surroundings of Paradise for a man who avoids
quarrelling even if he were in the right, a house in the middle of Paradise for
a man who avoids lying even if he were joking, and a house in the upper part
of Paradise for a man who made his character good. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Adab,
7/4800. Also see Tirmidhi, Birr, 58/1993; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 7)
324
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
.
:
.
144. As narrated by Ibn Abbas (r.a.), the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever claims to have seen a dream which he did not see, will be ordered
to make a knot between two barley grains193 which he will not be able to do.
(Bukhari, Tabir, 45. Also see Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Adab, 88/5024; Tirmidhi, Ruya, 8; Ibn Majah,
Ruya, 8)
:
:
:
:
193. In the report of Abu Dawud, the punishment is described as to make a knot between two barley
grains which aims to order something that is not possible to do to increase the punishment of a
liar.
325
145. Abdullah b. Amr (r.a.) narrated: A Bedouin came and asked the Messenger of Allah:
O Messenger of Allah! What are the biggest of all sins?
Our Prophet said:
To associate partners with Allah!
Then what? asked the man.
To be undutiful to ones parents!
Than what? asked the man.
To take an oath al-Ghamus!
I asked:
What is an oath al-Ghamus?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
It is a false oath in order to grab the property of a Muslim. (Bukhari, Aiman, 1;
Iman, 16; Ad-Diyat, 2. Also see Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 4/3020; Nasai, Tahrim al-Dam, 3/4009; Qasama, 48)
Explanations:
Lying is one of the most harmful sins for the humanity. It is an illness that
rots the soul. It will be one of the major evidences against humans on the Day
of Judgment.
People often lie in order to avoid embarrassment. A person can deceive
others by lying but he should think about what to say to Almighty Allah who
knows everything. In fact, the lie that people tell in order not to be embarrassed in this life will embarrass them even worse in the Hereafter. What will
those who avoid being embarrassed in front of a few people in this world do
in the hereafter in front of the whole humanity? In that crowd, there will be
their most beloved ones as well as their biggest enemies. As a matter of fact, a
326
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
person never wants to show his weaknesses to both of these groups. Those who
tell a lie in order to save themselves from a little trouble will face even more
troublesome difficulties in the eternal life. That is because each and every word
of humans is recorded. This is stated in the following Quranic verse:
Not a word does he utter but there is a sentinel by him, ready (to note
it). (Qaf; 50:18)
For this reason, Almighty Allah, the Most Merciful, warns His servants
from the beginning:
And pursue not that of which you have no knowledge. (Al-Isra; 17:36)
According to this command of our Exalted Lord, believers should be very
careful about their talks and should not tell anything that they are not sure of
or express their view about the issues that they are not well informed. (Bukhari,
Itisam, 7)
327
Telling a lie darkens the heart and constitutes a great hurdle to finding the
right path. In this subject, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When a person keeps lying, a black dot is stricken to his heart. Then the
black dot becomes bigger and covers the whole heart. This person finally gets
recorded as a liar before Allah. (Muwatta, Kalam, 18)
Allah the Almighty does not help those liars whose hearts are darkened
find the true path. (Al-Zumar; 39:3; (Al-Mumin; 40:28)
For this reason, in our first hadith, it is told that telling a lie and having
faith never go hand in hand and turning away from the truth does not befit
a believer under any circumstances. A believer temporarily may have some
undesirable traits such as being a coward or a miser but telling a lie should not
come close to him in any case. That is because telling a lie is not one of the characteristics that a believer can have. As a matter of fact, a believer should be neither coward nor miserly since these are undesirable characteristics. However
compared to being a liar, even these characteristics become light. The Prophet
(pbuh) used this style to express the magnitude of lying and how far believers
should keep away from it; otherwise, none of these can be the characteristics of
a perfect believer. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
You would never find me miserly, liar, or coward! (Bukhari, Jihad, 24; Nasai,
Hiba, 1)
328
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
It is those who believe not in the Signs of Allah that forge falsehood: it
is they who lie! (Al-Nahl; 16:105)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The signs of a hypocrite are three; whenever he speaks, he tells a lie; whenever he promises, he always breaks it (his promise); if you trust him, he proves to
be dishonest. (If you keep something as a trust with him, he will not return it.)
(Bukhari, Iman, 24; Muslim, Iman, 107)
In spite of the mischief and many harms of lying, unfortunately people descend on lies as moths descend on fire and do not take it seriously. In contrast,
the exemplary generation of the Noble Companions of the Messenger of Allah
was the one which stayed away from lies the most. The following two narrations are the best examples to prove how much they stayed away from lying:
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) distributed more of the war booty of
the Hunain War among those who were likely to embrace Islam, the youth of
Ansar were disturbed and said:
This is so strange! While our swords are dripping with their blood (of the
Quraish), our war booty have been given to them.
This (remark) reached the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), and so he gathered
them and said:
What is this that has been conveyed to me about you?
Even though they were so embarrassed, they said with their heads down
that:
Yes, it happened exactly as you heard.
That is because they were not (the people) to speak lie. (Muslim, Zakat, 134)
The last sentence in this report proves that the Noble Companions of Allah never lied no matter how difficult their situation was.
Another example of this can be seen in the following statement of Anas (r.a.):
I swear to Allah that not all our reports that we narrate are heard directly
from the Messenger of Allah (we were learning the hadith of the Messenger from
each other.) However, we never told a lie to each other. (Haythami, I, 153)
329
Hypocrites who did not join the Tabuk Military Expedition thought that
they saved themselves by lying, but Qab b. Malik (r.a.) told the truth no matter what. Due to telling the truth, he faced with many troubles and life became
unbearable for him. However, the reward that he gained in the end was irreplaceable: He was saved from the anger of Allah and the scorn that is expressed
in a Quranic verse related to the topic and he was blessed with the mercy of
Allah. He narrated as:
I swear to Allah that the biggest blessing that I have received after being
blessed with Islam is telling the truth (about the reason why I have not joined
the Tabuk Expedition) to the Prophet and saving myself from going astray with
the liars. That is because Allah revealed the noble verse scorching those who
did not join the Tabuk Expedition and who lied about it with a style that is not
used for anyone else in the Noble Quran before:
They will swear to you by Allah, when you return to them, that you
may leave them alone. So leave them alone: For they are an abomination,
and Hell is their dwelling-place,-a fitting recompense for the (evil) that they
did. They will swear unto you, that you may be pleased with them but if you
are pleased with them, Allah is not pleased with those who disobey. (AlTawbah; 9:95-96) (Bukhari, Maghazi, 79)
As telling the truth saves people from going astray, it is the first requirement to be a wise person:
When asked to Luqman Hakim, referring to his wisdom:
What is the secret that made you obtain this high level that we observe?
He answered:
Telling the truth, protecting the things that are entrusted to me, and quitting the things that do not concern me. (Muvatta, Kalam, 17)
In our second hadith, there is a strong warning even for those who lie in
order to be funny and make people laugh. People do not take these kinds of lies
seriously. After a while, they get used to telling lies, and they start lying easily in
other occasions. Due to this and similar dangers of lying as a joke, it is forbidden and strongly warned against. As a matter of fact, the hadith indicates that
the punishment of this kind of lying is even bigger than the other kinds. That
is because the term wayl which means Woe to him is used for those whose
ends are extremely scary. And this term is repeated three times in the hadith.
330
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In what a pitiful situation those who put themselves in danger just to make
others laugh are! That is because they are addressed with the term wayl not
only by the Prophet but also by Almighty Allah.
331
One day when the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was sitting in our house, my
mother called me and said:
Come here and I shall give you something.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked her:
What did you intend to give him?
My mother replied:
I intended to give him some dates. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If you were not to give him anything, a lie would be recorded against you.
(Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Adab, 80/4991; Ahmad, III, 447; II, 452)
Therefore one should pay attention to stay away from lying even for disciplining the kids and should avoid telling them lies in order to make them
happy or scare them.
In our fourth hadith, a different type of lie is mentioned. This hadith talks
about how big a sin it is to tell that one has dreamt about something even he
has not. That is because this is one of the lies that can be told most easily, and
it is impossible to disprove it. Therefore, it causes more damage compared to
the other kinds of lies. By this way, many people can be deceived and various
benefits may be obtained from them, which violate their rights.
On the other hand, those who lie about their dreams first belie Allah and
slander against Him. This slander, in turn, is a greater sin than lying about
other people and vilifying. Therefore the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave an
example to express that there is an unending punishment for those who resort
to this type of lying.
In our fifth hadith, taking a false oath in order to grab the property of
others is mentioned as one of the major sins. Since this kind of lie makes forbidden things appear to be permissible and wrong thins seem to be right, it
means changing the rules of Islam, which drags people into sin in this world
and then to Hell in the Hereafter. For this reason, a false oath is called An oath
of ghamus which means the oath that drags to sin and Hell!
Since those who take false oaths try to deceive people by showing Allah
as witness, they exploit the name of Allah and, as such, vilify Him. For this
332
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) mentioned taking false oath as one of
the greatest sins.
The Prophet (pbuh) said:
Those who take false oaths in order to grab some wealth of a Muslim will
be brought to Allah as a person who was subject to the anger of Almighty Allah.
Then he recited a noble verse of the Quran:
As for those who sell the faith they owe to Allah and their own plighted
word for a small price, they shall have no portion in the Hereafter: Nor will
Allah (Deign to) speak to them or look at them on the Day of Judgment, nor
will He cleans them (of sin): They shall have a grievous penalty. (Al-i Imran;
3:77) (Bukhari, Ayman, 11, 17; Muslim, Iman, 220, 222)
Taking false oaths in trading drives off the blessings of the goods and
causes their waste. (Bukhari, Kitab Al-Buyu, 44, 26; Muslim, Kitab Al-Buyu, 47)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised merchants who mistakenly involve with untrue speech and swearing in business dealings to compensate this
with sadaqah (alms) to purify themselves from these sins. (Abu Dawud, Kitab AlBuyu, 1/3326-7; Tirmidhi, Kitab Al-Buyu, 4/1208)
One of the proofs that show that taking false oaths is one of the major sins
is this:
When a person breaks his promise, he can save himself from its burden
by paying monetary compensation. However, taking false oaths is such a great
sin that even paying monetary compensation cannot decrease its punishment,
333
Allah praised those servants who stay away from committing this sin saying:
Those who witness no falsehood... (Al-Furqan; 25:72)
d. Interest
334
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
They are all equal... (Muslim, Musakat, 105-106. Also see Bukhari, Buyu, 24, 25, 113;
Abu Dawud, Buyu, 4/3333; Tirmidhi, Buyu, 2/1206; Ibn Majah, Ticarat, 58)
.
:
148. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There will be a time when there will be no one who does not receive interest.
Even if a person does not receive it directly, its dust198 will reach him. (Abu Dawud,
Kitab Al-Buyu, 3/3331. Also see. Nasai, Kitab Al-Buyu, 2/4452; Ibn Majah, Tijarah, 58)
Explanations:
For the Messenger of Allah, the worst of all earnings is the one earned
through interest.199 Interes, which is based on obtaining profit with no underly198. In another versions of this hadith recorded by Abu Dawud, the phrase its vapor is used.
199. Ibn Abi Shayba, Musannaf, VII, 106/34552; Waqidi, III, 1016; ; Ibn Kathir, Bidayah, V, 13-14.
335
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
O people of Quraish! Donate from the honest earning of your money for
the construction of Kabah! Do not mix any money that is earned through illegitimate ways such as adultery, interest, or seized money by oppression. (Ibn
Hisham, I, 210; Ibn Kasir, al-Bidaya, II, 305)
The people of Quraish had a difficult time to find honest earning and had
to leave the hatim section of the Kabah unfinished.200 In other words, even if
the polytheists of that era knew that interest earning is too wrong to be used
in the construction of the House of Allah, they still could not save themselves
from it.
Islam came a while later and advised people to increase their wealth by
building partnerships instead of through interest. That is because it is the best
way of earning for everyone. Apart from this, Islam encourages qard hasan
or giving loans without interest, just for the sake of Allah, as much as one can
and regarded the loans given to the needy better than the charity. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us about this as:
In the night of ascension, I saw that it was written on the door of the Paradise as:
Sadaqahs (alms) will be rewarded by ten times, and loans will be rewarded
by eighteen times.
I asked:
O Gabriel! Why is loan better than sadaqah (alms)?
Gabriel (pbuh) answered:
That is because a beggar (most of the time) asks for money in spite of he
has some with him. However, those who ask for a loan ask due to their need. (Ibn
Majah, Sadaqah, 19)
337
In these verses, there is not a clear command forbidding interest for Muslims. They just point out that interest is a major sin from which a believer has
to stay away.
Through other verses which were revealed in later periods, interest is prohibited for Muslims:
O you who believe! Devour not usury, doubled and multiplied; but
fear Allah that you may (really) prosper. Fear the Fire, which is repaired
for those who reject Faith: And obey Allah and the Messenger that you may
obtain mercy. (Al-i Imran; 3:130-132)
the neighborhood would come and take as much as they need from these alms and would
leave the rest. A French traveler who wrote about the 17th century Istanbul stated that he
had observed a stone with money on top of it but had not seen anyone to come and get the
money.
202. Al-Rum; 30:39.
338
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In the practice called interest of the Era of Ignorance the increase was
based on postponing the payment of the loan. The creditor would ask for extra
payment either at the beginning of the agreement knowing that the debt will be
paid back at a later time or to postpone the payment when the debt is unpaid
on the due date. Usually, since the debts would not get paid on time, the interest would multiply. The above mentioned verse points out this fact by saying
doubled and multiplied and expresses that this is a heartbreaking brutality.
Therefore, it is not possible to understand from these expressions that small
amounts of interest which do not double the principal are not forbidden. As a
matter of fact, the aim of this verse is not to put a limit on the prohibition but
to remind the miserable end that interest eventually reaches and the fact that
it is harmful to people.
For this reason, whether the rate is small or big, all kinds of interest are
prohibited. As a matter of fact, interest is absolutely prohibited with the following later noble verse of the Quran that was revealed without mentioning the
expression doubled and multiplied and some questions that can be raised
is answered:
Those who devour usury will not stand except as stand one whom
the Evil one by his touch has driven to madness. That is because they say:
Trade is like usury,203 but Allah has permitted trade and forbidden usury.
Those who after receiving direction from their Lord, desist, shall be pardoned for the past; their case is for Allah (to judge); but those who repeat
203. Interest is to take more than what is given in transactions of goods that are same in
measurements, weight or kind. It does not matter whether the transaction is in full payment
or installments. If a person lends some gold, silver, wheat, or date, and then receives gold
for the gold, silver for the silver, wheat for the wheat, and date for the date but more than
what he has given in terms of measurement or kind, this extra is the interest prohibited
in the noble verses; the command does not change even if the payment happens at a later
time. There is no problem by taking gold for gold, silver for silver or wheat for wheat as
long as attention is paid to the kind, measurements, and weights are the same. If a person
gives gold to someone and receives silver in turn, gives barley and receives date in turn,
or gives barley and receives wheat in turn, the extra money that he makes is permissible
(halal) even if the measurements or the kinds are not the same because it is the profit that
he makes. That is because the work he has done is trade whether it is done in full payment
or in installments.
Charging for a higher amount in transactions of exchanging different goods is the
compensation for the cost of effort, time, the good, and the business. However, receiving
extra in transactions of the same goods with the same kinds and measurements is earning
something for free. (Izzet Derveze, et-Tefsirul-hadis, V, 309-310)
339
(the offence) are companions of the Fire: They will abide therein (for ever).
(Al-Baqarah; 2:275)
In the Noble Quran, Almighty Allah did not declare war against any disobedient and sinner other than who gain from interest and threaten anyone so
severely.204 This is enough to prove how big a sin taking interest is. We see the
miserable ends of those who continue to take interest by being deaf and blind
to such divine warnings in various examples in our daily life.
In his farewell sermon, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) announced that
interest is forbidden to everyone and said:
All claims to usury of the pre-Islamic period have been abolished. You
shall have your capital sums, deal not unjustly and you shall not be dealt
with unjustly.205 The first of those I remit is the interest of my uncle Abbas ibn
AbdulMuttalib. His interest is remitted completely. (See Muslim, Hajj, 147-8; Abu
Dawud, Kitab Al-Buyu, 5/3334; Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 9/3087)
There are also other strong statements that exemplify how big a sin interest is. In one of them, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) talks about seventy kinds
of sins due to interest and says:
204. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) mentions one more case where Allah declares war against
which is against those who show hostility to the friends of Allah. (Bukhari, al-Riqaq, 38)
205. Al-Baqara; 2:279.
340
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The lightest of them would be like getting married to ones own mother. (Ibn
Majah, Ticarat, 58; Hakim, II, 43/2259; Baihaqi, Shuab, IV, 392-395)
Here the number seventy is not mentioned to limit the harms of interest
but rather to show the magnitude of its harms. As a matter fact, in various
narrations different numbers, such as seventy two or seventy three, are used.
Therefore, interest leads to many other sins and all of them cause major harms.
Even the least harmful of them would be similar to the worst and most undesirable situation.
In another hadith stating the punishments of the interest receivers, the
Prophet (pbuh) said:
In the night of Ascention, I saw some people whose bellies were as big as a
house. Their bellies were full of snakes and they were visible from the outside. I
asked:
O Gabriel! Who are they? He answered:
Those are the interest receivers! (Ibn Majah, Trade, 58)
There are other reports that inform us about the miserable end in the
grave and in the Hereafter of those who receive interest. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warned his followers in many occasions for them not to fall into
such miserable situation. For example, as we are told in our first hadith, in
order to keep his followers away from this major sin, he cursed those who
receive interest, who give interest, who record the transactions of interest, and
the witnesses of these kinds of agreements and told that they are all the same
in terms committing this sin.
The term receiver (literally consumer) is used to indicate those who
take the interest earning. It does not make any difference whether he personally consumes the interest (money) or not. Since one of the most important
and known ways of benefiting from wealth is expressed as consuming, these
terms are generally used to mean to benefit from interest.
The Prophet cursed everyone who takes part in interest bearing transactions in order to show that there is no place for it in Muslim societies. His cursing also clearly explains that everyone should stay away from it, and closes the
doors to all the wrong deeds and evils that interest causes. The Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) has been so careful about the issue of interest that he did not leave
341
any loopholes and made the criteria very clear and accurate. For example, lets
look at the following noble hadith:
Whoever mediates for another and receives a gift in turn, if he accepts the
gift, he opens one of the great doors of interest (and loses the reward of his good
deed.) (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Buyu, 82/3541)
If one of you lends some money to another and the receiver gives a gift to
the lender, the lender should not accept the gift or if the receiver offers the lender
a ride with his animal, he should not use it unless it is customary between them
to give and receive gifts or help from each other before the loan. (Ibn Majah,
Sadaqah, 19)
Hence, one should be very careful about interest and avoid even the suspicious acts. As a matter of fact, Umar (r.a.) said:
One of the last noble verses of Quran is about interest. Therefore, you
should quit interest and anything related that is suspicious. (Ibn Majah, Trade, 58)
Here, Umars object is to express that interest is one of the things prohibited lastly and it is not possible that this command was abrogated. In other
words, the prohibition of interest is clear and for this reason, one must pay
extra attention and avoid even the suspicious things in order to protect oneself
from it. As a matter of fact, the Companions of the Prophet (r. anhum) used
to act in this way. Umar (r.a.) expressed how much attention they paid to this
matter saying:
We have abandoned nine out of the ten permissible (halal) things due to
the fear of getting into interest. (Ali al-Muttaqi, IV, 187/10087)
While Muslim scholars agree that it is liked (mandub) to stay away from
suspicious things, they agree that when it comes to interest, it is required (wajib) to avoid them.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to pay so much attention to the issue
of interest that he said when he made an agreement with the people of Najran:
There is no more transaction of interest. Those who receive interest from now on
are not under my protection. (See Abu Dawud, Kitab al-Kharaj, 29-30/3041; Baihaqi, alSunan al-Kubra, IX, 202; Ibn Abi Shayba, Musannaf, VII, 426/37015)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
While many people may agree that interest is bad for the society, sometimes people may wrongly consider it to be beneficial for individuals. However,
as expressed in our second hadith, the happiness of a person who thinks that
his wealth has increased with the interest would not last long. His calculations
would turn upside down and he will face misery. The bounty of his wealth
would be lost from the beginning and he would not benefit from it. Then, for
various reasons his wealth will decrease and he will even go bankrupt. At the
end, he will be condemned to misery both in this world and in the hereafter.
It is told in other noble verses of the Quran:
That which you lay out for increase through the property of (other)
people, will have no increase with Allah, but that which you lay out for charity, seeking the Countenance of Allah, (will increase): it is these who will get
a recompense multiplied. (Ar-Rum; 30:39)
Allah will deprive usury of all blessing, but will give increase for deeds
of charity: For He loves not creatures ungrateful and wicked. (Al-Baqarah;
2:276)
Although interest is such a harmful and painful sin, many people get biased by how it externally looks and get stuck in interest. As a matter of fact, as
our third hadith informs us that there will be a time when there will be no one
who does not receive interest, even if a person tries to avoid interest, he will get
from its dust. That is because a person who lives in a society will have relations
with others, visit each other, exchange gifts, and join in weddings and holidays.
He will have to receive his salary from a bank, and as such it will be impossible
to stay away from interest.
People living in such society will eventually start not even to worry about
what is permissible (halal) or what is forbidden. That is because their souls and
hearts will be completely bankrupt. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There will be a time when a person will not care whether his earnings are
coming through permissible or prohibited means. (Nasai, Buyu, 2/4451)
343
: .
:
149. Ibn Umar (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Every intoxicant is khamr (wine) and every intoxicant is forbidden. He who
drinks wine in this world and dies while he is continuing its consumption and not
having repented from it will not be given the wine (of Paradise) in the Hereafter.
(Muslim, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 73, 77. Also see Bukhari, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 1; Abu Dawud, Kitab
Al-Ashriba, 5)
206. For more details about interest see smail zsoy, Faiz Diyanet slm Ansiklopedisi, XII,
110-126; ibid, Faiz ve Problemleri, zmir 1993.
344
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
:
:
150. Jabir b. Abdullah (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Every intoxicant is forbidden; if a lot of anything causes intoxication, a
handful of it is forbidden as well. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Ashribah, 5/3681; Tirmidhi,
Kitab Al-Ashribah, 3/1865)
:
.
:
151. Abu al-Darfa (r.a.) said: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) whom I love
more than anything advised me:
Never consume alcohol because it is the key of all wrong doing and evils.
(Ibn Majah, Kitab Al-Ashribah, 1)
: .
:
152. Ibn Umar (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
345
It is for sure that Allah has cursed alcohol, its drinker, its server, its seller, its
buyer, its presser, the one for whom it is pressed, the one who conveys it, and the
one to whom it is conveyed. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Ashribah, 2/3674)
...
153. Jabir (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
Those who believe in Allah and the Hereafter should not sit on a table
where alcohol is consumed (even if he does not drink)! (Tirmidhi, Kitab Al-Adab,
43/2801)
346
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------------
:
Explanations:
Almighty Allah loves His servants and wants them to enter Paradise. For
this reason, He is jealous of His servants from sins and prohibited whether it is
open or secret. For the same reason, all kinds of intoxicating drinks which are
causes of many other sins are strictly prohibited whether they are consumed a
little or a lot.
Intoxicants are harmful drinks that are completely contrary to the human
nature. As a matter of fact, in the Night Journey, when two cups of drinks with
one containing wine and the other containing milk was offered to the Prophet,
347
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) looked at both of them, and he took the one
containing milk. (As a matter of fact, the wine that was offered to him was not
the wine that we know of but it was a drink from Paradise. At the time, drinking wine had not been prohibited, yet.)
Upon this, Gabriel (pbuh) said:
Praise Allah Who guided you to the true nature; had you taken the one
containing wine, Your Umma (followers) would have gone astray.207 (Muslim,
Iman, 272; Kitab Al-Ashriba, 92. Also see Bukhari, Tafsir, 17/3; Kitab Al-Ashriba, 1, 12; Nasai,
Kitab Al-Ashriba, 41)
As can be understood from the story, the important thing is to be conscious and serious. It is not pleasant to be unconscious and relaxed by the taste
of wine. The end of being unconscious usually results in falling into deviation.
Therefore, for those who internalize drinking by considering it normal, it is
inevitable to fall into deviation.
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had never come close to
drinking before Islam, too. One day, when it was asked to him:
O the Messenger of Allah! Have you drink wine before Islam? He said:
No! Even when I did not know what the Book and faith is, I knew that the
things that people in the period of Jahiliyya (ignorance) did were disbelief. (Diyarbekri, I, 254-255; Ali al-Muttaqi, no: 35439)
348
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In fact, if it had been suddenly forbidden, most of the people would have disagreed with that. As a matter of fact, Aisha (r.anha), the mother of Muslims
said:
The Verses regarding legal and illegal things were revealed only after
the people embraced Islam. If the first thing to be revealed had been:
Do not drink alcoholic drinks people would have said:
We will never leave alcoholic drinks!
Again, if there had been revealed:
Do not commit adultery! they would have said:
We will never give up adultery (Bukhari, Fadail al-Quran, 6)
By taking the human nature into account, the prohibition of drinking was
commanded gradually as follows:
First the noble verse And from the fruit of the date-palm and the vine,
you get out wholesome drink and food: behold, in this also is a sign for
those who are wise209 got revealed in Mecca.
In this noble verse, by saying that people make intoxicating drinks from
the fruit of date and vine apart from healthy drinks and foods, it is implied that
the intoxicating drinks are not considered nice and good and indicated that it
will be prohibited in the future.
After the migration from Mecca to Medina, as an answer to the questions
asked by the people of Medina, Allah the Almighty revealed:
They ask you concerning wine and gambling. Say: In them is great
sin, and some profit, for men; but the sin is greater than the profit. (AlBaqarah; 2:219)
After the revelation of this noble verse, majority of the Muslims quit
drinking.
Then some time passed. One day, one of the Companions of the Messenger misread a noble verse in a way that changed its meaning while performing
the Evening Prayer. Upon this, the following noble verse got revealed:
209. Al-Nahl; 16:67.
349
O you who believe! Approach not prayers with a mind befogged, until
you can understand all that you say210
After this, the number of Muslims who drink wine considerably decreased.
When it is time to pray, a person appointed by the Prophet (pbuh) used to announce:
Those who are drunk should not come close to prayer! Muslims understood that drinking will be forbidden soon and got ready for it.
A while after that, almost all of the Muslims abandoned drinking. Some
of them, on the other hand, were still in embarrassing situations due to their
drinking.
Umar (r.a.) used to pray as:
O my Lord! Reveal a clear command about drinking to us! Finally, after
a fight that took place between drunken people, the wickedness of drinking
became more evident. By then, prohibition of drinking became something that
everyone can easily appreciate. Upon this, Allah the Almighty revealed these
noble verses of the Quran:
O you who believe! Intoxicants and gambling, (dedication of) stones,
and (divination by) arrows, are an abomination of Satans handwork: eschew such (abomination), that you may prosper. Satans plan is (but) to excite enmity and hatred between you, with intoxicants and gambling, and
hinder you from the remembrance of Allah, and from prayer: will you not
then abstain? (Al-Maidah; 5:90-91)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) called Umar (r.a.) and recited these noble
verses. When the Prophet recited the part Will you not then abstain? Umar
said:
We have abstained! We have abstained O our Lord! Other Muslims
joined Umar and said:
We have abstained from drinking and gambling O our Lord!
When these noble verses of Quran revealed, the Prophet appointed someone to announce:
210. Al-Nisa; 4:43.
350
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Know that from now on drinking alcoholic beverages have been prohibited!
The alcoholic drinks whose barrels were broken and emptied were seen
flowing through the streets of Medina!..
Anas (r.a.) narrated:
I used to offer alcoholic drinks to the people at the residence of Abu Talha.
Then the order of prohibiting alcoholic drinks was revealed, and the Prophet
ordered somebody to announce that: Abu Talha said to me:
Go out and see what this voice (this announcement) is.
I went out and (on coming back) said:
This is somebody announcing that Alcoholic beverages have been prohibited! Abu Talha said to me:
Go and spill it.
Then it (alcoholic drinks) was seen flowing through the streets of Medina.
(Bukhari, Tafsir, 5/11)
After that, Muslims who used to drink alcoholic beverages destroyed the
wine they had. They never drank it again. They have considered drinking as an
act of deviation from the religion. For example, Abu Musa (r.a.) used to say:
In my opinion, there is no difference whether I drink alcohol or abandon
Allah and worship this column (both of them are among the major sins.) (Nasai, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 42/5661)
Therefore, one must stay away from all kinds of intoxicating drinks. As a
matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us in the first hadith
that every intoxicating drink is like wine, and it is forbidden (haram). In other
words, the difference in their names is not important. It does not make sense
for some people to say that the forbidden drink is wine and since the name
of what we consume is not wine, it is not forbidden. The Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) miraculously pointed out to this fact and said:
Some of my followers will drink wine by changing its name. (Nasai, Kitab AlAshriba, 41/5656. Also see. Bukhari, Adahi, 3; Ibn Majah, Fitan, 22)
351
Thus, those who try to find a juristic opinion that permits drinking with
some excuses only deceive themselves.
On the other hand, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that those
who are addicted to alcoholic drinks and die before they repent will not get
the chance to drink from the divine wine of the Paradise. In another hadith, he
said that those addicted to alcohol will not even enter into the Paradise. (Nasai,
Zakat, 69/2560)
Having a positive attitude towards drinking wine in this world by thinking that there will also be wine in the Paradise is not a right way of thinking.
There is no similarity between the wine of this world and Paradise other than
their names. While the wine of this world leads people to all kinds of wrong
deeds by intoxicating them, the wine of the Paradise will not have the quality
of intoxicating people and leading them to disgracefulness.
Prohibition of drinking is not based on its level of consumption either.
In our second hadith, it is told that a little of something is also forbidden if
much of it is intoxicating. For this reason, one must not be deceived by those
who say it is okay to drink a little as long as it wont make you get drunk. The
criterion is very clear that if much of something is intoxicating, a little bit of it
is also prohibited (haram). Our religion aims to prevent sins by tightly closing
the doors which lead to wrong deeds. It does not take theoretic solutions that
do not fit with the practical life. It commands discouraging rules wisely and
punishes harshly those who do not obey. This is not due to being inconsiderate
of humans but on the contrary our religion covers the whole humanity with
everlasting mercy and affection.
According to the Islamic law, the punishment of drinking alcohol is to
inflict 40 to 80 lashes. The goal of this punishment is to discourage drinking
and making those who drink embarrassed and quit drinking. (Abu Dawud, Kitab
al-Hudud, 35/4478)
One day, a man who had drunk alcohol was brought to the Messenger of
Allah. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told people to inflict the prescribed punishment on him. A while passed and a man among the people said:
May Allah dishonor and curse you!
Upon this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
352
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Do not curse him, do not help Satan by saying things against him! (Bukhari,
Kitab Al-Hudud, 4; Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Hudud, 35, 36)
After his punishment was inflicted, in order for him to pull himself together, the Noble Companions of the Prophet set him free after giving him a
talk:
Were you not ashamed from Allah? Dont you fear from Allah? Were you
not ashamed from the Prophet? The Prophet who was like an ocean of mercy
said to his companions:
Pray for him as O my Lord, forgive him, O my Lord, show mercy and grace
on him... (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Hudud, 35/4478)
Here, we can observe the mercy of the Messenger of Allah towards his
followers. Is it not also out of his mercy that he commands us not to commit
prohibited (haram) acts?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) expresses the wisdom in prohibition of
drinking in our third hadith as:
Never drink alcohol because it is the key of all evils.
The Prophet (pbuh) said as part of his long speech at Tabuk:
Drinking brings all kinds of sins together. (Waqidi, III, 1016)
Drinking is a cause of mischief both for the individual and the society.
Drinking affects mental abilities negatively. As a matter of fact, all the beneficial deeds for this world and hereafter take place with intelligence. Without
intelligence, humans dive into unimaginable sins.
When one looks into the committed sins, he can see that they are always
performed in moments of negligence. If even negligence is so effective in getting into sinful acts, it is not difficult to imagine what kind of major sins being
drunk can cause to.
Things that cause material and spiritual intoxication such as drinking,
gambling, and games of chances are the most influential weapons of Satan, the
constant enemy of humans. Unless man stays away from them, his salvation
is not possible. Satan employs drinking and gambling to start hatred, hostility, and enmity among people and set them against each other. By withholding them from the remembrance of Allah, prayer, and worshiping, Satan turns
353
them into poor people of the hereafter. In short, Satan ruins their lives both
in this world and in the hereafter. Thus, the way to save oneself from misery
in both of the worlds passes through abandoning the sins forbidden by Allah
theAlmighty. (Al-Maidah; 5:90-91)
According to the recent report of the World Health Organization covering thirty countries including Turkey, alcohol is the underlying cause for 85%
of homicides (60-70% of them are homicides within the family), 50% of rapes,
50% of violent acts, 70% of domestic violence, 60% of unemployment, and 4050% of mental disorders.
The children of those who consume alcohol are also harmed and endangered because of this. 90% of the children of the alcoholics are born with brain
damages. The risk for an alcoholic mother to have a disabled child is a high
ratio of 35%. This risk is due to the fact that the unborn child gets affected by
the alcohol that his mother consumes. That is because alcohol prevents the
growth of the unborn child and the development after birth; it causes retardation, short stature, and behavioral disorders.
Since children of alcoholic people live in a family where always arguments
take place, the risk of seeing depression and behavioral disorders in them is
high. Thus, most of these kids become unsuccessful in their schools and social
lives.211
Traffic accidents, suicides, abetting, breaking families apart, failures in
business life and professions, and various economic losses are among the harms
that drinking usually causes. Drinking which causes a decrease in human intelligence seduces peoples thoughts and wastes their wealth. Apart from these, it
breaks families apart, corrupts generations, disarrays social dignity and status.
That is because it is the mother of all wrong doings and evils.
Uthman (r.a.) expressed with an example that drinking is the mother of
all evils as follows:
Stay away from drinking because it is the mother of all evils. Before your
time, there was a pious man who had devoted himself to worshipping. A bad
natured woman got obsessed with him. She had sent her servant to him and
made her say:
211. Musa Tosun, ki Diyanet slm Ansiklopedisi, XXI, 463.
354
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
related to it. In our fourth hadith, we are informed that Allah cursed wine, the
person who drinks it, who sells it, who buys it, who makes it, who orders it to
be made, who transports it, and who gets it. In other reports, we are told that
the place where the wine is made, those who donate it or gift it, and those who
receive its value and profit are also cursed.212
Thus, in order to seek protection from the evils of drinking, it is necessary
to close all the doors and stay away from anything that is related to it. This is the
most important duty for the happiness of both individuals and societies.
Drinking also endangers the worships of those who are cursed because of
drinking. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warned those and said:
Allah does not accept the prayers for seven days of someone who drinks
alcohol. If he dies during this period, he dies as unbeliever. If the alcohol he drinks
makes him intoxicated and detains him from performing obligatory acts, Allah
does not accept his prayers for forty days and if he dies during this period, he dies
as unbeliever. (Nasai, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 44/5667; Darimi, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 3; Ibn Majah,
Kitab Al-Ashriba, 4)
Worships have two sides. The first one is that the worshipper pays the debt
of nature by worshipping and the second one he gains divine rewards. In the
hadith above, it is meant that those who drink alcohol would not gain divine
rewards from their prayers or other worships.
Thus, a believer who believes in Allah and the Day of Judgment should
strictly stay away from drinking. One should not sit the tables of those who
drink alcohol and should not organize weddings or other celebrations that
does not fit with Islam by serving alcohol and should not attend such organizations. One should tell the reason why he is not sitting the drinking tables or
meetings without worrying to offend their owners; so that those who disobey
the rules of Allah may understand their faults. Otherwise he would be the object of Allahs curse and anger for just not to offend a sinner and this is the
biggest foolishness.
The result of disobeying Allahs commands is getting into various troubles
and losses in this world and incurring a miserable punishment in the Hereafter.
In our sixth hadith, a harsh punishment that will be given to those who drink
212. See Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 2/3674; Tirmidhi, Kitab Al-Buyu, 59/1295; Nasai, Kitab
al-Ashriba, 1-2; Ibn Majah, Kitab al-Ashriba, 6; Ahmad, I, 53; II, 351; Hakim, II, 305/3101.
356
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
alcohol is described. Those who see themselves fit to drink impure beverages
will be punished by drinking the most impure drinks in the Hereafter. That
is because punishment is given in accordance with the type of the crime. The
punishment of those who drink alcohol will be making them drink the things
that are even hard to look at such as the sweat, blood, and pus of the burned
skins of denizens of Hell.
f. Fornication and Adultery
!
.
155. Aisha (r.anha), the mother of Muslims, narrated that the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) said:
O followers of Muhammad! There is none, who has a greater sense of ghira
(jealousy) than Allah (causing His dislike and hatred), so He has forbidden that
His slave commits illegal sexual intercourse. O followers of Muhammad! 213 If you
but knew what I know, you would laugh less and weep more. (Bukhari, Nikah, 107)
:
.
213. Our Master the Prophet addressed twice as O the Ummah (followers) of Muhammad!
to make his affection and mercy towards his followers felt. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
cherished his followers and warned them insistently to save them from falling into such
wicked sins.
357
.
:
157. Abu Umana (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
Whoever sees a beautiful woman and takes his look away from her, Allah rewards him with the reward of worship that he will feel its delight from the
heart. (Ahmad, V, 264; Haythami, VIII, 63)
358
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
158. Ibn Abbas (r.anhuma) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
It is not permissible for a man to be alone with a woman, and no lady
should travel except with a mahram (i.e. her husband or a person whom she cannot marry in any case for ever; e.g. her father, brother, etc.)
Then a man got up and said:
O Apostle of Allah! I have enlisted in the army for such and such ghazwa
and my wife is proceeding for Hajj.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to him:
Go, and perform the Hajj with your wife. (Bukhari, Jihad, 140; Nikah, 111; Muslim, Hajj, 424; Ahmad, I, 222. Also see Tirmidhi, Rada, 15-17; Fitan, 7)
Explanations:
Adultery has been considered as wrong and immoral all along by human
intelligence, by moral and legal systems, and by the Abrahamic religions. And
it is one of the major sins in Islam.
Allah loves His servants a lot and does not want them to fall into this
wicked situation. As expressed in our first hadith, there is no one else angrier than Allah when someone commits adultery. As anyone does not like
and becomes sad when someone from his relatives commits adultery, Allah
the Almighty wishes even more to protect His servants from falling into wrong
deeds. He does not want His servants to become distant from Him by getting
into sins. For this reason, He strictly prohibited these acts and threatened those
who commit them and informed that they will be punished severely. Due to
His mercy, Almighty Allah informs us about the sins and their punishments in
advance in order for us to get preventive actions and do not to fall into them.
Adultery is such a wicked sin that Allah the Almighty prohibited even to
get close to it not to mention committing it.
It is commanded in the noble verses of Quran as:
359
Nor come close to adultery: for it is a shameful (deed) and an evil,
opening the road (to other evils). (Al-Isra; 17:32)
In other words, one must stay away all kinds of things that may lead to
adultery.214
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said If you but knew what I know, you
would laugh less and weep more after informing us how angry Allah the Almighty gets in case of adultery. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) meant that If
you knew the wisdom and reasons behind the commands of Allah and the
punishments in case of disobedience and the worries of the Day of Judgment,
you would laugh less and weep more thinking about these grand matters all
the time.
Allah the Almighty Who is jealous of His servants from sins wants them
to be chaste and modest. There are many noble verses of Quran pointing out
this fact.215 Preserving the chastity and modesty is listed among the most important characteristics of Muslim men and women. (Al-Muminun; 23:5, Al-Nur;
24:30-31; Al-Furqan; 25:68; (Al-Ahzab; 33:35)
214. In order to prevent sins Islam pays attention to amelioration of feelings, circumstances,
and means that may lead people to sinful acts. For this reason, first of all it takes some
measures at the primary stages such as for men and women to cover certain parts of their
bodies, to avoid suggestive acts, for stranger men and women (who are legally allowed to get
married) to avoid being alone, to prevent nastiness and suggestiveness in the society. This
is the reason why Islam criticizes suggestive words, looks, and close relations as they may
lead to adultery. Apart from these, Islam assigns families and societies with the duties of
raising and nurturing kids, not postponing the age of marriage unless it is necessary, easing
marriage process, and keeping the moral and religious values of the society alive.
As it can be understood from these, the goal of Islam is not to punish criminals but to ensure
secure and peaceful living environment for people by preventing the suitable circumstances
for crimes to take place. Islam is based on the principle of preventing sins rather than
punishing sins. For this reason, throughout the Islamic history, the punishment for
adultery has been seen rarely.
In spite of all these preventive measures taken by Islam, the punishment of those who
commit sinful acts is real justice and mercy for both the individual and the society. (AlNur; 24:2) Due to the punishment, the sinner saves himself from wasting his eternal life by
getting used to commit sinful acts and receiving even harsher punishment in the Hereafter.
The other members of the society get discouraged from sinning by learning some lessons
from the punishment of the sinner.
215. For example See An-Nisa; 4:25; Al-Maida; 5:5; Al-Anbiya; 21:91; An-Nur; 24;4, 23; AlTahrim; 66:12.
360
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh), who used to seek refuge in Allah from
his body parts gravitating towards evil and committing a sin because of them,216
gave the following good news to his followers:
Whoever can guarantee (the chastity of) what is between his two jaw-bones
and what is between his two legs (i.e. his tongue and his private parts), I guarantee Paradise for him. (Bukhari, Ar-Riqaq, 23)
The following is an exemplary one, in which the Prophet reasonably explained why one should keep his chastity to a young person who was about to
commit a sin:
Abu Umama (r.a.) narrated:
A young person came approached to the Prophet and asked:
O the Messenger of Allah! Will you give me permission for adultery?
People around him advanced on him and scorned him saying Be quiet,
be quiet!
The Prophet said:
Come closer!
The young man came closer to Prophet and sat down.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked him:
Would you like this to happen to your mother?
The young man said:
May Allah sacrifice me on your way the Messenger of Allah, I swear to
Allah I would not want this to happen to her!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Others would not like this to happen to their mothers either.
Then, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked the same question regarding
his daughter, sister, maternal aunt, and paternal aunt. The young man answered
to all:
216. Abu Dawud, Witr, 32/1551; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 74/3492. Also see Muslim, Dhikr, 72; Nasai,
Istiadha, 4, 10, 11, 28. Since it is not possible for our Prophet (pbuh) to commit sinful acts,
here his aim is to teach his followers how to say prayers.
361
On the other hand, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to take a vow of
obedience from people to stay away from adultery and the deeds that may lead
to adultery and to protect their chastity. Aisha (r.anha) narrated:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used to take a vow of obedience just in
words (not by shaking hands) and ask them to comply with the conditions
given in the following verse:
O Prophet! When believing women come to you to take the oath of allegiance to you, that they will not associate in worship any other thing whatever with Allah, that they will not steal, that they will not commit adultery
(or fornication), that they will not kill their children, that they will not utter
slander, intentionally forging falsehood, and that they will not disobey thee
in any just matter, then do you receive their allegiance, and pray to Allah for
the forgiveness (of their sins): for Allah is Oft-Forgiving, Most Merciful.
(Al-Mumtahinah; 60:12)
To the women who accept these conditions, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
used to say:
Now I took your vow. I swear to Allah, his hands never touched the hands
of a woman when taking their vows. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) only took
the vows in words as:
I took your vow based on the conditions stated in this noble verse. (Bukhari,
Tafsir al-Nabi, 60/2; Ahmad, VI, 270)217
217. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) strictly avoided shaking hands with women when taking
their vows (Bukhari, Talaq, 20) and said:
I do not shake hands with women! (Ibn Majah, Jihad, 43)
362
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
On the other hand, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) discouraged his followers from adultery by explaining its spiritual and material dangers. In one
of his noble sayings, it is expressed that adultery endangers the most valuable
blessing, namely faith:
Whoever commits adultery, faith exits him, stays on him like a cloud. When
he repents from it and quits it completely, faith returns him again. (Abu Dawud,
Kitab Al-Sunnah, 15/4690; Tirmidhi, Iman, 11/2625; Hakim, I, 72/56)
363
Thus, one must stay away from every word, act, thought, and means that
brings him closer to adultery in order to be saved from the anger of Almighty
Allah and from being afflicted with such harms. As a matter of fact, words and
acts are considered according to their consequences, the things that lead to
forbidden acts are also forbidden (haram) and the things that lead to necessary acts (wajib) are also necessary. For this reason, the acts that may lead to
adultery such as evil gazing, listening, speaking, reading, and smelling are also
forbidden. In this case, when one unintentionally sees something forbidden,
one must turn his eyes away and should not be carried away with the attraction
of the sin. Indeed, in our second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) commands that when one sets his eyes on something forbidden, he must turn away
his eyes immediately and should not look back again. Almighty Allah forgives
the unintended and sudden first seeing, but considers the second look which is
done intentionally as sin.
Jarir b. Abdullah (r.a.) reported:
I asked the Prophet about the sudden glance (that is cast) on the face (of a
stranger woman). He commanded me:
364
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
You should turn away your eyes immediately! (Muslim, Kitab Al-Adab 45. Also
see Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Nikah, 43; Tirmidhi, Adab, 28)
That is because to look (at something which is sinful to look at) is the misconduct (adultery) of the eye and it is a sin. In the same manner, the adultery
of the ear is to listen, the adultery of the tongue is to utter (what it is unlawful
to utter), the adultery of the hand is to touch, the adultery of feet are to go to
adultery, and the adultery of the heart and soul is to wish and long for (adultery). (Bukhari, Istidhan 12, Al-Qadar, 9; Muslim, Al-Qadar 20-21. Also see Abu Dawud, Kitab
Al-Nikah, 43)
365
Looking at what is forbidden is one of the poisonous arrows of demon. Whoever quits this for the sake of Allah, Allah blesses him with such a faith that he will
experience its sweetness in his heart. (Hakim, IV, 349/7875; Haythami, VIII, 63)
Eyes are the windows of the heart. When eyes look at wrong things, the
brain gets negatively influenced by it and becomes busy with sinful acts. Thus,
it causes heart to darken and to be spirituality ruined.
Thus, saving oneself from the poisonous arrows of demon by controlling
his inner soul is a great gain for a believer. In our third hadith, we are given the
good news that this will be rewarded with the reward of a worship that gives
peace to heart. In other words, Almighty Allah considers this simple act as a
worship since it is important in terms of preventing a major sin. This is one of
the manifestations of His mercy and affection towards His subjects.
In another noble hadith, the virtue of the eye that avoids looking at forbidden things is expressed as:
There are three kinds of people whose eyes will never see the Hell. The eye
that is on guard duty in the way of Allah; the eye that cries because of the fear of
Allah; and the eye that avoids looking at the forbidden. (Haythami, V, 288)
Our forth hadith puts believers under protection by prohibiting another
wrong deed that opens the door of adultery. It is to be alone with a woman who
is not a close relative and with whom there is nothing preventing a person from
getting married to her. One must strictly avoid being alone or staying with
women whose close relatives such as her husband, mother, father, son, siblings,
aunt, or milk-sibling are not with her. If there are close relatives of a man such
as his sister, daughter, aunt, or maternal aunt are with him, it is also considered
as if the stranger woman has her close relatives with her. In the same manner,
women should pay extra attention not to be alone with stranger men. That is
because as the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When a man is left in private with a stranger woman, for sure the third one
there is Satan. (Tirmidhi, Rada, 16/1171; Fitan, 7/2165; Ahmad, I, 18, 26)
When the wives of the Prophet (pbuh) needed to ask something from
strange men or needed to tell them something, they had to do this from behind a curtain or a wall. (Al-Ahzab; 33:53) Even though this was an order for the
wives of the Prophet, it can also be followed by the rest of the Muslim women
as much as possible.
366
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
One important fact that is overlooked today is this: One should not be
alone with his brothers wife (sister-in-law). The close relatives of the husband
such as the children of the siblings, uncle and the children of the uncle are the
same in terms of this rule.
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Avoid going next to women (whose intimate relatives are not with her!)
Upon this, one person from Ansar asked:
O the Messenger of Allah! What would you say about the male relatives
of the husband (al-hamwu)?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Being alone with them is like death. (Bukhari, Nikah, 111; Muslim, Salam, 20;
Tirmidhi, Rada, 16/1171)
The word al-hamwu means husbands close relatives such as his brother,
cousins, uncles, and the children of his uncles.
Since these kinds of close relatives always have the opportunity of easily visiting ones house, they face with more dangers in this respect. For this
reason, they have to be extra careful about this matter and should avoid being
alone with them. These people may have very good intentions. However, Islam
tightly closes the doors of possible dangers so that people do not get harmed
and face with troubles after all. As a matter of fact, the situations of the families
who did not pay attention to this fact and became miserable in the end are
known to all. On the other hand, it is impossible to stop the bad-mouthing of
others.
In the second part of our hadith, it is commanded for women not to travel
unless they have a close relative with them. The Prophet had sent one of his
noble companions to go to Hajj with his wife instead of going for a military expedition (jihad), and this is enough to show the importance of the principle.
g. Betrayal, being disloyal
367
: .
:
.
159. Anas bin Maliq (r.a.) narrated:
The Prophet (pbuh) used to say in most of the speeches he made to us:
One who can not be trusted has no faith, and one who does not fulfill his
promises has no religion. (Ahmad, III, 154, 135)
.
:
:
.
160. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Noble Prophet (pbuh)
said:
The signs of a hypocrite are three:
1. Whenever he speaks, he tells a lie.
2. Whenever he promises, he always breaks it (his promise).
3. If you trust him, he proves to be dishonest. (If you keep something as a
trust with him, he will not return it.) (Bukhari, Iman, 24; Muslim, Iman, 107-108. Also
see. Tirmidhi, Iman, 14/2631-2633)
:
368
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
161. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
When you are entrusted with something, return it to its owner! Do not
betray those who betrayed you! (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Buyu, 79/3535; Tirmidhi, Kitab
Al-Buyu, 38/1264)
:
:
:
:
Whoso from you is appointed by us to a position of authority and he conceals from us a needle or something smaller than that, it would be misappropriation (of public funds) and will (have to) produce it on the Day of Judgment.
Upon this, a dark-complexioned man from the Ansar stood up - I can still
visualize him - and said:
O Messenger of Allah, take back from me your assignment.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
What has happened to you?
The man answered:
I have heard you say so and so.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I say that (even) now: Whoso from you is appointed as to a position of (fiscal) authority, he should bring everything, big of small, and whatever he is given
therefrom he should take, and he should restrain himself from taking that which
is forbidden. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 30. Also see Abu Dawud, Aqdiya, 5/3581)
.
:
370
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
Since the word mumin (believer) comes from the same root of the
words amniyyah (safety) and amanat (trust), Muslims who have faith in
Allah should be the most trustworthy people on earth. Almighty Allah wants
believers to be trustworthy. As a matter of fact, amanat was one of the
most important characteristics of the prophets. Our Prophet was the symbol
of being trustworthiness and the word amin (trustworthy) became like his
second name. Thus, nothing is more natural for believers as the followers of
the Muhammad al-Amin to be trusted ones. Those who deviate from this and
be disloyal eventually lose their tie with being a believer and being a follower
of Muhammad al-Amin.
As one of the signs of hypocrisy, disloyalty means treating something entrusted in contradiction with Islam, being unjust, and not giving the feeling of
trustworthiness. As this is true in regards to the material issues, it also holds in
moral matters as well. If a person changes or abandons the commands of the
Book and the Sunnah, he becomes disloyal to the things that are entrusted him
by Allah and His Messenger.
On the other hand, since a secret given to a friend is also a thing that
should be kept safe, revealing a secret is also being disloyal.
Our Almighty Lord does not like the treacherous. (Al-Hajj; 22:38) (Al-Anfal;
8:58)
The snare of the false ones will never be successful. (Yusuf; 12:52)
Allah commands His Prophet to stay away from disloyalty and say:
so be not (used) as an advocate by those who betray their trust.
(Al-Nisa; 4:105)
Contend not on behalf of such as betray their own souls; for Allah
loves not one given to perfidy and crime. (Al-Nisa; 4:107)
Those who became disloyal would not be saved in the hereafter even if
they are the closest relatives of the Prophet.
It is said in a noble verse of the Quran:
Allah sets forth, for an example to the unbelievers, the wife of Noah
and the wife of Lot: they were (respectively) under two of our righteous
371
servants, but they were false to their (husbands), and they profited nothing
before Allah on their account, but were told: Enter you the Fire along with
(others) that enter! (Al-Tahrim; 66:10)
When the Messenger of Allah was listing the inmates of Hell, he said:
And dishonest ones whose greed cannot be concealed even in the case of
minor things.
those who betray you morning and evening, in regard to your family and
your property. (Muslim, Jannat, 63)
In order to save one self from the Hell and enter into Paradise, one must
be a believer. Faith cannot exist together with treachery. As a matter of fact, in
our first hadith, we are told that there is no faith for the one who has no trust,
and there is no religion for the one who does not fulfill his promises. Both of
these issues are related to being trustworthy. This hadith proves how great the
sin disloyalty is.
In some narrations, it is told that a believer can sometimes fall into sinful
acts but being disloyal and lying are the things that a believer never commits.
(Ahmad, V, 252; Baihaqi, Shuab, IV, 207)
The aim of this hadith is to emphasize the greatness of the sin of being
disloyal and lying. Otherwise it does not aim to open the door of other sins to
the believers. A believer should avoid all kinds of sins however disloyalty and
lying are the things that should never seen in a believer. That is because these
bad characters do not befit to a believer and do not comply with having faith.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) described a Muslim as:
Muslim is a brother to a Muslim. He would not be disloyal to him, lie to
him, and withhold his help to him. The chastity, wealth, and blood of Muslims are
forbidden (haram) to each other. (Tirmidhi, Birr, 18/1927)
It is not possible to hide anything from Almighty Allah. He knows the evil
looks of disloyal people and their bad intentions and records them as evidence
against them in their book of deeds. It is said in the noble Quran:
(Allah) knows of (the tricks) that deceive with the eyes, and all that the
hearts (of men) conceal. (Al-Mumin; 40:19)
372
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Thus, it is impossible for a person who believes in Allah and the Hereafter
to be disloyal. As a matter of fact, in our second hadith, it is told that being
disloyal is a sign of hypocrisy. The hadith continues listing the signs of hypocrisy as lying and breaking promises which are also various manifestations of
treachery. In other words, those who are not trustworthy in their words and
actions and give the impression of disloyalty eventually get away from being
a believer and get closer to hypocrisy. Even if this person performs his acts of
worship such as fasting and praying and thinks that he is a believer, the last
situation would be the case in reality. For this reason, believers should pay extra attention to being trustworthy and having a high moral character.
In another hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said that Allah the Exalted said:
I will be the enemy of three persons on the Day of Resurrection and mentioned people who dont keep promises among them. (Bukhari, Buyu, 106)
In another hadith, he gave us the scaring news of:
On the Day of Judgment, a flag will be planted for each disloyal people and
it will be announced that the flags are the signs of their disloyalty. (Bukhari, Jizya,
22; Adab, 99; Hiyal, 99; Muslim, Jihad, 11-17)
In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised us to be trustworthy (amin) people and not to react with disloyalty to those who were disloyal to us.
These two issues are so important that they are the foundations of social
order and morality.
The first article commands us to fulfill the commands of Allah and also
give other people their dues. In other words, as one pay attention to be loyal
and honest in material goods, one must also do the same in moral issues.
The trust of Almighty Allah to His subjects is composed of all of His commands and revelations as it is expressed in the following verse:
We did indeed offer the Trust to the heavens and the earth and the
mountains; but they refused to undertake it, being afraid thereof220 A
believer who fulfills these commands becomes loyal to the trust. Those who
do not obey the rules of Islam become disloyal to Allah and His Messenger. He
220. Al-Ahzab; 33:72.
373
but no one else would be the one who faces the burdens of acting this way. As
a matter of fact, On account of their arrogance in the land and their plotting of evil, but the plotting of evil will surround only the authors thereof.
(Al-Fatir; 35:43)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
375
Those who are disloyal cannot find anyone to help them in the difficult
times of the doomsday. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated the important warning of
the Prophet (pbuh) on this fact:
Once the Prophet (pbuh) got up amongst us and made a speech out misappropriation of war spoils and the state funds (ghulul). He emphasized that
such disloyalty is a great evil, declared that it was a great sin, and explained that
hence it is strictly prohibited. He said:
Dont commit ghulul for I should not like to see anyone amongst you on the
Day of Resurrection, carrying over his neck a sheep that will be bleating, or carrying over his neck a horse that will be neighing and beg:
O Allahs Apostle! Intercede with Allah for me! or I will reply:
I cant help you, for I have conveyed Allahs Message to you on earth!
Nor should I like to see a man carrying over his neck, a camel that will be
grunting and say:
O Allahs Apostle! Intercede with Allah for me! I will say to him:
I cant help you for I have conveyed Allahs Message to you on earth!
Nor should I like to see a man carrying over his neck gold and silver and
saying:
O Allahs Apostle! Intercede with Allah for me! I will say to him:
I cant help you for I have conveyed Allahs Message to you on earth!
Nor should I like to see a man one carrying clothes that will be fluttering
and saying:
O Allahs Apostle! Intercede with Allah for me! I will say to him:
I cant help you for I have conveyed Allahs Message to you on earth!
(Bukhari, Jihad, 189; Muslim, Imarat, 24)
The fact that those who are disloyal will come on doomsday with the
things that they have obtained unjustly is a strong threat and indicates that
they deserve to go to Hell.
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
On the other hand, aiding disloyal ones is also disloyalty. The Prophet
(pbuh) said:
Anyone who conceals one who has been disloyal to a trust is like him. (Abu
Dawud, Jihad, 135/2716)
As it can be understood from our forth hadith, one must not go after the
duties involving the rights of the public. However, if duty is given, one must try
to do it in the best manner. A person who accepts this kind of responsibility
does not have a right to take anything more than what is designated for him.
Also, it is not considered nice of him to accept gifts while he is in that position.
377
That is because those who give gifts to people in positions of responsibility may
be after their own benefits that are against the benefits of the society. This may
cause various disloyalties and corruptions.
The Noble Companions of the Prophet used to be extra careful about this
issue:
Abu Bakr (r.a.) appointed Muadh b. Jabal as the zakat collector. Muadh
(r.a.) returned with some stuff and said to Abu Bakr:
These are yours and there are the gifts given to me.
Umar (r.a.) said:
Deliver all of them to Abu Bakr.
Muadh (r.a.) acted slowly in returning the gifts that were given to him.
When he went to sleep, he saw a dream. He saw himself as if he was at the edge
of a huge fire. He was afraid of falling into it. At that moment, Umar (r.a.) came
and saved him by pulling from his belt.
Muadh (r.a.) went to Abu Bakr in the morning and told him about his
dream and returned all the stuff that was with him.
Abu Bakr said:
Since you are doing this, I give the gifts back to you sincerely.
Upon this Umar (r.a.) said:
Now they became permissible (halal) for you. (Ibn al-Jawzi, Manaqib, p. 261)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) praised people who are loyal to public
goods and showed that this is something to be proud of. One day, he said:
What nice tribes are the tribes of Asad and Ashari; they do not run away
from fighting and they are not disloyal to war booty. They are for my side, and I
am for their side. (Tirmidhi, Manaqib, 74/3947)
Almighty Allah is also with those who are trustworthy. In a noble hadith,
this fact is told as:
Allah, Most High, says: I make a third with two partners as long as one of
them does not cheat the other, but when he cheats him, I depart from them. (Abu
Dawud, Buyu, 26-27/3383)
378
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
There is no doubt that when Allah departs from the two partners, Satan
will immediately interfere and drag them to miserable ends.
Another issue related to being disloyal is misguiding a friend who asks for
advice. Those who misguide to the wrong path in spite of knowing the right
one would be disloyal to their friends who trusted them and asked for their
advice.
It is said in a noble hadith:
If anyone advises his brother, knowing that guidance lies in another direction, he has deceived him. (Abu Dawud, Ilm, 8/3657)
It is impossible to think of a worse betrayal than lying to a friend who trusts
and listens to he liar. That is because people can be very deceivable and incautious
to people that they think they would never lie. Thus, the damage they would get
in such situations would be much more compared to other cases.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
It is great treachery that you tell your brother something and have him
believe you when you are lying! (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Adab, 71/4971; Ahmad, IV, 183;
Bukhari, al-Adab al-mufrad, no: 393)
.
:
379
164. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that one day the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) asked:
Do you know what is backbiting?
The Noble Companions answered:
Allah and His Messenger know better.
Prophet (pbuh) said:
Backbiting is your mention of your brother in a manner which he does not like.
One of them asked:
What is your opinion about that the situation that I actually find (that
failing) in my brother which I made a mention of?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
If (that failing) is actually found (in him) what you assert, you in fact backbit him, and if that is not in him, it is a slander. (Muslim, Birr, 70; Abu Dawud, Adab,
40/4874)
:
.
:
380
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
:
!
.
:
222. Aisha (r.anha) and other mothers of Muslims were humans in spite of their many good
virtues. Thus, it is very natural for them to make mistakes from time to time. They used
to quit their mistakes as soon as they understand their mistakes. On the other hand, the
mistakes of those who lived with the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) helped some important
principles to be learned.
381
166. It is narrated from Abu Barza (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
O community of people, who believed by their tongue, and belief did not
enter their hearts, do not back-bite Muslims, and do not search for their faults,
for if anyone searches for their faults, Allah will search for his faults, and if Allah
searches for the fault of anyone, He disgraces him even in his house. (Abu Dawud,
Adab, 35/4880; Tirmidhi, Birr, 85/2032; Ibn Kathir, Tafsir, IV, 229)
: .
:
382
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
168. It is narrated from Anas b. Malik (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
When I was taken up to heavens, I passed by people who had nails made of
copper and who were scratching their faces and their breasts. I asked:
O Gabriel! Who are these people? He replied:
They are those who were given to backbiting and who aspersed peoples
honor and chastity. (Abu Dawud, Adab, 35/4878; Ahmad, III, 224)
: .
Then the Prophet asked for a green palm tree leaf and split it into two
pieces and placed one piece on each grave, saying:
I hope that their punishment may be abated as long as these pieces of the
leaf have not dried. (Bukhari, Adab, 49; Wudu, 55, 56; Janaiz, 82. Also see Muslim, Taharah,
111; Abu Dawud, Taharah, 11; Tirmidhi, Taharah, 53; Nasai, Taharah, 26; naiz, 116; Ibn Majah,
Taharah, 26)
.
:
:
.
170. Hammam b. al-Harith (r.a.) narrated:
We were sitting with Hudhaifa (r.a.) in the mosque. A man came and sat
along with us. It was said to Hudhaifa:
This was the man who carried tales to the ruler.
Hudhaifa remarked with the intention of conveying to him:
I have heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saying:
The tale-bearer will not enter Paradise. (Muslim, Iman, 170, 168, 169; Bukhari,
Adab, 50; Also see Abu Dawud, Adab, 33; Tirmidhi, Birr, 79)
Explanations:
Since Almighty Allah loves His servants a lot, especially the believers, He
protects them in every way such as their lives, wealth, and chastity. He announced backbiting as one of the major sins and prohibited it for this reason.
By prohibiting backbiting, Almighty Allah protects even the hearts of His sinful subjects from getting hurt. This shows us how valuable the heart, the sacred
place for the sight of Allah is. Even a more important reason for the prohibition
384
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Since backbiting is a sin that one can easily fall into, the preventions and
punishments are discouraging and serious. For this reason, Almighty Allah
gives one of the striking examples in the noble verse about backbiting.
Since those who are talked about are absent, they are defenseless and helpless just like the dead. When it comes to the position of those who perform the
backbiting, it is same as disloyalty since he attacks his brother from the back in
such a helpless position.
In the noble verse, by saying Would any of you like? attention is drawn
to the fact that backbiting is something as distasteful as eating the flesh of ones
dead brother, not to mention that eating live human flesh is itself impure and
of course forbidden. What a mental, spiritual, and moral corruption it is to eat
the rotten and wormy flesh of ones dead brother.
Backbiting is the name of the foolishness of transferring as ones own capital the sinful acts of those who one does not like. Sadi-i Shirazi says the following:
When a sinners goblet is full, the sins of this unfortunate person, whose
book of deeds is dark, drag him to Hell. However, another one who does not
want him to be alone there runs after him because of backbiting. (Bostan, p.
236)
Since backbiting people includes some of the worst spiritual illnesses such
as self-importance, two-facedness, envy, and belittling the subjects of Allah, it
arises the anger of Allah and causes damages to people in all directions. Sheyh
Sadi also told about this fact:
385
Those who keep quiet found salvation! (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 50/2501; Darimi,
Riqaq, 5)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
There is another issue that most people confuse, and the Prophet (pbuh)
clearly explained it as:
If (that failing) is actually found (in him) what you assert, you in fact backbit him, and if that is not in him it is a slander.
Thus, saying things such as I am telling the truth, I am saying what is
substantial or I would say the same things to his face cannot save one from
backbiting.
The definition of backbiting (ghibah) is very wide. Expressing verbally or
in writing, explaining with symbols, mimics or body language, imitating or
even implying things about someone who is not present such as his physical
structure, moral values, worships, wealth, children, relatives, his stuff, the way
he walks or talks, or about his habits in such a way that he does not like are
considered as backbiting. In other words, any word or act that is done in an
absence of a Muslim that may hurt his heart is backbiting.
A man who used to sit next to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) stood up
and left. However, he had difficulty when he was trying to stand up. After he
left, some people said:
So and so is very weak.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
You have eaten the flesh of your brother, you have backbit. (Haythami, VIII,
94)
People should talk about others in their absence in such a way that they
should be able to say the same things to their faces without hesitation and without breaking their hearts. If one abstains from the eyes looking at him and
speaks differently to others faces and from their backs, he should not forget
that Omniscient Allah is present everywhere and at all times. He should pull
himself together and abstain from Allah the Almighty at least as much as he
abstains from the looks of others.
If what one is saying about the other person is not actually found in him,
as our hadith expressed it, it is a slander and its punishment is ever greater. It
is stated in a verse:
And those who annoy believing men and women undeservedly bear
(on themselves) a calumny and a glaring sin. (Al-Ahzab; 33:58)
Since backbiting and slandering are attacking others rightful dues, asking
Allah for forgiveness is not enough for getting forgiven. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
388
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Unless those who are backbitten forgive those who backbit them, the
backbiter cannot be forgiven. (Haythami, VIII, 92)
Thus, one has to ask for forgiveness from Allah first by asking forgiveness from the person whom he backbit. Then, one has to pay expiation for the
backbiting done and Mujahid, one of the scholars of Tabiin, expressed this fact
saying:
The expiation of eating the flesh of your brother is to praise him and pray
good things for him.
On the other hand, it is not backbiting to talk about the faults of mischievous people who go beyond the limits of modesty and commit sins openly,
oppressor administrators, and those who want to corrupt religion by mixing
some innovations. Also, it is not backbiting to give directly relevant information about others to those who needs this information for reasons such as affinity, partnership, vicinity, conducting business, or entrusting something. That
is because when the relevant information is not given in such cases, the other
party would be harmed.
However, one must not fall into the traps of the carnal self on these matters. As a matter of fact, the carnal self always runs after some excuses that may
make him look right.
In our second hadith, we are informed that backbiting by even one word
is enough to pollute a sea. In the rest of the hadith, we are informed that the
sin of talking about someone in a manner that he would not like it cannot be
compensated.
Since the Prophet (pbuh) interrupted Aisha (r.anha), the Mother of Believers, we understand that as a believer we should not only avoid backbiting, but also should prevent others to commit this sin. One must not listen to
backbiting that is being done in his presence and should interfere as much as
he can.
It is said in a Noble verse that:
And when they hear vain talk, they turn away therefrom and say: To
us our deeds, and to you yours; peace be to you: we seek not the ignorant.
(Qasas; 28:55, Al-Muminun; 23:3)
389
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In our forth hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) talked to the believers
about the offensive odor of backbiting. According to some noble hadith, there
are very bad smells, tastes, and shapes of sins.223 If people could feel them, they
would never come close to sinful acts. However, for the purpose of the test of
Allah, these bad smells, tastes, and shapes are hidden from people. The Prophet
(pbuh) informed us about them. Thus, what falls upon Muslims is fully trust
the words of the Messenger of Allah and stay away from sinful acts.
Some people replied as follows to the question of Why dont we smell the
offensive odor of backbiting today?
In the Era of Happiness people used to pay extra attention to stay away
from backbiting. If someone backbit from time to time, an offensive odor used
to be felt. Since the sin of backbiting is being committed all the time in todays
world, our senses got used this offensive odor, and so we do not feel it anymore.
In our fifth hadith, the punishment of backbiting in the hereafter is symbolically explained for us to realize better.
The act of scratching ones face and breast is a sign of extreme regret and
sorrow due to a major trouble that he knowingly got himself into. In other
words, those who backbite harm no one else but themselves, and prepare their
own punishments. Thus, the punishment that they will be given in the Hereafter is shown as scratching their faces and their breasts with copper nails.
On the other hand, when the backbiting is heard by the brother who was
backbiten, it brings shame on the backbiter and makes him blush by dishonoring him in the society. Thus, as backbiting does not befit Islam, it does not befit
chivalry either.
Sadi-i Shirazi expressed this saying:
One day, someone said:
Robbery is better than backbiting!..
I thought that he made this analogy as a joke. I asked him:
223. See Bukhari, Tabir, 48; Abu Dawud, Adab, 35/4875; Tirmidhi, Birr, 46/1972; Qiyamat,
51/2502; Ahmad, III, 351; VI, 189; Haythami, II, 322, 324.
391
You talked nonsense my friend. I think what you have said is weird. What
good have you seen in robbery that you prefer it over backbiting?
He replied:
Those who commit robbery are brave people. When they see a caravan,
they attack it with fury and they fight, struggle, and capture the caravan. They
win and get their booty. They fill their pockets by earning money and stuff and
live a prosperous life at least in this world. However, what shapeless, monkeylike, and sneaky backbiters do is to darken their book of deeds with backbiting
and do not gain anything in return. (Bostan, p. 235)
The goal in this talk is not to belittle robbery but to explain the magnitude
of wickedness and harms of backbiting in a sarcastic way.
Thus, when the backbiters realize that they did not gain anything in neither this world nor the hereafter, and see the punishment that they will receive,
they will punish themselves with extreme remorse.
Another important matter about backbiting is that the person who became the subject of the backbiting should show the virtuousness of forgiving
the backbiter. When the person who became the subject of backbiting forgives
the backbiter, he will receive great divine rewards in the hereafter for being
virtuous.
Encouraging this, one day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Cant anyone of you be like Abu Damdam?
The Companions asked:
Who is Abu Damdam?
Our Noble Prophet replied:
He was a member of a clan before your time. He used to say I forgive those
who abuse or backbite me. (Abu Dawud, Adab, 36/4887)
This is certainly the manifestation of the principle of Tolerating the creatures due to the love for their Creator. In other words, mature believers who
love Allah can forgive His subjects easily for the sake of Allah.
One of the magnanimous examples of virtue in this respect is Ulba b. Zaid
(r.a.), a poor companion of the Prophet. When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
392
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
called the help of Muslims in Tabuk Military Expedition, Ulba woke up for
the night prayer and prayed and begged Allah. The next morning, he took the
single piece of stuff that he owned and went to the Prophet. In a great spirit, he
showed an example of virtue and altruism and said:
O the Messenger of Allah! There is nothing that I can give as a sadaqah
(alm). I donate this one piece of stuff that I have. I also forgive those who make
me sad or talk behind me or make fun of me due to this! (Ibn Hajar, el-Isaba, II,
500; Ibn Kathir, es-Sire, IV, 9; Waqidi, III, 994)
There are also people who make self-sacrifice to protect their neighbors
from the sin of backbiting. One pious man said:
I know people who do not put on new clothes thinking that his neighbors
may get jealous and commit the sin of backbiting!
In our sixth hadith, a major sin is mentioned that is similar to backbiting but worse than that. That sin is to cause mischief and disorder by being a
talebearer between people. This sin which is also known in popular language as
to make mischief or to disunite differs from backbiting since the intention
is to destroy the friendship between two people.
The talebearers are called nammam and kattat in the hadith. Both of
these words almost mean the same thing but with a nuance. In this case, nammam refers to those who tell the things that are spoken in an assembly that he
was present as well. Kattat on the other hand refers to those who listen to others secretly and then tell what is being told to others.
As can be understood from the hadith, people take this wicked sin lightly
and consider it unimportant. However, since being a talebearer causes mischief
and disorder, it is a major sin. That is because it is told in the Nobel Quran that
causing mischief and disorder is worse than killing someone.224 For this reason,
being a talebearer leads to severe punishment in the Hereafter and causes one
to go to Hell. 225
224. Al-Baqarah; 2:191, 217.
225. In the sixth hadith, apart from tale-bearing, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also talked about
not saving oneself from (being soiled with) the urine. Some people urinate standing up and
not pay attention to their hygiene, and take this issue lightly. Especially, in todays restrooms
where the base is covered with concrete or porcelain, the urine splashes on them. As a
matter of fact, this filth does not befit a Muslim who appears before his Lord five times a day
and who is the symbol of purity. A Muslim should respond to either call of the nature nicely
and in a sitting position and then should clean himself without getting a drop of filth to his
393
As a matter of fact, in our seventh hadith, we are informed that talebearers will not enter into Paradise.
As it can be understood from the hadith, those who commit the sin of
talebearing among the Muslims will not go to Paradise at first. If they are forgiven, they will first go to Hell and receive punishment for their sins and then
will enter the Paradise. That is because sinner Muslims will not be deprived of
Paradise forever as the disbelievers will be.
On the other hand, those who inform the administrators about what the
general public is saying with the intention of causing disorder are also included
in the definition of tale bearing.
i. Oppression
.
.
171. Abu Dhar (r.a.) reported Allahs Messenger (pbuh) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said:
My servants! I have made oppression unlawful for Me and unlawful for
you, so do not commit oppression against one another!... (Muslim, Birr, 55)
cloths. Otherwise, when ones clothes get filthy, one endangers the validity of his worships.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following in order to discourage from this:
The majority of the suffering in grave will be the result of not avoiding impurity properly. (Ibn
Majah, Taharat, 26)
The fact that the Prophet (pbuh) placed a green palm tree leaf on a grave and hoped for their
punishment to be abated is a sign of his profound mercy and affection for his followers. By
doing this, our Master the Prophet also encouraged us to plant and keep the grave yards
green.
394
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
.(
172. Abu Musa (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah gives respite to the oppressor, but when He takes him over, He never
releases him.
Then he recited the following verse:
Such is the seizure of your Lord when He seizes (population of) towns
in the midst of their wrong: Painful indeed, and severe is His seizure! (AlHud; 11:102) (Bukhari, Tafsir, 11/5; Muslim, Birr, 61. Also see Tirmidhi Tafsir, 11; Ibn Majah,
Fitan, 22)
.
:
173. Jabir (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Be on your guard against committing oppression, for oppression is darkness on the Day of Resurrection, and be on your guard against miserliness for
miserliness destroyed those who were before you, as it incited them to shed blood
395
and make lawful what was unlawful for them. (Muslim, Birr, 56; Bukhari, al-Adab almufrad, no: 483. Also see Ahmad, II, 92, 136; Hakim, I, 55/26)
!
:
.
:
175. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
396
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The claimants would get their claims on the Day of Resurrection so much so
that the hornless sheep would get its (eye-to-eye kind of) claim from the horned
sheep. (Muslim, Birr, 60. Also see Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 2/2420; Ahmad, II, 235, 302, 372, 411)
Explanations:
Oppression is the opposite of justice and it means not doing something as
it is supposed to be done and not paying its right due. Oppression also refers
to acting unjustly, or disposing of others rights unjustly and exceeding ones
boundaries.
In many of the noble verses of the Quran, Almighty Allah called those
who do not believe in Him, who do not acknowledge His messengers, who do
not abide by the Quran and do not obey its commands and commit sins oppressors. (See Al-Baqarah; 2:229, 254; Al-Maidah; 5:45; Al-Furqan; 25:8)
Every unjust conduct is a kind of oppression. Seizing others wealth or attacking their honor and chastity are also oppression. Getting the rights of others by false oaths or with any other method that is forbidden is also oppression.
Committing sins or hostility is oppression. Disputing in order to make oneself
look right and others wrong or trying to belittle others are oppression. Blocking the streets by sitting or placing objects and making it difficult for others to
pass is definitely oppression. It is oppression for the rich to postpone paying off
their debt.226 Not taking lessons from experiences is also a kind of oppression.
Causing or facilitating oppression is also oppression.
In our first hadith, we are told that oppression is prohibited (haram) by
Almighty Allah.
Allah the Exalted informs us that He is exempt and away from oppression.
As a matter of fact, He is Just and al-Adl (The just one) is one of His divine
attribues. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 82/3507)
In other words, He is the source of justice and all of His works are based
on full justice.
Since Almighty Lord does not like and approve oppression, He informed
us that He will never be unjust or oppress His subjects. It is said in the Nobel
Quran:
226. Bukhari, Hawalah, 1, 2; Istiqraz, 12; Muslim, Musaqat, 33; Abu Dawud, Buyu, 10; Tirmidhi,
Buyu, 68; Nasai, Buyu, 100, 101; Ibn Majah, Sadaqat, 8.
397
Say: Short is the enjoyment of this world: the Hereafter is the best for
those who do right: Never will you be dealt with unjustly in the very least!
(An-Nisa; 4:77)
But how (will they fare) when we gather them together against a day
about which there is no doubt, and each soul will be paid out just what it has
earned, without (favor or) injustice? (Al-i Imran; 3:25)
This is because of the (unrighteous deeds) which your hands sent on
before you: For Allah never harms those who serve Him. (Al-i Imran; 3:182)
(Al-Hajj; 22:10) (Al-Anfal; 8:51)
If a Muslim becomes just and acts justly in everything, he gains the love of
Almighty Allah. (Al-Hujurat; 49:9)
On the other hand, one must not be deceived by seeing the oppressors in
comfort in this world for a short period of time. As a matter of fact, Allah gives
them some time to repent, to ask for forgiveness, and to quit being cruel. As
expressed in our second hadith, Allah will severely seize them at the end of
this period if they do not start behaving wiser. Then, it is not possible for them
to run away. That is because the seizure of our Almighty Lord is very painful
and severe.
398
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Think not that Allah does not heed the deeds of those who do wrong!
He but gives them respite against a Day when the eyes will fixedly stare in
horror. (Ibrahim; 14:42)
Oppression cannot go forever; it ends with misery. No matter who does
the oppression, he will receive its punishment. While it is not even a matter
of discussion about prophets to be oppressors, even they would have received
their punishments if they had oppressed. The following incident, which expresses this fact and shows how the Prophet used to avoid oppression, is so
exemplary:
Suhail b. Amr was the speaker of the people of Quraish. In a time period
when literature was at its peak and when people would start or end wars depending on speeches of their speakers, Suhail spoke out against Islam in every
chance he got and provoked people. This person was taken as a prisoner in the
Battle of Badr.
Umar (r.a.) said:
O Messenger of Allah! Let me pull Suhails front teeth off so that his
tongue will roll out! Thus he will not be able to speak against you and Islam
anytime and anywhere from now on!
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
399
O Umar! Leave him alone. I cannot cause this kind of harm to his body
parts. If I did, even if I am a Prophet, Allah would punish me with the same thing.
Dont hasten for there would come a time when he would give a speech in a place
where you would admire him and be happy. (Ibn Hisham, II, 293)227
Lets say, even if a prophet would receive a punishment for oppression, it is
impossible to understand in what people trust when they are found in oppression! As a matter of fact, our Almighty Lord clearly says:
Certain it is that the wrong-doers will not prosper. (Qasas; 28:37)
The end of cruel people is misery. History is like a graveyard of people and
societies who were ruined due to their oppressions. As a matter of fact, most of
such peoples sad end is told in the Noble Quran for us to take a lesson.
Almighty Allah says:
will any be destroyed except those who do wrong? (Al-Anam; 6:47)
The Prophet informs us that oppression will definitely be punished by saying:
There is no sin more fitted to have punishment meted out by Allah to its
perpetrator in advance in this world along with what He stores up for him in the
227. When the time came, Suhail (r.a.) made that admirable speech that our Master the Prophet
miraculously foresaw. Upon the passing of our Master the Pride of the Universe, at a time
when conversion out of Islam were being seen in some localities, Mecca was in turmoil and
its young governor Attab b. Asid was scared and hiding, Suhayl (ra) stood up beside the
Kabah and gave a speech and said:
Whoever accepted Muhammad (pbuh) as his deity should know that he passed away.
Allah, on the other hand, is al-Hayy (The Living) and never passes away. O the community
of Quraish! You have been the last of those embracing Islam, at least dont be the first of
apostates. I swear to God I know well that this religion will stay standing up so long as the
rise and setting of the moon continues. Dont let this person who is one of you deceive you.
For sure, he also knows what I know in this matter, but his jealousy towards the Sons of
Hashim hardens his heart.
O People! I am the wealthiest of the people of Quraish. You should respect your ruler!
Pay your zakat to him. If Islam does not prevail until the end, I guarantee to pay back the
mandatory alms you have paid. And could not handle himself and started crying.
When Suhayl finished his speech, people had calmed down.
When Umar (r.a.) heard this speech that Suhail gave, he recalled the words of our Master
the Messenger of Allah, his eyes got wet and said: Once again, I testify that you are the
Messenger of Allah, O Messenger of Allah! (Ibn Hisham, IV, 346; Waqidi, I, 107; Balazuri,
I, 303-304; Ibn Abd al-Barr, II, 669-671; Hakim, III, 318/5228)
400
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
next world than oppression and severing ties of relationship. (Abu Dawud, Adab,
43/4902; Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 57; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 23)
The real sad ends of the oppressors will be in the afterlife. The noble verse
informs us that oppressors will be left in Hell:
But We shall save those who guarded against evil, and We shall leave
the wrong-doers therein, (humbled) to their knees. (Maryam; 19:72)
Thus, one must immediately quit being an oppressor and ask for forgiveness from the oppressed ones. There is no other way for salvation. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warns his followers before the Day of Judgment when
justice will be complete and says:
Whoever has oppressed another person concerning his reputation or chastity or wealth, he should beg him to forgive him before the Day of Resurrection
when there will be no money (to compensate for wrong deeds), but if he has good
deeds, those good deeds will be taken from him according to his oppression which
he has done, and if he has no good deeds, the sins of the oppressed person will be
loaded on him. (Bukhari, Mazalim, 10; Riqaq, 48)
Indeed, this is a real failure. It means that the eternal darkness has begun
for those in this situation. As a matter of fact, in our third hadith, we are told
that oppression will be darkness upon darkness on the oppressor in the Day of
Judgment. That is because oppressors had darkened the lives of those that they
oppressed and made their lives miserable. The oppressors did not know that
they were darkening their own lives by acting in such a way! They are indeed
in such a wrong way!
As a matter of fact, Almighty Allah has warned them in this world but
they didnt get the advice. While the following verses of the Quran were being
recited, they did not want to listen:
it is not Allah that hath wronged them, but they wrong themselves.
(Al-i Imran; 3:117)
That day;
but the wrong-doers have no helpers. (Al-Baqarah; 2:270, Al-Hajj; 22:71)
In the second part of our hadith, stinginess is also prohibited. That is because being stingy and miserly is among the causes of oppression. Oppression
and being stingy are among the primary causes of major sins such as killing
someone, regarding the things that Allah forbids as permissible, and deviation
from the religion.
Our forth hadith tells us the afterlife punishment for an oppression related to a land issue. Just like in the case of other kinds of oppressions, the
punishment of getting someones land by force is also severe and harsh.
The size of the land seized by force is not important. Even if it is as small as
a hand span, it is enough to regard that person as an oppressor and cause him
to get severe punishment. Even if it seems like the size of a hand span, there
are seven layers under that land. Our hadith draws the best example to express
what oppression is. A negligible oppression in the eyes of an oppressor could
actually be very important and may cause a deep harm. As oppression causes
people to be in deep sorrow in this world and drags them to utter darkness in
the hereafter.
Being unjust about the land issues is a common type of oppression. Many
lives are taken and families are shattered because of a small piece of land. For
this reason the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) drew our attention to this fact and
stated that its punishment will be severe.
In our fifth hadith, we are told that none of the acts of oppression will be
unreciprocated no matter how small they are, and all the rights will be returned
to their rightful owners. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave an example for us
to understand this fact well by saying that even the hornless sheep would get its
claim from the horned sheep which hit it.
Even the animals that are not liable from their actions would pay for their
unjust acts, one should think about how just and fair the treatment of humans
who are liable for all of their acts will be.
These noble sayings of the Prophet (pbuh) which warn the oppressors also
provide consolation for the oppressed. While being patient in despair in this
world, they seek refuge in Allah and wait for the day that scales of justice will
be set. The following event is a good example of this:
402
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Our ancestors pointed probably out this fact when they said If the oppressor has his oppression, the oppressed has his Allah.
In short, the oppressor is actually in a pitiful situation as opposed to how
he may seem in this world. It is due to human dignity to help them. The best
way to help them is to stop their oppression.
One day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Help your brother, whether he is an oppressor or he is an oppressed one!
Someone asked:
O Messenger of Allah! It is all right to help him if he is the oppressed, but
how should we help him if he is the oppressor?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
By preventing him from oppressing others. For sure this is being helpful to
him. (Bukhari, Mazalim, 4; Iqrah, 6. Also see Tirmidhi, Fitan, 68)
403
.
:
:
:
.
176. Abu Dhar (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There are three types of (persons) with whom Allah would neither speak
on the Day of Resurrection, nor would look at them nor would absolve them and
there is a painful chastisement for them.
The narrator said:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) repeated this sentence three times. Then
Abu Dharr (r.a.) asked:
Then, they completely failed and lost; who are these persons, O Messenger of Allah?
The Noble Prophet (pbuh) answered:
They are the dragger of lower garment, the bestower of gift who does not
give anything but by laying obligation on him, and the seller of goods by taking
false oath. (Muslim, Iman, 171. Also see Abu Dawud, Libas, 25/4087; Tirmidhi, Buyu, 5/1211;
Nasai, Zakat, 69; Buyu, 5; Zinet, 103; Ibn Majah, Ticarat, 30)
404
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
177. Salama b. Aqwa (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
A person who keeps being arrogant finally gets listed among the oppressors
and tyrants. Thus the punishment of those would be given to him as well. (Tirmidhi, Birr, 61/2000)
178. It is narrated from Haritha b. Wahb al-Khuzai (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Shall I inform you about the people of Paradise? They comprise every obscure unimportant humble person, and if he takes Allahs Oath that he will do
that thing, Allah will fulfill his oath (by doing that).
Shall I inform you about the people of the Fire? They comprise every cruel,
violent, proud and conceited person. (Bukhari, Adab, 61; Ayman, 9; Tafsir, 68/1; Muslim,
Janna, 47. Also see Tirmidhi, Jahannam, 13; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 4)
405
.
:
179. It was narrated from Amr ibn Shuayb via his father and grandfather
that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said:
On the Day of Resurrection, the arrogant will be resurrected in the form of
men with the size of small red ants. Humiliation will overwhelm them from all
sides. They will be driven to a prison in Hell called Bawlas, with the hottest fire
rising over them, and they will be given to drink of the juice of the inhabitants of
Hell, which is blood, pus, and other discharges which are called tinat al-khabaal.
(Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 47/2492; Ahmad, II, 179; Bukhari, al-Adab al-mufrad, no: 557)
Explanations:
There are certain major sins that on the Day of Judgment, Almighty Allah
will not speak to those who commit them, neither look at their faces, nor will
acquit them.
Indeed, the unfortunate who fell into this situation are, just like Abu Dhar
explained, in complete loss and disappointment and had been severely punished. As a result, such people receive the anger of Allah and the severe punishment in Hell.
That Almighty Allah will not speak to a person means that He will not
favor that person and will not receive and be pleased with that person as His
righteous subjects, and He will not tell him things that will benefit or please
that person.
Almighty Allahs not looking at someone and not facing him means that
He will not treat them with His favor and mercy.
406
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Also, Almighty Allahs not acquitting someone means that He will not
purify that person from the dirt of the sins and evil that will lead him to be
punished.
Losers who will be punished so severely are the ones who are arrogant
bestowers of gift who do not give anything but by laying obligation on others,
and who try to sell commercial goods at a good price by taking false oaths.
Arrogance is one of major sins that Allah fully disliked and strictly prohibited. Almighty Allah commands as follows:
And swell not your cheek (for pride) at men, nor walk in insolence
through the earth; for Allah loves not any arrogant boaster. (Luqman; 31:18)
Nor walk on the earth with insolence! (Al-Isra; 17:37)
Greatness is an attribute that is unique to Allah. Arrogance of a person is
trying to see in himself a characteristic that belongs only to Allah, and as such,
it is extremely wrong and shows that the person does not know his limits. Indeed, the following characteristics of humans, which are so obvious that they
cannot be denied, keep presenting human imperfections: incapability, weakness, erring, forgetfulness, ignorance, oppression and cruelty, hurrying, miserliness, selfishness, and ingratitude There is nothing that humans can be
proud of per the phases of creation and the way their lives end. So, arrogance is
not a behavior that befits them.
If Allah the Exalted gives some material and spiritual bounties to someone,
that person should not fall into pride and arrogance but should rather thank
Almighty Allah. Indeed, humbleness and gratitude are what befit to being a
creation and subject of Allah. A servants scorn and contempt of persons that
were subjected to less blessings than he had would be disrespectful towards
Almighty Allah before anything else.
Arrogance is one of the biggest calamities of the carnal self. A person who
is caught by arrogance and fell in love with fame would commit many cruelties and oppression but would not even become aware of these. As a result, he
lowers himself and falls into embarrassing situations and becomes one of the
oppressors. Indeed, in the second noble hadith it is said that:
A person who keeps being arrogant finally gets listed among the oppressors
and tyrants.
407
As a matter of fact, since Qarun trusted and boasted about his fortune
whose keys could be carried only by a group of very strong people, and performed various wrong and mischievous deeds, Allah caused the earth to swallow him up and his fortune. (Qasas; 28:79-82)
Arrogance originates from ignorance and true scholars are never conceited. In fact, arrogant people can neither receive knowledge228 nor can serve any
good.
Almighty Allah says:
Those who behave arrogantly on the earth in defiance of right - them
will I turn away from My signs. (Al-Araf; 7:146)
Mawlana Jalaladdin Rumi says
Would a stone turn green in spring? Be humble like the soil so that colorful roses and flowers grow up from you!
Arrogance and being conceited not only become apparent in ones feelings
and thoughts but also in his attitudes, behaviors, and dresses. If it is done with
such intention, wearing a long dress that its skirt touches the ground can be a
manifestation of arrogance.
228. Bukhari, al-Ilm, 50.
408
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
However, there is no harm in wearing nice dresses and shoes without falling into the feeling of arrogance. If wearing beautiful dresses cause one to be
arrogant or conceited, then they become harmful. A person should wear nice
dresses not to be arrogant, or make everyone feel that he is different, or to
swagger but rather to make sure that bounties given by Allah are shown on him
and to than thank His blessings. When someone wears a nice and new dress, he
should praise the Lord per our Masters advice and donate the extra clothes to
the needy. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 107/3560)
Muslim scholars say that the way to dress in compliance with the traditions of the Prophet (pbuh) is to wear the dress down to ones legs, and they
also find it acceptable if it stretches down to heels. However, even if there is
no thought of arrogance, they find it reproachable (makruh) if the clothes fall
below the heels because that would be against the prohibition of the Messenger
of Allah.
Our third hadith informs us that the conceited people will go to Hell. This
is because arrogance causes many bad attributes and evil acts. Then the end of
this road is undoubtedly Hell. For this reason in order to discourage from arrogance the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
He who has in his heart the weight of a mustard seed of pride shall not enter
Paradise. (Muslim, Iman, 147-149; Tirmidhi, Birr, 61/1998)
Also, in another the Messenger of Allah informed us that Hell boasts to
Paradise by saying:
The haughty and the proud would find abode in me. (Muslim, Jannah, 34;
Bukhari, Tafsir, 50/1; Tawhid, 25; Tirmidhi, Jannah, 22)
This is because the bounties of the land of the Hereafter are favored upon
those who conduct their servanthood in humility not those who are conceited.
Almighty Allah commands as follows:
409
That home of the Hereafter We shall give to those who intend not
high- handedness or mischief on earth: and the end is (best) for the righteous. (Qasas; 28:83)
In our fourth hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) describes the state of
the conceited people in the Hereafter. Since they unjustly boasted in the world,
the arrogant people will receive a fitting recompense229 in the Hereafter. Just
as it is necessary to bend it in the reverse direction to straighten a curved stick,
in order to purify the arrogant people from this evil characteristic, it is necessary to humiliate and lower them. So, the arrogant people in the world will be
as small as ants in the Hereafter even though they look like humans in form
and stature. They will be turned into extremely servile and contemptible beings, and since Allah did not value them at all, people will step over them and
move on and will continue to crush them until the rights of all of the people of
the Day of Judgment are accounted for. (Haythami, X, 334)
The fire that surrounds them at last, the mother of all fires, is so hot that
it burns other fires just like normal fire burns wood. When explaining this fire,
the commentators point out the following noble verse:
Who will enter the Great Fire, in which they will then neither die nor
live. (Al-Ala; 87:12-13)
Some scholars say that the rhetoric in these sayings of the Prophet (pbuh)
is figurative.
One of the greater sins is to taunt someone by reminding a favor done to
him. On the Day of Judgment, the people who will be second in loss only to
oppressors are the people who taunt others by reminding the favors that they
did and burdening people with indebtedness. The person to whom a favor is
granted is already squashed in his heart. n addition to this, taunting him by
reminding the favor is the worst spiritual torment that he can be subjected
to. So, being in such behavior is one of the great sins that Allah the Almighty
would never be content with.
On the other hand, the ugliness of taunting someone by reminding a previously done favor is so obvious that it does not require an explanation and it
is accepted by everyone.
229. An-Naba; 78/26.
410
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Of course, these expressions are to discourage from such sins. If the arrogant person or those who taunt people for whom they did favors by reminding
them die upon faith, then they will first go to hell and will return to paradise
upon completing their punishment unless they are forgiven.
The third group of people informed in our third hadith that will face grave
loss and disappointment are the ones who show a higher cost or quality by taking oath in order to be able to sell merchandise that they posses in return for
a higher price than it is worth. We had previously covered this topic in detail
under the title Lies and False Oaths.
Taking false oaths is always prohibited not just when selling merchandise. However, people are more likely to lie in commercial transactions. On
the other hand, trading relationships is the first among the areas where rights
of other slaves of Allah are at issue. This is because all people have to trade in
order to survive.
411
.
:
:
:
180. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Avoid the seven great destructive sins!
The Companions asked:
O Allahs Apostle! What are they?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered:
To join others in worship along with Allah, to practice sorcery, to kill the
life which Allah has forbidden except for a just cause, (according to Islamic law),
to eat up riba (usury), to eat up an orphans wealth, to give back to the enemy
and fleeing from the battlefield at the time of fighting, and to accuse, chaste women, who never even think of anything touching chastity and are good believers.
(Bukhari, Kitab Al-Wasiyya, 23; Tibb, 48; Hudud, 44; Muslim, Iman, 145. Also see. Abu Dawud,
Kitab Al-Wasiyya, 10/2874; Nasai, Kitab Al-Wasiyya, 12)
:
412
.
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
181. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Whoever binds something and blows to it will have practiced sorcery. Whoever practices sorcery falls into polytheism. Who wears something on his neck
(things from the traditions of the Era of Ignorance like an animals nail, an amulet) will be referred to that thing (will be deprived of Allahs help). (Nasai, Tahrim
al-Dam, 19/4076)
: : .
:
.
414
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Explanations:
In our first hadith, were informed that the major sins are destructive and
seven of these are counted. We had covered the topic of polytheism before. Sorcery, which comes next, is also among the major sins. Our covering of magic
and sorcery here is not because it is lighter compared to the earlier topics. This
is because it is counted among the other sins that we cover it here. Actually,
enumerating major sins completely is quite difficult. When we look at the narrations we see that each one is worse and more harmful than the other. The best
way is to keep away from all knowing that each of them will destroy humans.
The lexical meaning of the term sihr (magic) is something that is covered
and secret. The terminological meaning is to turn something from its true nature to something else. In traditional context, magic is understood as an influence, directing, deceiving, or making one fall into certain negative conclusions
without sufficient evidence. In this sense, things like illusion and deception
which are secret and causing untrue images are magic.
The majority of Muslim scholars accepted the existence and impact of
magic. The 102th verse of Chapter Al Baqarah shows this.
Since it causes great harm to people in their absence and at unexpected
instances by influencing them, magic is an extremely sinful act and its punishment is severe. Only people who are not afraid of God and whose faith are
weak engage with it.
In the noble worse, instead of saying Soloman never conducted magic
it is said that the blasphemers were, not Solomon, but the evil ones.230 This
expression equates magic to blasphemy, which is sufficient to show the evilness
and ugliness or magic and sorcery. Harut and Maruts warning of We are only
for trial; so do not blaspheme (by conducting magic) also shows that magic is
among the main reasons that lead one to blasphemy and unbelief. (Al-Baqarah;
2:102-103)
This is because in magic lies the claim to perform acts beyond Allahs control and power. On the other hand, since the thought of selfishness belies under
magic and sorcery, the people who engage in these do not acknowledge religion or sacred.
230. Al-Baqarah; 2:102-103
415
In the Noble Quran, Allah declared His prophets and the revelations that
we revealed to them were the truth and have nothing to do with sorcery or sorcerers, mentioned the opposition and slanders of sorcerers against the prophets
and informed us that they are liars and deceitful people who will never achieve
salvation. (Al-Araf; 7:116; Al-Taha; 20:69 (Yunus; 10:76-77) (Al-Zariyat; 51:52) (Al-Zukhruf;
43:30)
In our second hadith, it is told that acts such as tying a knot and blowing
on the knot that carry the meaning of magic have been prohibited and that
sorcery is a sin close to associating partners with God.
One of the usual acts of sorcerers is to take a piece of string and tie a knot
and blow to the knot by uttering some magical words. Whoever does such a
thing would commit a work of the people of sorcery. This act is among those
of the people of idolatry. It leads the person to idolatry step by step. At the very
least, it causes hidden idolatry since one leaves trusting in Allah and destiny
(after doing the best one can), i.e., tawaqqul, and relies on sorcery.231
Based on this and other similar rulings, Muslim scholars have put forth
miscellaneous opinions on learning and practicing sorcery. According to Abu
Hanifa, Imam Malik, and Ahmad ibn Hanbal learning and practicing sorcery
is unbelief. According to some of the authorities of the Hanafi school, sorcery
can be learned to be protected from its evil and this is not considered as disbelief. However, it leads to unbelief to believe that practicing sorcery is allowed or
that it provides benefits. The Islamic punishment of those who perform magic
and sorcery is explained in detail in our books of Islamic jurisprudence. (See
Hamdi Yazr, Hak Dini Kurn Dili, I, 441-451; Kmil Miras, Tecrd Tercmesi, VIII, 224-235)
Muslim Scholars have expressed that magicians and sorcerers can hurt no one
except by the Will of Allah and that it is prohibited for Muslims to engage with
sorcery or have someone perform sorcery. It is not right for people who have
been subjected to sorcery to apply in order to be free of its influence to insincere people who have assumed this a profession. Before all, it is necessary to
seek refuge in Allah, worship and pray, and donate to poor. If a trustworthy,
231. In our second hadith, it is also forbidden to wear on the neck things like musqa (written
supplications), evil eye deterrent (nazar), animal nail, or bone hoping that it can be
benefitial or protect from harm. Allah deprives people who do such things from His mercy
by referring them to those things that they trusted. Hanging expressions from the Quran
and holy names to show respect to them is considered an exception from this ruling, But
again, it is not considered right to believe that these will bring benefits and deter harm. This
is because it is only Allah the Almighty who provides cure and deters evil.
416
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
417
and drinks of the orphans, companions would not touch them, and they would
keep them until the orphan ate them or they would spoil.
This placed a heavy burden on them. They brought the matter to the attention of the Prophet (pbuh). Upon this, the Almighty and Exalted Allah revealed the following noble verse:
They ask you concerning orphans. Say: The best thing to do is what
is for their good; if you mix their affairs with yours, they are your brethren;
but Allah knows the man who means mischief from the man who means
good. And if Allah had wished, He could have put you into difficulties: He
is indeed Exalted in Power, Wise. (Al-Baqarah; 2:220)
After the revelation of this verse, the noble companions mixed the food
and drinks of the orphans with theirs. (Abu Dawud, Wasaya, 7/2871; Nasai, Wasaya,
11)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
is one of the destructive great sins. The slander against chaste Muslim men has
the same ruling. The people who violate this prohibition are extremely wicked
transgressors. For this reason they are flogged with eighty stripes in this world.
(Al-Nur; 24:4)
On the other hand, Almighty Allah states the spiritual punishment in the
Hereafter as follows:
Those who slander chaste women, indiscreet but believing, are cursed
in this life and in the Hereafter: for them is a grievous penalty, On the Day
when their tongues, their hands, and their feet will bear witness against
them as to their actions. (Al-Nur; 24:23-24)
There are other great sins than the ones that we hitherto counted. For this
reason, it is not right to limit the great sins with a certain number or to consider them limited with the lists given in a hadith. The restrictions in the hadith
are meant to say these seven acts are among the great sins. The seven, four,
or three sins in miscellaneous narrations are brought forward because they are
the most prominent, most disconcerting, and most frequent.
Some of the great sins apart from the ones we have studied are as follows:
Contempt and scorn a Muslim, belittling and putting him down
Deceiving people
Calling a Muslim unbeliever and believing that he is like that
To neglect the duty of enjoining the good and forbidding the evil
A persons negligence of his duties against the individuals whose sustenance he assumed
Leaving the ritual prayer
In the noble verse, it is said that:
But after them there followed a posterity who missed prayers and followed after lusts soon, then, will they face Destruction. (Maryam; 19:59)
Telling the private things that one shared with his wife to others
Committing a forbidden act in the Masjid al Haram (Mecca) (Abu
Dawud, Kitab Al-Wasaya, 10/2875)
419
420
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
They said to me, Proceed! So we proceeded and came across something like
a Tannur (a kind of baking oven, a pit usually clay-lined for baking bread). In
that oven there was much noise and voices. We looked into it and found naked
men and women, and behold, a flame of fire was reaching to them from underneath, and when it reached them, they cried loudly.
I asked them:
Who are these?
They said to me, Proceed! And so we proceeded and came across a river
red like blood. And behold, in the river there was a man swimming, and on the
bank there was a man who had collected many stones. While the other man was
swimming, he went near him. The former opened his mouth and the latter (on
the bank) threw a stone into his mouth whereupon he went swimming again. He
returned and every time the performance was repeated, I asked my two companions:
Who are these (two) persons?
They replied, Proceed! Proceed! And we proceeded till we came to a man
with a repulsive appearance, the most repulsive appearance you ever saw a man
having! Beside him there was a fire and he was kindling it and running around
it. I asked my companions:
Who is this man?
They said to me, Proceed! Proceed! So we proceeded till we reached a garden of deep green dense vegetation, having all sorts of spring colors. In the midst
of the garden there was a very tall man and I could hardly see his head because of
his great height, and around him there were children in such a large number as I
have never seen. I said:
Whose are this man and the children?
Proceed! Proceed! So we proceeded till we came to a majestic huge garden,
greater and better than I have ever seen! My two companions said to me, Go up
and I went up! So we ascended till we reached a city built of gold and silver bricks
and we went to its gate and asked (the gatekeeper) to open the gate, and it was
opened and we entered the city and found in it, men with one side of their bodies
as handsome as the handsomest person you have ever seen, and the other side as
421
ugly as the ugliest person you have ever seen. My two companions ordered those
men:
Throw yourselves into the river! Behold, there was a river flowing across
(the city), and its water was like milk in whiteness. Those men went and threw
themselves in it and then returned to us after the ugliness (of their bodies) had
disappeared and they became in the best shape.
My two companions (angels) said to me:
This place is the Eden Paradise, and that is your place. I rose up my sight,
and behold, there I saw a palace like a white cloud! My two companions said to
me:
That (palace) is your place. I said to them:
Allah bless you both! Let me enter it. They replied:
As for now, you will not enter it, but you shall enter it (one day). I said to
them:
I have seen many wonders tonight. What does all that mean which I have
seen? They replied:
We will inform you.
As for the first man you came upon whose head was being injured with the
rock, he is the symbol of the one who studies the Quran and then neither recites it
nor acts on its orders, and sleeps, neglecting the enjoined prayers.
As for the man you came upon whose sides of mouth, nostrils and eyes were
torn off from front to back, he is the symbol of the man who goes out of his house
in the morning and tells so many lies that it spreads all over the world.
(In another report, it is narrated as:
He was a liar and always used to lie when he was on earth. The lies he
spread used to cover the horizon.) so this punishment will go on till the Day of
Resurrection.
And those naked men and women whom you saw in a construction resembling an oven, they are the adulterers and the adulteresses.
The man whom you saw swimming in the river and given a stone to swallow,
is the eater of usury (Riba).
422
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The bad looking man whom you saw near the fire kindling it and going
round it, is Malik, the gatekeeper of Hell.
The tall man whom you saw in the garden, is Abraham and the children
around him are those children who die with Al-Fitra (the Islamic Faith).
Some Muslims asked the Prophet:
O Allahs Apostle! What about the children of pagans?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) replied:
And also the children of pagans. The Prophet added:
The men you saw half handsome and half ugly were those persons who had
mixed an act that was good with another that was bad, but Allah forgave them.
(Bukhari, Tabir, 48; Al-Janaiz, 93; Tahajjud, 12; Buyu, 2; Jihad, 4; Bad al-khalk, 6; Anbiya, 8;
Tafsir, 9/15; Adab, 69; Tirmidhi, Ruya, 10/2295)
The kinds of punishment shown to the Prophet are the ones that are going
to continue until the Day of Judgment. There are no mentions here of the kinds
of punishments that are going to be given after the accounting.
Another matter is that the dreams of prophets are not like ours. Their
dreams are trusted ones. There are examples of this in the Noble Quran. For
this reason, what the Messenger of Allah told us I saw in my dream is an
expression of truth. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) has warned his nation by
informing them about the future and has wished to save them from loss both
in this world and in the hereafter.
This is because the punishment for the sins is not just given in the grave
or the Hereafter but sometimes also given in this world. Indeed, in our third
hadith, certain punishments to be given in this world for bad acts like adultery,
betrayal, not giving the zakat, and disobeying Allahs commands is given.
On the other hand, in our fourth hadith, we are informed that once the
sins increase in a society people can face total destruction. This ruling will not
change even though there are pious people among them,
If Almighty Allah wishes, He sends a calamity that hits everyone both
good and bad in the society in which sins increase,235 and He demolishes
235. See Tirmidhi, Fitan, 38/2210-2211; Ibn-i Majah, Fitan, 20, 22; Hakim, IV, 583/8623.
423
places. However, people will be raised based on their intentions and conditions
in life and receives compensation accordingly.236
Almighty Allah warns as follows:
And fear mischief or oppression, which affects not in particular (only)
those of you who do wrong: and know that Allah is strict in punishment.
(Al-Anfal; 8:25)
In this case, what is required upon us is to fulfill our duty to enjoin the
good and forbid the evil and try to decrease sins.
3. Not to belittle sins
....
...
184. Amr bin Ahvas (r.a.) says: I heard the Messenger of Allah saying to
people when he was giving his sermon in his Farewell Pilgrimage:
Pay attention! Satan has forever lost his hope that in these lands he will
never be worshipped. However, obeying him will be possible in acts (sins) that
you see as minor, and he will be pleased with this (Tirmidhi, Fitan, 2/2159; Ibn
Majah, Manasik, 76; Nasai, al-Sunan al-kubra, II, 444/4100. Also see Hakim, II, 32/2221; Baihaqi,
Shuab, V, 454)
.
:
236. Bukhari, Fitan, 19; Muslim, Jannah, 84. We had touched upon this subject previously under
the heading Intentions.
424
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
185. It was narrated from Abdullah b. Mesud (r.a.) that the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) spoke as follows:
Avoid sins that are seen as minor because they accumulate in an individual
and eventually destroy that person.
Then, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave an example as follows about
sins.
A group stops to rest in a desert. When the time comes for eating, each
one brings a tree branch, then they put those together, and this way they construct a bonfire and cook their food by placing their food on it. (Ahmad, I, 402403; V, 331)
: .
:
186. Aisha (r.anha) says: The Messenger of Allah told me the following:
O Aisha! Stay away the acts that are belittled (even from the smallest of sins
that are not paid attention to). This is because there is someone (an angel) in the
425
sight of Allah who watches and records them. (Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 29; Darimi, Riqaq, 17;
Ahmad, VI, 70, 151)
.
:
.(
187. According to the narration from Abu Huraira (r.a.), the Messenger of
Allah said the following:
When a slave of Allah commits a wrongdoing, a black spot is stamped on
his heart. If he manages to keep his carnal self from doing this, repents, and returns from sin, his heart is purified from this spot and polished. If he returns to
sins, this stamp enlarges and in the end covers his whole heart. And this is the
rusting of hearts that Allah the Exalted mentions in the following noble verse:
By no means! But on their hearts is the stain of the (ill) which they
do! (Al-Mutaffifin; 83:14) (Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 83/3334; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 29. Also see Ahmad,
II, 297)
Explanations:
Since all sins carry the meaning of disobeying Allahs rules whether great
or minor, they cause Him to be displeased and even attract His anger. For this
reason, Bilal b. Sad, who is famous for his piety, said:
Pay attention not the size of the sins but to whom you are rebelling! (Abu
Nuaym, Hilyah, V, 223; Ahmad, Zuhd, p. 460)
426
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
On the other hand, sins prevent knowing Allah and obeying Him truly
ad appropriately by hanging like a thick curtain between Allah and the slave.
Thus, just like the great sins, minor sins also contain dangers for ones spirituality. For this reason they should never be belittled.
Sins move us away from Allahs consent and please our eternal enemy,
Satan. In our first hadith, we are informed that even the minor sins mean obedience to Satan and would please him. This is because Satan is trying to move
mankind away from our Lords mercy and compassion as he has been casted
away from divine mercy. In fact, he devoted his life to this. This is because
when humans were first created, Satan was jealous of them and disobeyed Allahs orders by being consumed with arrogance. Namely, mankind has a role in
his being sent off from Paradise and mercy. For this reason, it is quite natural
for Satan to sit on the way to Heaven and try to turn humans into travelers destined for Hell by using all kinds of deceptions and tricks. What is really strange
is the humans falling for their eternal enemy and following him.
The only thing Satan does in order to reach his goal is to move him away
from his religion. For this reason, after warning his nation in the Farewell Sermon with the expression in our hadith the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says:
Be very protective of your religion by staying away from the acts (sins) that
you call minor and contempt. (Haythami, III, 267)
In our second hadith, the Prophet explained as follows why minor sins
should not be belittled:
because they accumulate in an individual and eventually destroy that
person.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also gives an example to this, and explains
in the best fashion. Just like the cooking of food by the fire of small pieces of
bush and branches, the minor sins accumulate and cause someone to fall into
Hell.
Sometimes people dont notice and they think that the sins that they committed are minor matters. In fact, it is a great crime in the sight of Allah. In
respect to the incident of slandering our mother Aisha (r.anha), the mistake of
humans seeing their sins as minor amtters is alluded to in the Noble Quran
as follows:
427
Were it not for the grace and mercy of Allah on you, in this world and
the Hereafter, a grievous penalty would have seized you in that you rushed
glibly into this affair. Behold, you received it on your tongues, and said out
of your mouths things of which you had no knowledge; and you thought it
to be a light matter, while it was most serious in the sight of Allah. (Al-Nur;
24:14-15)
Also, a person says a careless word and sees it as trivial. In fact, the crime
he committed is great enough to destroy him but he does not know it. Indeed,
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following:
Allahs slave happens to say something without properly thinking and he
ends up falling to the part of Hell that is further than the distance between the
East and West. (Bukhari, Riqaq, 23)
On the other hand, minor sins turn into the way that takes people to great
sins. They gradually turn a person and throw him into the claws of great sins.
Indeed Ibn Abbas said the following:
If one repents from a great sin it does not stay as it is, it is forgiven. The
minor sin on the other hand does not remain minor if one insists and becomes
a great sin. (Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 456)
A person who does not place importance to sins does not stay where he
is, God forbid, knowingly or unknowingly, advances. For this reason, Muslim
scholars warned us saying:
Minor sins take a person to great sin, and, in turn, great sins take him to
unbelief. (Ajluni, Kashf al-Khafa, number: 2317)
In this matter, Abu Hafs (r.a.) says:
As malaria is the bearer of the news of death, sins are the bearers of the
news of unbelief. (Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 447)
Thus, the disease of seeing the wrongdoings and sins as minor should not
be a characteristic of a believer. A believer should take all types of sins seriously
and try to stay away from them. Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) describes the spiritual
state of believers in the face of sins:
A believing person increases his sins in his imagination so much that it is
as if he is sitting in the skirts of a mountain and the mountain will collapse on
428
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
him. On the other hand, a mischievous person sees his sins as a fly that landed
on his nose. (Bukhari, Daawat, 4)
The Companions lived in this very spiritual state against the sins. Indeed,
one of the great scholars of the generation following the Noble Companions,
Hasan al-Basri, narrates his observations about this exemplary generation as
follows:
The companions of the Prophet (pbuh) used to perform even a small act
if they see it as nice. On the contrary, they used to stay away even from a small
thing if they see it inappropriate. (Ibn Dunya, Mawsua, I, 89)
Anas (r.a.) warned some people who later lost their sensitivity in this matter:
You people do (bad) deeds (commit sins) which seem in your eyes as tiny
(minute) than hair while we used to consider those (very deeds) during the
life-time of the Prophet as destructive sins. (Bukhari, Ar-Riqaq)
In this regard, Musa Topba, may he rest in peace and mercy, says in his
letters to his students:
The state and perfection of the heart of a believer is displayed in his acts.
Some among the most prominent of these beautiful acts are as follows:
Being humble all the time, not wasting his time knowing the value of his
time and that his number of breaths are limited, loving the slaves of Allah and
not struggling with them, treating others according to their religious levels,
having the habit of covering others wrongdoings, being careful about haram
and halal, and seeing as great even the matters everyone else considers as minor. This is because whoever sees his sin as minor God forbid sees the command of Almighty Allah as minor.
In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) desired that believers
reach the state of sincerity and control and avoid even the minor sins. Whether
minor or major, all acts of humans are being recorded. There are angels recording the actions of a person without leaving them even for a moment. Our
Exalted Lord informs us as follows:
Not a word does he utter but there is a sentinel by him, ready (to note
it). (Qaf; 50:18)
Before all, God Almighty already hears, sees, and knows everything.
429
One day these records will be opened and the individual will find everything he committed in front of him. Anyone who has done well in the size of
an atom will see that and the same for any evil doings.237 The astonishment of
the sinners is described as follows by Allah the Exalted:
And the book (of deeds) will be placed (before you); and you will see
the sinful in great terror because of what is (recorded) therein; they will say,
Ah! Woe to us! What a book is this! It leaves out nothing small or great,
but takes account thereof! They will find all that they did is placed before
them: And not one will your Lord treat with injustice. (Al-Kahf; 18:49)
The criminals were not paying attention to minor sins when they were in
this world, and they used to see their wrongdoings as minor issues. When they
continued with this mentality, in time, they fell into major sins, and they even
did not place importance to them. In the end, they found themselves in the
bosom of horrifying fear,
How wise the following words of Abu Ayyub al-Ansari are:
A person performs a good act, and then commits minor sins by relying
on the good act, and he faces Allah together with the great dangers that these
sins caused. On the other hand, another person commits a sin. However, he
lives in fear (by thinking the compensation for that sin) and finally goes to the
sight of Allah in peace. (Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 456; Ibn Hajar, Fath al-Bari, XI, 330)
Thus, a believer should always be alert, keep away even from the minor
wrongdoings that people do not place importance to, and live in a state of complete check and control.
A believer should be so sensitive in the matter of sin that he should even
control the thoughts in his heart.
Umar (r.a.) said the following:
Avoid the wish and desire that come to your heart prior to sin because
that is the beginning of sin! If you do not avoid this desire, your hearts fall into
heedlessness from Allah. (Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 458)
So, feelings, thoughts, and dreams are of great importance in the matter of
leading a person to sin or goodness.238
237. Al-Zilzal; 99:7-8.
238. It is pointed out in some ahadith that the thoughts and wishes that cross ones heart have a
directing influence and are regarded as prayer:
430
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
It is also possible to understand the following from our third hadith: in respect to worshipping Allah and avoiding sins, a man should warn his wife and
should try to endow her with the consciousness of responsibility. Essentially,
to be a pious Muslim in a family, both husband and wife must warn each other,
forbid the evil, and encourage goodness and beautiful things.239
The influence and effects of sins on heart are told in our fourth hadith.
Each sin is like a black spot stamped to the heart, just like a drop of black ink
on a pure white paper If the person leaves the sin and embraces repentance,
then his heart gets cleaned. If he does not repent and continue, then these spots
mount and cover the whole heart. After this, the heart is no longer sharp, its
light goes away, its wise vision is blocked, and its surface is covered with dirt
just like the rusting and steaming of a mirror. In time it hardens and stops recognizing the good. Afterwards, the person can commit even the greatest sins
that scatter their poison into the soul without even feeling them. How nicely,
the following words of Omar bin Abdulaziz express this fact:
Prohibitions are a kind of fire. Only those whose hearts are dead reach out
to them. If those who reach out to the prohibited things were alive, they would feel
the pain of that fire.
Therefore, those who commit major sins came to this state because of the
darkening in their hearts due to the minor sins that they neglected.
Abu Turab an-Nahshabi says:
There are three signs of a darkened heart:
1. The persons not feeling any fear because of committing sins
2. Not feeling any joy out of obedience and worship
3. Advices having no influence on him.
According to the narration, the Black Stone in the Kabah (Hajar al Aswad), which was whiter than milk or snow when it came down from the HeavWhen one of you wishes something, he should be careful as to what he is thinking of. This
is because he cant know what is recorded for him due to this wish. (Ahmad, II, 357, 387;
Baihaqi, Shuab, V, 457)
When one of you wishes something, he should think big! This is because in this situation he
is asking from his Exalted Lord and praying to Him. (Ahmad, II, 357, 387; Baihaqi, Shuab, V,
457)
239. Zekeriya Gler, 40 Hadiste Kadn ve Aile, Konya 2004, p. 338.
431
en, darkened in time due to the sins of people who touched it.240 Indeed it is
said that the blackness is only in the visible part of the Black Stone and the part
buried in the Kabah wall is still white.241
If sins can even darken a stone like this, what would it do to a heart, which
is such an elegant being?
Those who do not pay attention to sins and who can even commit them
while laughing deserve to cry tomorrow in the Hereafter. Indeed Abdullah b.
Abbas (r.a.) says:
Someone committing a sin while laughing enters Hell while crying.
(Ghazali, Ihya, III, 273)
432
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Sins spoil the spirituality of the perpetrator, darken his heart, and
cause to move away from the original nature of human beings. The sinner stays
away from repentance cold-heartedly, unconscientiously, and without fear, rids
of the feelings of shame and morality that make a person human.
Sins and rebellious actions cause to get subjected to Allahs torment.
By attracting the troubles and problems, they harm the past, current, and future generations.
Sin harms not only the perpetrator but also the others. If the person
who sees the sinner expresses that he finds this act shameful, he may experience the same evil state in the future; if he backbites, he also commits a sin; and
if he finds acceptable what the sinner does, he becomes a partner in that sin.
Every sin leads to another and weakens the belief.
Since Almighty Allah does not give the treasure of knowledge to a
rebellious heart, sinners are deprived of true knowledge. Ibn Qayyim al-Jazviyyah says:
There are such bad influences of sins that no one other than Allah
knows them. One of these influences is to be deprived of knowledge because
knowledge is light and is given to the heart, but sin puts it out. (Munawi, Fayz, I,
155/113)
: .
433
:
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Beware, in the body there is a piece of flesh; if it is sound, the whole body is sound
and if it is corrupt the whole body is corrupt, and hearken it is the heart. (Muslim,
Musaqat, 107, 108. Also see Bukhari, Iman, 39; Kitab al-Buyu, 2; Abu Dawud, Kitab al-Buyu, 3/3329;
Tirmidhi, Kitab al-Buyu, 1/1205; Nasai, Kitab al-Buyu, 2; Qudat, 11; Ibn Majah, Fitan 14)
.
:
:
.
191. Anas (r.a.) narrated:
The Prophet passed by a fallen date and said:
Were it not for my doubt that this might have been given in charity, I would
have eaten it. (Bukhari, Buyu, 4; Lukata, 6; Muslim, Zakat, 164-166. Also see. Abu Dawud,
Zakat, 29)
435
Explanations:
An individual faces clearly permissible things, clearly prohibited things,
and also some doubtful ones due to some uncertainties and probabilities. It is
easy to recognize permissible and prohibited things that are obvious. However,
it is difficult to decide about the things that are doubtful. If they are considered permissible, there is the possibility to fall into prohibited. This possibility,
in turn, disturbs ones heart. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) who wanted to
save his followers from this trouble recommends to stay away from doubtful
things and to focus on the clear certain ones in our first hadith. This is because
things that are certainly permissible give serenity to the heart and doubtful
ones bother and annoy. Once the doubtful ones are left, it is easier to judge
and act appropriately in other matters. Indeed, once Muslims questioned Ibn
Masud (r.a.) on many issues. Ibn Masud (r.a.) provided the following explanation for them:
If any one of you faces an issue, let him judge with the Book of Allah! If
he faces an issue whose solution is not in the Book of Allah, let him take care of
the matter by following the judgments that the Noble Prophet gave.
If one cannot find a solution in the Book of Allah or in the rulings of the
Prophet, then he should respond to the question by utilizing the rulings issued
by pious scholars.
If he faces a matter that is not responded in the Quran, Sunnah, and rulings of the pious, then he should opine by using his intellect. He should not
say I fear to put forth my opinion because what is permissible and prohibited is clear. There are doubtful and unclear matters between permissible and
prohibited. Then, leave aside options that cause you to doubt and focus on the
certain. (Nasai, Qada, 11)
As it is understood from the recommendations of Ibn Masud, life is really easy for those who stay away from doubtful things. Then, paying attention
to things that are clearly permissible or prohibited and staying away from the
doubtful will lead one to salvation.
In our second hadith, it is expressed that most people do not know the
doubtful things, so in this case the importance of staying away from doubtful
things increases.
436
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Giving an example here, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) expresses that the
shepherd who allows his flock to graze next to the prohibited land is face to
face with the danger of violating the prohibition. Most of the times the shepherd does not enter the prohibited field himself and cause harm but cannot
control the animals he is shepherding and becomes responsibile because of
them. Similarly, an individual who comes close to the border of the prohibited
action may fall into sin because of his carnal self, body parts, and individuals
who are under his jurisdiction by being unable to control them. This is because
people follow the path of their leaders and elders.
Staying away from doubtful matters protects one from violating prohibitions or falling into major sins and saves that person from many troubles
right away and provides peace and tranquility. Also, consciousness of what is
permissible and what is not gets strengthened as a result of being extra careful
against the doubtful matters. On the other hand, a person who does not pay
attention to doubtful issues starts seeing the abnormal situation that he is in as
normal in time, and without noticing gets used to sinning and faces the danger
of violating prohibitions and falling into major sins.
Everything that a human has depends on his heart. If he corrects his hear,
then all his body parts will act well. Then, that person acts with sincerity and
honestly and does not hold on to excuses on doubtful matters. In time, his heart
becomes more sensitive and reaches a state where he starts to notice doubtful
matters immediately. He, in turn, stays away from them with his whole mind.
On the other hand, the person whose heart is spoiled sees every doubtful thing
as permissible and does not hesitate performing such acts by putting forth excuses.
Then, in respct to doubtful matters the heart needs to be pious and tranquil in order to achieve an attitude that would please Allah. In time, the heart
occupied with the prohibited loses its purity and becomes dirty. It even starts
to darken after a time. At the end, it completely loses its sensitivity towards the
prohibited.
For the salvation of the heart it is a must to hold on to the obligatory and
supererogatory acts of worship and to the remembrance of Allah. The following is the advice of the Almighty Allah to His subjects:
for without doubt in the remembrance of Allah do hearts find satisfaction. (Al-Rad; 13:28)
437
Here the term remembrance also means the Quran. Namely, the attempt
of living the entire rules of Islam will revive the heart and will increase its sensitivity against dangers.
In another noble verse it is said that:
Is one whose heart Allah has opened to Islam, so that he has received
Enlightenment from Allah, (no better than one hard-hearted)? Woe to those
whose hearts are hardened against celebrating the praises of Allah. They are
manifestly wandering (in error)! (Al-Zumar; 39:22)
Umar (r.a.) expressed the sensitivity of the Noble Companions on suspicious things as follows:
We deserted nine permissible things out of ten in order not to fall into
interest (usury). (Ali al-Muttaqi, IV, 187/10087)
In our third hadith, another criterion is provided to understand whether
something is permissible.
When someone attempts to do something, if a question mark arises in his
heart, or his heart does not feel that it is right, or if he is in doubt and afraid
that it would be a sin, then he needs to stop there. Indeed, this is a warning of
the clean heart and conscience, one needs to listen to it.
Wabisa b. Mabad (r.a.) says:
I had approached the Prophet. He told me:
Did you come to ask what virtue is?
I said Yes.
Then, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Ask your heart. Virtue is what your soul finds appropriate and your heart
approves. Sin, on the other hand, is something that bothers you from inside even
though others issue many legal opinions in order for you to do it and raises doubt
and hesitation. (Ahmad, IV, 227-228; Darimi, Buyu, 2)
The role of conscience in the matter of finding the truth is very big. A person who sincerely listens to his heart is generally not mistaken.
Once, someone from the Noble Companions had come to the Prophet
(pbuh) and asked:
438
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
(sadaqah). Almighty Allah has forbidden zakat and charity for the Prophets
family.242
However, this rule only applies to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and his
family. Except them, it is not permissible for someone in need to refuse zakat
or charity based on the prohibition of zakat for the Prophet and his family and
to cause his family to fall into financially difficult situation. This is because
the needy among the Noble Companions and friends of Allah have accepted
zakat.
Moreover, even though the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) did not accept
zakat and charity he had accepted the gifts of those who had received zakat or
charity.243
The Prophets thinking of picking up and eating a date on the ground
shows that he does not like wasting and that he does not want even one date to
go to waste. This incident also shows that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was so
humble that he would pick up a date from the ground and eat.
By such characteristics the Messenger of Allah gives his nation such nice
lessons. Accordingly, one should avoid doubtful things, nothing of value should
be wasted, even a small thing should be utilized, and one should be humble.
242. Some of the wisdom behind this prohibition could be as follows:
Almighty Allah did not want them to tend towards the material goods of this world.
He wished that they protect their dignity.
If there had been no such prohibition, Muslims might have started to give all their zakat to
the Prophets family and deprived others.
Some people may have thought that our Master the Prophet had claimed prophethood for
the purpose of obtaining wealth. By prohibiting zakat to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and
his family Almighty Allah has removed this doubt all together.
243. Some meat was presented to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) from the meat donated as
charity to Barira, the servant of our mother Aisha. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh), who
learned from where the meat had come, said:
This is charity (sadaqah) to her but gift to us. (Bukhari, Zakat, 62; Hiba, 5; Muslim, Zakat,
170)
Again, the Pride of Universe (pbuh) had donated to Nusaibah al-Ansari a sheep from the
zakat collwctions. She sent some meat from that sheep to Aisha. At that time the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh) had asked to Aisha (r.anha) if she had with her something to eat. Aisha
responded:
No, except some meat from the sheep that you donated to Nusaybah.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
You can bring it, that sheep has found its appropriate place (It came to her as zakat but as gift
to us) (Bukhari, Zakat, 31, 62; Hibah, 5; Muslim, Zakat, 174)
440
o ---------------------------------------------------------------------------
The following incident that shows the sensitivity of the Companions in the
face of doubtful and prohibited things is full of wisdom.
Abu Bakr (r.a.) had a slave who used to give him some of his earnings, and
he used to eat from it. One day he brought something and Abu Bakr (r.a.) ate
from it. The slave said to him:
You used to ask about the source of my earning, but you didnt ask tonight, why?
Abu Bakr (r.a.) said:
I was so hungry that I forgot to ask, so tell me how did you earn it?
The slave said:
Once, in the pre-Islamic period I foretold somebodys future though I did
not know the knowledge of foretelling, namely I had cheated him. I met him
today. He gave me something for that service, and that is what you have eaten
from. Then Abu Bakr put his hand in his mouth and vomited whatever was in
his stomach (even though it was tormenting).
Shame on you! You were about to ruin me.
When it is said to him:
Was it worth to torment yourself so much just because of a small bite?
Abu Bakr (r.a.) said:
If I knew that I would even die, I would still take it out. That is because I
heard from the Messenger of Allah (pbuh):
The body fed by forbidden earning deserves more to be in the Hell. (Abu
Nuaym, Hilya, I, 31; Bukhari, Fadail al-Ansar, 26; Ahmad b. Abdullah al-Tabari, al-Riyad al-Nadra, II, 140-141)
441
: .
:
.
:
193. Abu Musa al-Ashari (r.a.) narrated that Allahs Messenger (pbuh)
said:
Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, Stretches out His Hand during the night
so that the people repent for the fault committed from dawn till dusk and He
stretches out His Hand during the day so that the people may repent for the fault
committed from dusk to dawn. (He would accept repentance) before the sun rises
in the west (before the Day of Resurrection). (Muslim, Kitab Al-Tawba, 31; Ahmad, IV,
395, 404)
.
:
194. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that Allahs Messenger (pbuh) said:
442
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
He who seeks repentance (from the Lord) before the rising of the sun from
the west (before the Day of Resurrection), Allah turns to him with Mercy. (Muslim,
Dhikr, 43)
.
:
.
195. According to a narration from Ibn Umar, the Prophet (pbuh) said:
Allah the Exalted accepts his servants repentance so long as he does not
show signs of dying. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 98/3537. Also see Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 30)
: .
:
196. Abdullah ibn Abbas (r.anhuma) narrated that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
If anyone continually asks pardon, Allah will appoint for him a way out
of every distress, and a relief from every anxiety, and will provide for him from
where he did not reckon. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 26/1518; Ibn Majah, Adab, 57. Also see. Ahmad, I, 248; Hakim, IV, 291/7677)
443
.
:
197. Abu Musa (r.a.) narrates that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Allah the Exalted revealed two trusts to me for my nation.
But Allah was not going to send them a penalty whilst you were
amongst them; nor was He going to send it whilst they could ask for pardon. (Al-Anfal; 8:33)
When I leave them I leave asking for forgiveness (which is the second
trust that will prevent Allahs torment) with them until the Day of Judgment.
(Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 8/3082)
:
:
198. According to a narration from Abdullah bin Boushr (r.a.) the Noble
Prophet (pbuh) said:
Glad tidings to those who find many repentences in their book of deeds on
the Day of Judgment. (Ibn Majah, Adab, 57)
444
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
.
:
) :
: (
199. It is narrated from Shaddad bin Aws that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
The most superior way of asking for forgiveness from Allah is:
Allahumma anta Rabbi la ilaha illa anta, Anta Khalaqtani wa ana abduka,
wa ana ala ahdika wa wadika mastatatu, Audhu bika min Sharri ma sanatu,
abuu Laka binimatika alaiya, wa abuu laka bi dhanbi faghfirli innahu la yaghfiru adh-dhunuba illa anta.
O my Allah! You are my Lord. There is no god worthy of worship other than
You. You created me. I am your servant. I am still keeping as much as I can my
promise and wow that I gave you in the beginning of time. I seek refuge in You
from the evil of my wrongdoings. I cite the favors that You granted upon me with
thankfulness and confess my sin. Please forgive me, there is no doubt that there is
no one else other than you who will forgive sins.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) continued as follows:
If somebody recites it during the day with firm faith in it, and dies on the
same day before the evening, he will be from the people of Paradise; and if somebody recites it at night with firm faith in it, and dies before the morning, he will be
445
from the people of Paradise. (Bukhari, Daawat, 2, 16. Also see. Abu Dawud, Adab, 100-101;
Nasai, Istiadha, 57/5519; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 15/3393)
Explanations:
There is no question that people may commit sins. It is natural for mankind to err or fall into sin, knowingly or unknowingly. However, it can never
be approved to continue to be in that state. It is necessary for a smart believer
to immediately accept and confess his mistake and turn away from sin and turn
to Allah. Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Every person can err. However, the best of those who err are the ones who
repent a lot. (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 49/2499; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 30)
Since Allah the Almighty desires that His servants hold on to repentance,
He says:
And O Believers! Turn all together towards Allah, so that you may
attain Bliss. (Al-Nur; 24:31)
O you who believe! Turn to Allah with sincere repentance (Al-Tahrim; 66:8)
Before everybody else, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) himself obeyed this
divine command of God Almighty and has repented and asked for forgiveness
every day. He did this not because he had committed sins but rather to obey Allahs command, to remember him, and to be an example to his followers and to
show them how to repent and ask for forgiveness. He felt more than satisfied by
confessing his weakness with great humility to our Exalted Lord and wrapping
himself in a deep consciousness of being a subject of Allah. By recommending
this state to his nation in our first hadith, he said O people! Repent to Allah! I
repent to Him one hundred times a day.
As we mentioned before in similar cases, the number one hundred here
is not meant to limit the amount of repentance and asking for forgiveness with
that specific number but to express that it needs to be done many times. In fact,
there would be times when the Prophet repented one hundred times only in
one gathering.
Ibn Umar (r.anhuma) narrated:
446
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
We counted that the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) said a hundred times during
a meeting:
My Lord, forgive me and pardon me; You are the Pardoning and Forgiving
One. (Abu Dawud, Witr, 26/1516; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 38/3434)
One should repent as much as he is able to do, for this state would elevate
the servant to the contentment of God Almighty.
It is expressed in a noble verse:
For Allah loves those who turn to Him constantly and He loves those
who keep themselves pure and clean. (Al-Baqarah; 2:222)
The following noble hadith, which helps us understand how happy God
Almighty becomes when one of His servants repents, should lead everyone to
repent without losing time.
Allah is more pleased with the repentance of a servant as he turns towards
Him for repentance than this that one amongst you is upon the camel in a waterless desert and there is upon (that camel) his provision of food and drink also and
it is lost by him, and he having lost all hope (to get that) lies down in the shadow
(waiting for the death) and is disappointed about his camel and there he finds
that camel standing before him. He takes hold of his nose string and then out of
boundless joy says: O Lord, You are my servant and I am Your Lord. He commits
this mistake out of extreme delight. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Tawba, 7; Tirmidhi, Qiyamat, 49;
Daawat, 99)
Can anyone describe a happier moment than someone finding all his sustenance right beside him while he was hungry and thirsty and waiting for his
death after losing everything? Then, Almighty God is much happier because
His servant who was lost in the deserts of sin and was drifting towards destruction has returned and reached the shore of salvation. That means He loves His
servant so much.
In our second hadith, we are told that repentance should not be delayed
and that Allah accepts repentance all the time. Almighty Allah expects that
His servant who errs should immediately realize his mistake and turn back. He
expects that someone who commits a sin during the day should repent before
447
the day passes on it. Similarly, someone who commits a sin during the night
should hug repentance during the day. Allah mentions in the Noble Quran
those who hasten in repentance with praise:
And those who, having done something to be ashamed of, or wronged
their own souls, earnestly bring Allah to mind, and ask for forgiveness for
their sins, and - who can forgive sins except Allah - and are never obstinate
in persisting knowingly in (the wrong) they have done. (Al-i Imran; 3:135)
Another aspect of the noble verse is the following: Only Allah the Exalted
can forgive sins. Since sins carry the meaning of disobeying Allah, no one other
than Allah can pardon from the punishment that will be given. (Al-i Imran; 3:129,
al-Araf; 7:149)
As stated in our third hadith, Allah the Exalted continues to accept repentances until the rise of the sun from the West, which is one of the major
indicators of the Day of Judgment. On the other hand, He does not forgive
those who repent after seeing the rise of the sun from the West. This is because
there remains no one who does not believe in Allah after seeing this major
event. Thus, the test has ended. The essential matter is to repent while the test
is ongoing.
Allah the Exalted says:
448
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The day that certain of the signs of your Lord do come, no good will
it do to a soul to believe in them then if it believed not before nor earned
righteousness through its faith. (Al-Anam; 6:158)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) spoke of a gate located in the West and
that its width is seventy years measured by the speed of a horse rider.
One of the scholars of hadith from Damascus, Sufyan b. Uyayna, said
while talkin about this gate:
Allah created this gate open when He created the Heavens and the Earth.
This door will not be shut until the Sun rises from where it sets. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 98/3535; Taharat, 71; Also see Nasai, Taharat, 97, 113; Ibn Majah, Fitan, 32)
True, the Door of Repentance will remain open until the Day of Judgment, but not everyone is guaranteed to live until the Day of Judgment. Each
persons Day of Judgment is his death. For this reason, in our fourth hadith,
the arrival of the moment of death is compared to the rise of the Sun from
West. When a person realizes that he will die for sure, there is no point of repentance and also no benefit will occur.
Allah the Exalted says:
Of no effect is the repentance of those who continue to do evil, until
death faces one of them, and he says, Now have I repented indeed; nor of
those who die rejecting Faith (Al-Nisa; 4:18)
It is mentioned many times in the Noble Quran that no extra time will be
given to those whose determined terms are reached. (Al-Muminun; 23: 43, Al-Araf;
7:34, Al-Munafiqun; 63:11, Al-Hijr; 15:5, Yunus; 10:49, Al-Nahl; 16:61)
On the other hand, no one knows his appointed time of death. The most
curious conundrum that all the people want to solve is when they will meet the
Angel of Death. In general, death suddenly seizes a person. Then, one should
never delay repentance. One should hold on to repentance and asking for forgiveness immediately after wrongdoing. It is very wrong to think like I am
worried that I will nullify my repentance (i.e., return to sin), therefore I will
repent in the future. No matter how many times one nullifies his repentance,
one should still hold on to repentance. However, one should try to be sincere
in this respect. Indeed, there is no point of repentance while having in mind
the intention to sin. One should repent after each sin with the intention to
449
As Allah the Exalted forgives those who rightfully repent before its time
passes, He also turns its sins to rewards.
This good news is given as follows in a noble verse:
Unless he repents, believes, and works righteous deeds, for Allah will
change the evil of such persons into good, and Allah is Oft-Forgiving, Most
Merciful. (Al-Furqan; 25:70)
However, it also understood from this verse that repentance and asking
for forgiveness should not remain in the hearts and should be approved and
450
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
At the time of Umar (r.a.), there was a drought and people were suffering
from famine. They proposed the Caliph to go for a supplication for rain. When
everyone gathered, Umar (r.a.) went up the pulpit to pray for rain. He started
to ask for forgiveness. He was only asking for forgiveness and saying nothing
else. After continuing in this fashion for a while, he came down the pulpit. The
people there said in a perplexed fashion:
O the Ruler of Believers, you went up to pray for rain but we never heard
you pray. You only asked for forgiveness and came down?
Umar (r.a.) said:
I asked the mercy that you want by using the keys of heaven from which
rain is descended and as evidence to his word put forth the following noble
verses:
Saying: Ask forgiveness from your Lord; for He is Oft-Forgiving; He
will send rain to you in abundance; Give you increase in wealth and sons;
and bestow on you gardens and bestow on you rivers (of flowing water).
(Nuh; 71:10-12)
451
And O my people! Ask forgiveness of your Lord, and turn to Him (in
repentance): He will send you the skies pouring abundant rain, and add
strength to your strength: so turn you not back in sin! (Al-Hud; 11:52)
But ask forgiveness of your Lord, and turn unto Him (in repentance):
For my Lord is indeed full of mercy and loving-kindness. (Al-Hud; 11:90)
Umar who recited these verses concludes his speech as follows:
Then, ask for forgiveness of your wrongdoings and sins from your Lord,
repent sincerely, and turn towards Allah. (Baihaqi, al-Sunan al-Kubra, III, 351-351)
Then, leaving sins and asking for forgiveness is a key that opens the Heavens. When people leave sins and make up with their almighty Lord, the doors
of heaven will open and all sorts of mercy will shower us.
Once four people came to Hasan al-Basri and each one of them complained
from different things: drought, poverty, one from lack of his kids, and another
one from infertility of his fields. This great friend of Allah recommended asking for forgiveness to each one of them.
Those who were with him said:
Master, even though these people were troubled with different things,
you recommended the same thing to all of them?
Then, Hasan al-Basri responded them by reciting the verses 10-12 of
Chapter Nuh (71), just like Umar (r.a.) did. (Ayn, Umdat al-Qari, XXII, 277; Ibn Hajar,
Fath al-Bari, XI, 98)
In our sixth hadith, it is stated that people will not be subjected to divine
torment as long as they ask for forgiveness. As asking for forgiveness is a shield
against worldly torments, it is also a salvation from eternal torment. It is trust
and safety.
In our seventh hadith, people with many istighfars (asking for forgiveness) in their books of deeds are given the good news and called How happy
they are! This is because, as stated in another noble hadith:
Istighfar shines like light in the book of deeds. (Suyut, Jaami, no: 3056)
452
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Then, we need to keep on asking for forgiveness with sincerity and wholeheartedly. If asking for forgiveness is done only by the tongue, then it may not
be seen in the book of deeds on the Day of Judgment. For this reason, the heart
and soul need to participate in asking for forgiveness.
In our eighth hadith, the Messenger of Allah teaches a supplication for
asking for forgiveness which includes every kind of prayer and repentance.
Due to its importance, he names it as Sayyid al-Istigfhar: the Master of
istighfars. Reciting this istighfar every day by making it one of our habitual
recitations is a means for abundance in this world and in the hereafter. It is the
renewal of the promise and contract that we gave in past eternity. Thus, how
nice a deed it would be to recite and help everyone memorize such virtuous
supplications and asking for forgiveness, just like our ancestors did. Muslims
are in need of such direction from their leaders.244
Let us remind that a person should not be heedless to commit a sin by
trusting in repentance and asking for forgiveness. A person who commits a
sin by saying Allah forgives may not be saved from it and can go further. Or
before he gets a chance to repent, he may face death when repentance is not
accepted.
Our Exalted Lord warns us as follows:
Verily, the promise of Allah is true: let not then this present life deceive you, nor let the chief Deceiver deceive you about Allah. (Luqman; 31:33)
Also see. (Al-Fatir; 35:5)
It is also true that not committing a sin is superior to being forgiven. Even
though a sinner repents and his sin is forgiven, he loses many things. How
nicely Mawlana Jalaladdin Rumi expresses this:
True, there is forgiveness. However, even though he is forgiven, a thief
would be happy to have saved his life. Otherwise, would it be possible for a thief
to be a Wizir (Deputy King) or the Minister of Treasury? (Masnawi, c. V, verse no:
3153-3154)
244. There are many narrations on the virtues of supplications like those recited after the ritual
prayers and those recited at the location of the imam such as Huwallahulladh ve Amanarrasulu in the morning, evening, and night prayers. It is very difficult for our people to know
these. However, our scholars have turned this into regularity and had our people gain a
good habit. In this way, people from all levels are performing a good deed by taking the
advice of scholars even though they may not know the narrations regarding its virtue.
453
6. Piety (Taqwa)
: .
:
.
200. Abu Dharr (r.a.) says:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told me as follows:
Wherever and however you are, be afraid of Allah! If you commit a bad
deed, do a good deed right after that so that it would nullify and destroy that result of the evil act. Treat people with nice manners! (Tirmidhi, Birr, 55/1987)
: .
:
454
: .
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
- -
:
:
.()
I know such a verse that if all people acted in accordance with it, it would
be sufficient for all of them.
The Noble Companions asked:
O the Messenger of Allah which verse is it?
The Messenger of Allah recited:
And for those who fear Allah, He (ever) prepares a way out245 (Ibn
Majah, Zuhd, 24)
:
.
203. Sad b. Abu Waqqas (r.a.) narrated that I heard Allahs Messenger
(pbuh) as saying:
Allah loves the servant who is God-conscious and is free from want and is
hidden (from the view of people). (Muslim, Kitab al-Zuhd wa al-Raqaiq, 11)
455
....
:
:
.
205. Abu Umama (r.a.) says: I listened to the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) in
the Farewell Sermon while he was speaking to people. He said the following:
Be pious towards Allah who is your Lord! Pray five times a day. Fast during the month of Ramadhan. Pay the mandatory Alms (zakat) rightfully out of
your wealth. Obey your rulers! (In this case) you would (directly) go to your
Lords Heaven. (Tirmidhi, Juma, 80/616)
456
:
:
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
:
:
207. Zaid b. Arkam (r.a.) reported: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) used
to supplicate:
O Allah, grant to my soul the sense of righteousness and purify it, for
Thou art the Best Purifier thereof. You are the Protecting Friend thereof, and
Guardian thereof. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Dhikr, 73)
Explanations:
Taqwa (piety) means to stay away, protect, hesitate, keep away from things
that are disliked, to protect oneself from dangers, and to place a bar between
himself and the things that he is afraid of. Piety means to carefully protect oneself from the things that can hurt and cause pain in the Hereafter by seeking
refuge in the protection and trust of Allah and to hold on to righteous deeds by
staying away from sins.
The lower limit of piety is to protect oneself from disbelief and associating
partners with Allah. Its mid level is to leave great and lesser sins, and the upper
level is to protect the heart from all kinds of negative thoughts and to turn away
from everything (masiwa) other than Allah. There is no limit or end for this
state of piety. For each pious person, there is always a higher rank that he can
rise up to. This spiritual journey continues until death.
457
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
he finds his sustenance, he can never reach the level of Muttaqi (pious). (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah, 25/2459)
Almighty Allah cites the attributes of his servants who are pious (righteous) as follows:
To have faith in Allah, the hereafter, angels, books, and prophets,
To spend in charity for the kin, for orphans, for the needy, for the wayfarer, for those who ask, and for the slaves from the good and liked part of ones
possessions because of the love or Allah.
To perform the ritual prayer
To give the mandatory alms (zakat)
To keep ones promise when an agreement is made
To be patient in pain (or suffering) and adversity, illness, and war. (AlBaqarah; 2:177)
459
Piety is the most important sustenance for the Hereafter. It saves a person
from eternal torment, makes him reach the heaven and Allahs consent.
Almighty Allah says the following:
And take a provision (with you) for the journey, but the best of provisions is right conduct. So fear Me, O you that are wise. (Al-Baqarah; 2:197)
In our first hadith, it is emphasized that piety needs to encompass all
aspects of life. Wherever and in whatever state a person is, he needs to know
Allah as being with him and even closer than his jugular vein. In case he commits a sin due to falling into heedlessness, he should immediately pull himself together, and, after repenting and asking for forgiveness, should do a good
deed as expiation for his sin. In this case, his wrongdoing will be erased and he
will become all pure again.
Indeed, the life of a believer should pass with this kind of struggle to erase
evil deeds and make good deeds victorious. A believer should spend all his
effort in protecting himself from Allahs torment and achieving His contentment.
Indeed, Almighty Allah commands His servants as follows:
O you who believe! Fear Allah as He should be feared, and die not
except in a state of Islam. (Al-i Imran; 3:102)
So fear Allah as much as you can; listen and obey and spend in charity for the benefit of your own soul and those saved from the covetousness
of their own souls, they are the ones that achieve prosperity. (Al-Taghabun;
64:16)
How examplary the following example is, which reflects the spiritual state
of a believer who fears Allah even in lonely places and he had opportunities:
Abdullah ibn Umar (r.aanhuma) was out somewhere near Medina. A table
was spread to eat. At that instance, a sheep sheppard stopped by and greeted
them.
Ibn Umar (r.anhuma) said
Come O sheppard, lets eat,
The Sheppard responded:
460
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
I am fasting.
Ibn Umar said with awe:
Are you fasting in this severe and suffocating heat? In addition, you are
shepparding sheep in this state.
Afterwards, in order to measure the sense of piety and loyalty of the sheppard he proposed:
Why dont you sell us a sheep from this flock? We can pay you its price,
and give you from its meat sufficient for you to break your fast in sunset. He
responded:
I dont have a flock, these sheep belong to my master.
Ibn Umar (r.a.) said:
You can say you lost it, how will your master know?
The shepard turned his face away from him, raised his finger towards the
sky and said:
Where is Allah?
Ibn Umar (r.a.) was very much touched by this piety state of the shepard.
He continued repeating the words of the shepard to himself as The shepard
said Where is Allah, The shepard said Where is Allah.
When he arrived at Medina, he sent a messenger to the master of the shepard, and he purchased the flock and the shepard. He emancipated the shepard
who was a slave and donated the flock to him. (Ibn Athir, Usd al-Ghaba, III, 341)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) has shown us the way in order to reach the
state of piety that our Exalted Lord wants us to reach. As expressed in our second hadith, this way, which is extremely easy and short, is to keep away from
even some permissible things that are close to harmful and doubtful things due
to the fear of falling into harmful things.
Almighty Allah commands as follows:
Those are limits (set by) Allah. Approach not near thereto. Thus
does Allah make clear His Signs to men: that they may learn self-restraint
(Al-Baqarah; 2:187)
461
In order never to fall into sin, the believer should have a sincere intention
and should be as careful as possible. He should stay away from certain permissible things that he does not need or that would be wasteful. He should act
carefully, thinking that every bounty has to be accounted for. One should know
that it is a more foresightful act to use something in the way of good rather
than to be accountable for it.
The soundest dress that protects one from the hot and cold of the eternal
life is not to approach to the borders of harmful thing. Allah the Almighty
called this the Dress of Piety (Raiment of Righteousness). This dress not only
protects a person from embarrassment in the spiritual world, but also helps
him look beautiful and ornamented thee.
How nicely our Exalted Lord speaks:
O you Children of Adam! We have bestowed raiment upon you to
cover your shame, as well as to be an adornment to you. But the raiment of
righteousness, that is the best. Such are among the Signs of Allah, that they
may receive admonition! (Al-Araf; 7:26)
After stating the necessity of dressing for the body, Allah the Almighty
emphasizes that in fact one should pay attention to the dress of the spirit. It
protects the person from harm in the endless world, protects from embarrassing things, and adorns him in the best fashion.
Our second hadith explains that in order to achieve piety one should have
determination and spend effort. Umar says the following to point out this
fact:
A person who does not try to protect himself from sin is not allowed to
attain piety. (Bukhari, al-Adab al-Mufrad, no: 371)
Anas b. Malik (r.a.) explains Umars effort in this respect as follows:
I heard Umar b. Khattabs voice. I went to him immediately. At that time,
someone had entered the garden. There was a wall between us. I heard him say
as follows in the garden:
O Umar b. Khattab, the ruler of believers! Look: be careful, be careful! By
Allah, either you have piety for Allah or He torments you. (Muwatta, Kalam, 24)
462
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Indeed, Umar reached the level of pious people (al-muttaqin) by continuously prompting himself with warnings of piety and with his piety became ever
famous. May Allah bless him.
Piety, which is hard to attain, is such a blessing that it is enough for all
people both in this world and in the Hereafter. In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us that if people acted upon a certain verse it
would sufficient for all of them and recited the following noble verse:
Such is the admonition given to him who believes in Allah and the
Last Day. And for those who fear Allah, He (ever) prepares a way out.247
In the following verses, Almighty Allah cites the bounties that He will
favor upon people of piety as follows:
And He provides for him from (sources) he never could imagine. (AlTalaq; 65:3)
and for those who fear Allah, He will make their path easy. That is
the Command of Allah, which He has sent down to you: and if any one fears
Allah, He will remove his ills, from him, and will enlarge his reward. (AlTalaq; 65:4-5)
463
Hereafter, seeing the marriage of ones kids, health, wellness are all bounties.
So, the pious people are provided with such material and spiritual bounties.
There is one more favor of Almighty Allah to His pious servants, and it is
also very important.
It is said in a noble verse:
O you who believe! If you fear Allah, He will grant you a criterion
(to judge between right and wrong), remove from you (all) evil (that may
afflict) you, and forgive you: for Allah is the Lord of grace unbounded. (AlAnfal; 8:29)
Thanks to the ability and understanding that are favored upon him due to
his precision against the commands and prohibitions of Allah, the servant of
Allah can separate right from wrong and achieves bliss in both worlds. Even in
the most difficult or negative circumstances, he finds a way out and transforms
all of his works into good.
The rewards of such a life that is lived upon such piety are bounties such as:
To achieve the praise,248 friendship,249 help against enemies,250 love251 of
Almighty Allah.
To achieve honor in the sight of Allah (Al-Hujurat; 49:13)
To have our conduct made whole and sound and our sins forgiven (AlAhzab; 33:70-71)
464
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Hereafter, in the sight of our Lord is for the righteous (pious).254 They
are in a position of security there.255 The gardens, springs, the rivers, cool shades
and all kinds of bounties are prepared for them.256
Almighty Allah speaks as follows:
As to the Righteous, they will be in the midst of Gardens and Rivers,
in an Assembly of Truth, in the Presence of a Sovereign Omnipotent. (AlQamar; 54:54-55)
Could there be a greater achievement than this? May our Lord bestow it
upon all of us Amin!
In our fourth hadith, on the other hand, we are informed that Allah loves
His servants who live a pious life. In the noble verses it is said that:
Verily Allah loves those who act aright. (Al-i Imran; 3:76)
Allah is with those who restrain themselves. (Al-Baqarah; 2:194, At-Tawbah; 9:36, Al-Nahl; 16:128)
Allahs love for one of His servants and His being with him is a bounty
whose value is so high that it cannot be appreciated. Indeed, Almighty Allah gives the glad tidings that He will give these unmatched bounties to pious
people.
A pious believer would be a person of charity, and would be precise in his
worship, and hurts no one. He would stay away carefully from violations of
other peoples rights. Since he is an amicable person, everyone likes him and
he likes everyone. Such a servant is liked by Almighty Allah and the Prophet,
and other servants.
Indeed our Master the Pride of Universe (pbuh) says:
For sure my friends are only the God-fearing. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Fitan Wa
Al-Malahim, 1/4242)
The closest ones to me among the people are the pious for Allah whoever
and wherever they are. (Ahmad, V, 235; Haythami, IX, 22)
254. Al-Zuhruf; 43:35.
255. Al-Duhan; 44:51.
256. Al-Rad; 13:35; Al-Duhan; 44:51-55; Al-Hijr; 15:45; Al-Zariyat; 51:15; Al-Tur; 52:17; AlQamar; 54;54; Al-Qalam; 68:34; Al Mursalat; 77:41; An-Naba; 78:31-36.
465
This is because such people are the most noble, righteous, and valuable
among the creation. Indeed, in our fifth hadith, when people asked the Prophet who the most superior among the people are, he responded as The most
pious ones.
The differences among people such as race, color, nation, tribe, wealth,
and property are determined by Almighty Allah due to many kinds of wisdom.
People have no choice on them. So, these are not things that one should truly
take pride in. The only honor that will cause a human to be praised in the sight
of God is the state of piety that he obtained through great effort.
It is said in the Noble Quran:
O mankind! We created you from a single (pair) of a male and a female, and made you into nations and tribes, that you may know each other
(not that you may despise (each other). Verily the most honored of you in
the sight of Allah is (he who is) the most righteous of you. And Allah has
full knowledge and is well acquainted (with all things). (Al-Hujurat; 49:13)
The following event which is the reason for the revelation of this verse and
which shows how honorable the pious people are in the sight of both Allah and
His Messenger is very exemplary:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) stopped by in one of the markets
of the Medina. In the market a black slave was being sold by auction. The slave
was saying:
I have one condition for the person who will be my owner.
One of the potential owners said:
What is your condition?
The slave said:
He will not prevent me from praying behind the Messenger of Allah in
obligatory prayers.
The man accepted this condition and purchased the slave.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) would always see this slave coming to the
obligatory prayers. One day, he again looked for him but could not see him. He
asked the slaves owner, Where is your slave? He said:
466
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
467
To those who came to him asking What is the most significant thing that
would make one go to Heaven? he again recommended piety and good manners. (Tirmidhi, Birr, 62/2004; Ibn Majah, Zuhd, 29)
Also, when he was passing away his last words have been on piety.
In our sixth hadith, we also see and advice that shows how important
piety is.
He who took an oath, but he found something else better than that, should
do that which is better and break his oath. (Muslim, Aiman 15)
In fact, taking a vow is binding and one needs to keep it. A person who
turns away from his vow needs to fulfill some kind of expiation (kaffarah) as
punishment.258 Even though taking an oath has such significance in Islam,
breaking an oath and doing the action closer to piety is advised by the Prophet
(pbuh) when it comes to matters related to piety.
In this respect, how teaching the following event is:
A beggar came to Adi b. Hatimm (r.a.) and begged him to give him the
price of a slave, or some portion of the price of the slave. He (Adi) said:
Currently, I have nothing to give you except my coat-of-mail and helmet.
I will, however, write to my family to give that to you, but he did not agree to
that.
Thereupon Adi was enraged, and said:
By Allah, I will not give you anything. The person (then) agreed to accept Adis offer, whereupon Adi (r.a.) said:
258. The expiation (kaffarah) for taking an oath, if one can afford it, is to free a Muslim or nonMuslim slave or she-slave. Those who cannot afford this should moderately dress ten poor
people, if they are unable to do that, they should feed 10 poor people in the morning and
evening, and if they are also unable to do that, they should fast for three days in sequence.
The monetary compensation should be given to the poor, giving it to mosques and other
similar institutions are not permissible.
468
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
By Allah, had I not heard Allahs Messenger (pbuh) saying: He who took
an oath, but then found something more pious in the sight of Allah, he should
(break the oath) and do that which is more pious, I would not have broken my
oath (and thus paid you anything). (Muslim, Kitab al-Aiman, 15, 19; Imara, 13. Also see.
Bukhari, Ahkam, 5, 6; Kitab al-Aiman, 1; Kaffarat, 10)
Piety comes first among the characteristics to be asked from Allah the
Almighty. For this reason, as it can be seen in our eight hadith and in other
narrations, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had always asked for piety from
Almighty Allah. He said in his supplications:
O Allah. I beg of You the right guidance, piety, chastity and freedom from
want. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Dhikr, 72; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 72; Ibn Majah, Dua, 2)
When he was going on a trip he used to say:
O Allah! We pray from you goodness and piety in this trip and that you
allow us to do deeds that would please you. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Hajj, 425; Abu Dawud,
Jihad, 72; Tirmidhi, Daawat, 45-46)
Let us too ask for piety from our Exalted Lord and try to be a pious believer.
7. To Leave Certain Desires and Passions
.
:
208. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
The (Hell) Fire is surrounded by all kinds of desires and passions, while
Paradise is surrounded by all kinds of disliked undesirable things. (Bukhari, alRiqaq, 28; Muslim, Jannah, 1. Also see. Abu Dawud, Sunnah, 22; Tirmidhi, Jannah, 21; Nasai,
Aiman, 3)
469
.
:
:
:
:
:
. :
209. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When Allah created Paradise, He said to Gabriel:
Go and look at it! He went and looked at it, then came and said:
O my Lord! By Your might, no one who hears of it will fail to enter it.
Allah then surrounded it with disagreeable things, and said:
Go and look at it, Gabriel!
He went and looked at it, then came and said:
O my Lord! By Your might, I am afraid that no one will enter it.
When Allah created Hell, He said:
Go and look at it, Gabriel!
He went and looked at it, then came and said:
O my Lord! By Your might, no one who hears of it will enter it!
Allah then surrounded it with desirable things and said:
470
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
.
:
.
210. Abu Barza (r.a.) narrated that the Noble Prophet (pbuh) said as follows:
One of the things that I fear most about you is strong desires that lead you to
excess in the matters of your stomachs and chastity, another one is the possibility
that your desires and passions to lead you to fall into heresy. (Ahmad, IV, 420, 423;
Haythami, I, 188; Abu Nuaym, Hilya, II, 32)
471
: :
Explanations:
Almighty Allah has created humans prone towards both good and evil.
He taught humans both mischief and piety. In everything, He has stated its evil
and goodness, what is good and bad, what is beneficial and harmful by saying
things like This is evil, bad, and sinful, it would lead yourself to mischief, so
dont do it! This, on the other hand, leads to piety, goodness and obedience,
and protection from evil, so do it! So, He directed us and stated that we should
keep away from one and do the other. (Al-Shams; 91:7-8)
In addition, Almighty Allah had clearly stated right and wrong and established criteria called prohibited and permissible by sending prophets and
books. Then, in order to test humans who He gave intellect, understanding,
and self-control capacity, He left them alone with their choice between these
two paths.
In a verse it is said:
And shown him the two paths? (Al-Balad; 90:10)
However, also, with the deception of Satan, the carnal self of humans tend
towards the prohibited rather than the permissible. The prohibited and unac472
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
ceptable seem to him as more beautiful and attractive. The carnal self dislikes
the difficulties of worships, good deeds, and charities. It tends towards things
that come easy such as, leisure, entertainment, and personal benefits. These are
called the passions and desires.
Desire (hawa) has meanings such as wants, passion, tendency, descending
just like that of a falcon, fall, be destroyed, that a cup is empty, fruitless, and
valueless. It is used to mean more for the tendency of the carnal self towards
the bad desires prohibited by the intellect and religion; and also for deviating
from the honesty, truth, and virtue and tending towards pleasure and personal
benefits. So, staying away from passion and desires is one of the most important attributes of a believer. This is because such desires are the catastrophe of
the intellect.
Even if a person advances to the highest levels of sainthood, he is still face
to face with the tricks, whispers (causing baseless anxiety), and traps of the
worldly attractions, carnal self, and Satan. As a matter of fact, the value of being
a servant to Allah is becoming a pious person by defeating the attractive deceptions of this mortal world and as a result tending towards Allah.
Since humans came to this world for the test of servanthood to Allah, their
mission is to struggle with the passions and desires of the carnal self until the
moment of death and to direct it towards worship and good deeds.
However, the struggle with the desires of the carnal self is not an easy matter. For this reason, it is named by the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) as the Great
Struggle (Jihad).
According to Jabirs (r.a.) narration, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to
the veterans returning from a difficult expedition:
You have come in the best fashion. You have returned from the lesser jihad
to the greater (or greatest) jihad.
They asked:
What is greater (the greatest) jihad?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) responded:
It is the struggle of the slave of God with his desires. (Baihaqi, al-Zuhd al-Kabir,
p. 198/374; Suyuti, Jami, II, 73/6107)
473
Also, the Prophet has praised those who struggle against their desires and
passions as:
(The true) mujahid is the person who struggles against his carnal self. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Jihad, 2/1621; Ahmad, VI, 20)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
desires and keeps on asking from Allah (and sees this as sufficient). (Tirmidhi, Qiyamah 25/2459. Also see Ibn Majah, Zuhd 31; Ahmad, IV, 124; Hakim, IV, 251)
When a person obeys the desires of his carnal self, he moves away from
purifying his soul with virtuous things and gives it to evil deeds and bad manners. Finally, he buries his soul in material by rotting it with bestial purposes
and evil and dark feelings and hence makes it deserve to be thrown into hellfire.
For this reason, the friends of Allah have seen the passions and desires of
the carnal self as one of the biggest dangers for their spiritual and moral lives.
This is because the Prophet has mentioned the desire that is followed among
the things that cause distraction. (Munawi, Faid al-Qadir, III, 404/3471)
Mujahid, one of the great scholars of the Successors, said as follows:
I am not sure which one of these two favors of Allah is greater: that He
led me to the true path of Islam or that He protected me from the desires of my
carnal self (Darimi, Muqaddima, 30)
Also, Harith al-Muhasibi says:
Whatever comes to you from Satan, who is your enemy, comes via the
desires of your carnal self. (al-Riaya, p. 325)
One needs to be extremely alert and careful against the passions and desires of the carnal self. Otherwise, a person can be deceived, tricked by it, and
falls into one of its countless traps.
Some of the warnings of Mawlana Jalaladdin Rumi in his Mathnawi are
as follows:
A person with a carnal soul is like Pharaoh, and his body is his Moses: he
keeps running (to and fro) outside, asking, Where is my enemy? His fleshly soul
(is) luxuriating in the house, which is his body, (while) he gnaws his hand in rancour against some one else. (Mathnawi, II, v. 774-75)
O son, if you seek (to know) the form of the self, read the story of Hell with
its seven gates. (Mathnawi, I, v. 779)
What you call carnal soul is a triagonal thorn: however you may place it,
it will pierce, and how will you escape from its stab? Set the thorn on fire with
475
renunciation of sensual passion, and cling to the righteous friend. (Mathnawi, III,
v. 375-76)
The scoundrel carnal self tries to lead you to a worldly gain. For how long
will you continue to busy yourself with such temporary worldly gain? Enough
already that you have spent so much time on it.
Even though the carnal self gives you fresh promises about goodness and
righteousness he violates those promises and repentances thousands of times.
Even if life gives you a term of a thousand years, your carnal self will find a new
excuse every day. (Mathnawi, II, v. 2279-80)
If that scoundrel carnal self asks from you righteous deeds that are noble
and sacred that is, deeds that will provide you with spiritual benefits, do not be
deceived! Behind this demand, there would be a trick of that enemy carnal self.
(Mathnawi, II, v. 2274)
The fleshly soul hath glorification of God (on its tongue), and the Quran
in its right hand; (but) in its sleeve (it hath) dagger and sword. (Mathnawi, III, v.
2554)
Be careful! You have ridden in chase of a deer and have made yourself the
prey of a hog! In other words, you become a slave to your carnal self while you
are trying to walk in the path of Allah. (Mathnawi, VI, v. 3684)
All people except those who got drunk with the love of Allah are like children. None except those who have freed themselves from passions and desires
have reached the age of adolescence.
You, O prayerless man, have put the polisher of the heart (or Reason) in
bonds and have loosed the two hands of passions and desires. If bonds be put on
sensuality, the hand of the polisher (Reason) will be untied. A piece of iron that
became a mirror of the Unseen - all the forms (of the Unseen) would be shot into
it. (Mathnawi, VI, v. 2476-78)
As it is repeatedly expressed by the friends of Allah, passions and desires
are the worst traps of Satan. The people who are drifted by them do not usually
even understand that they are in error. They get consumed in them so much
that they never even think of asking for forgiveness for their sins and turning
to Allah.
Imam Awzai narrates:
476
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
If the carnal self is left alone, it follows the things that it likes without
thinking where they end. However, one should never forget that poison is
presented in a golden cup. Those who act only by looking at the outside appearance of things will eventually face their miserable end. Those who sweetly
scratch a wound on their body will soon notice that it turns into a large one
which gives them a lot of pain.
The statement in our hadith Hell is surrounded by the wants and lustful
desires of the carnal self shows that the drifting of people to Hell is mostly
the result of their following the passions and desires of their carnal self. Since
carnal self tends towards lustful desires, Gabriel (pbuh) states his fears in our
second hadith that a great majority of humans will be drifted to Hell.
The expression in the hadith that Heaven is surrounded by difficulties
states that entering there is possible only by following Allahs commands, staying away from His prohibitions, resisting the passions and desires of the carnal
self, and enduring all the difficulties that will be faced in this path.
Since it is not the easy to conduct all of these fully and correctly, Gabriel
(pbuh) has feared that humans will not be able to enter there.
The commands and prohibitions of Allah are difficult for the carnal self
but they are like capital for the eternal bliss to the soul. Indeed, Abdurrahman
b. Awf (r.a.) says:
Islam has brought commands that were not pleasing to the carnal self.
We found the best of the best in these difficult commands that our carnal selves
disliked. For example, we had emigrated by exiting Mecca with the Messenger
of Allah (pbuh). With the emigration that was hard on our carnal souls, superiority and victory were granted to us (the paths of victory were opened).
Again, we unwillingly went to Badr accompanying the Messenger of Allah thinking that we were almost being driven to death. Allah the Exalted describes our situation at that moment as follows:
Just as your Lord ordered you out of your house in truth, even though
a party among the Believers disliked it, disputing with you concerning the
truth after it was made manifest, as if they were being driven to death and
they (actually) saw it. (Al-Anfal; 8:5-6)
At the end, Almighty Allah favored us with dominance and victory in
Badr.
478
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In short, we always reached the best favors thanks to the commands that
were difficult upon our carnal self. (Haythami, VII, 26-27)
Almighty Allah gives the following glad tidings to his servants who leave
their desires and live a pious life:
And for such as had entertained the fear of standing before their Lords
(tribunal) and had restrained (their) soul from lower desires, their abode
will be the Garden. (An-Naziat; 79:40-41)
With his deep mercy to his followers, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
warned them in order to to save them from Hell and go to Heaven. Indeed,
in our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) states that the greatest of
worries that he has for his nation are passions and desires.
It is definite that a person who does not struggle with his carnal self and
agrees with all of its desires will eventually turn to wrong paths. This is because
desires are the greatest reasons for falling into heresy according to the Noble
Quran. Almighty Allah commands the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) as follows:
Say: I am forbidden to worship those - others than Allah - whom you
call upon. Say: I will not follow your wain desires: If I did, I would stray
from the path, and be not of the company of those who receive guidance.
(Al-Anam; 6:56)
In another verse, it is stated that none are more astray than those who follow their own desires:
But if they hearken not to you, know that they only follow their own
lusts: and who is more astray than one who follow his own lusts, devoid of
guidance from Allah for Allah guides not people given to wrong-doing.
(Qasas; 28:50)
This is because either the person will obey the commands of Allah or follow the desires of the carnal self. Doing them simultaneously is impossible.
How nicely the poet expresses this:
With two qibla one cannot go straight on the path of tawhid,
Either the consent of the Friend or the desires of the carnal self will prevail.
479
It is not possible to get the carnal self fully satisfied and leave wrongdoings
by itself. As one allows it to taste its desires, it asks for more and greater. How
nicely Mawlana Jalaladdin Rumi describes this:
Fiery lust is not diminished by indulging it: it is diminished, without any
escape (inevitably), by leaving it (ungratified). So long as thou art laying faggots on a fire, how will the fire be extinguished by a carrier of faggots? (Mathnawi, I, 3703-4)
In time, the rampant carnal self asks for so many things that if they are
done, neither the individuals, nor the societies, nor the universes order can
stand. This is because the carnal soul always thinks of the pleasuring and entertaining aspects of things and never bothers with whether it is right or wrong.
Almighty Allah speaks as follows:
If the Truth had been in accord with their desires, truly the heavens
and the earth, and all beings therein would have been in confusion and corruption! Nay, We have sent them their admonition, but they turn away from
their admonition. (Al-Muminun; 23:71)
It would also be appropriate here to point out the grave danger of the
people who would like to understand and interpret the Quran according to
their own desires.
Those who follow their passion and desires fall into the great heresy of
prioritizing their desires before all and adopting them as their gods. While they
hold onto none of Allahs commands, they want to realize all kinds of passions
and desires that they have. Almighty Allah criticizes such people with a heavy
style and speaks as follows:
Do you see such the one as takes for his god his own passion (or impulse)? Could you be a disposer of affairs for him? Or do you think thou
that most of them listen or understand? They are only like cattle; nay, they
are worse astray in Path. (Al-Furqan; 25:43-44, Al-Jasiyah; 45:23)
Those who follow their desires pretend not to have heard the verses of Allah and do not take lessons from the signs of His power in this universe. Since
their carnal selves are pleased by swimming in heedlessness, they never want
to wake up. Since they do all these even though they are bestowed with intellect
and they know the truth, they fall into lower levels than animals. (Al-Araf; 7:179;
(Al-Furqan; 25:43-44)
480
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) also expressed that he is distant from those
following their desires, and they are also distant from him. (Haythami, VII, 22)
When it is carefully analyzed, it can be inferred from the hadith that all of
the attributes listed here emerge due to being subject of ones desires. For this
reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) was worried about his followers who
were the subjects of their desires and he said:
For my followers, I am most worried that they listen to their carnal desires.
(See Haythami, I, 187; Suyuti, I, 12)
In various verses of the Noble Quran, following those who are subjects of
their desires is also strictly forbidden. That is because acting this way drags one
to disaster as well. The thing that Muslims should do is to act upon knowledge
rather than accepting the leadership of those who are the followers of their own
481
desires. Since the source of knowledge is divine revelations, revelation and human desires are contradictory and opposite of each other. It is expressed in a
noble verse:
Never will the Jews or the Christians be satisfied with you unless thou
follow their form of religion. Say: The Guidance of Allah, that is the (only)
Guidance. Were you to follow their desires after the knowledge which has
reached you, then would you find neither Protector nor helper against Allah. (Al-Baqarah; 2:120)
Say: O people of the Book! exceed not in your religion the bounds (of
what is proper), trespassing beyond the truth, nor follow the vain desires
of people who went wrong in times gone by, who misled many, and strayed
(themselves) from the even way. (Al-Maidah; 5:77)
For this reason, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised us to take refuge in
Allah often from the evils of the carnal self. In our forth hadith, when one of
the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked How should we pray
in the morning, evening, and when we go to sleep? he taught them a prayer
and first of all said We take refuge in You my Lord from the evils of our carnal
selves.
Again the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in one of his sermon prayers:
We take refuge from the evils within ourselves. (Abu Dawud, Kitab Al-Nikah,
31-32/2118; Tirmidhi, Kitab Al-Nikah, 17/1105; Nasai, Juma, 14)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
are few and people who give are many, when the prayers are performed long
and sermons are kept short, and when good deeds are preferred over wants and
desires. There will be a time period when canonists will be few and ignorant
readers will be many, people will pay attention to the recitation of the letters
and the words of the Quran but will not pay attention to practicing the commands in the Quran, there will be many people who will ask for something but
few people who will give, they will keep the performance of the prayer short
but the sermon long, and their wants and desires will be preferred over their
good deeds. (Muwatta, Qasr al-Salat, 88; Bukhari, al-Adab al-mufrad, no: 789)
May Our Almighty Lord protect us from the evils of our carnal selves
and from being the slaves of their wishes and desires! May Allah make us
among His servants who abandon his desires and look for the content of the
Friend!
Amin!.
8. Not to be fooled by Satan
:
:
.()
212. Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Surely Satan and angels can have a guiding influence upon the hearts of
humans. Satans influence is guiding towards the wrong deeds and to deny the
truth and the angels influence is towards the good deeds and to acknowledge the
483
truth. Those who feel the influence towards the good deeds should acknowledge
that this is from Allah and thank Him. Those who sense a feeling that encourages
him towards wrong deeds should take refuge in Almighty Allah from the evils of
the expelled Satan.
Then the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) recited the following verse from the
Noble Quran:
The Evil one threatens you with poverty and bids you to conduct unseemly. (Al-Baqarah; 2:268) (Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 2/2988)
213. Ali b. al-Husain narrated from Safiya (r.anha), the respected wife of
the Prophet:
484
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The wives of the Prophet were with him in the mosque (while he was in
retreat (itikaf)) and after a while they wanted to depart. The Prophet (pbuh)
said to Safiya bint Huyai:
Dont hurry, for I shall accompany you.
That is because her home was a little far and it was later given to Usama
b. Zaid. The Prophet (pbuh) went out to accompany her. In the meantime two
Ansari men met him and they looked at the Prophet and (upon seeing that his
family was with him) passed by quickly.
The Prophet said to them:
Come here. She is (my wife) Safiya bint Huyai.
They replied:
Subhan Allah, (How dare we think of evil) O Allahs Apostle! (We never
expect anything bad from you).
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Satan circulates in the human being as blood circulates in the body, and I
was afraid lest Satan might insert an evil thought in your minds. (Bukhari, Itikaf,
11. Also see Bukhari, Badul-halk, 11; Ahkam, 21; Muslim, Salam, 23-25; Abu Dawud, Sawm, 79;
Adab, 81; Ibn Majah, Siyam, 65)
: .
:
485
.(
:
.
.
:
215. Abu Huraira (r.a.) reported the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) as saying:
When the call to prayer is made, Satan runs back and breaks wind so as not
to hear the call being made, and when the call is finished. He turns round when
Iqama is proclaimed he turns his back, and when it is finished he turns round to
distract a man, saying: Remember such and such; remember such and such, referring to something the man did not have in his mind, with the result that he does
486
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
not know how much he has prayed. (Muslim, Salah, 19. Also see Bukhari, Adhan, 4; Amal
fi al-Salat, 18; Sahw, 6; Bad al-khalk, 11; Abu Dawud, Salat, 31; Nasai, Adhan, 20, 30)
: .
:
: .
487
Explanations:
When Almighty Allah created the man and wanted angels to prostrate to
him, all of the angels followed the command of Allah except the arrogant Satan
and He said, Shall I bow down to one whom Thou didst create from clay?
(Al-Isra; 17:61)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
Upon this, Satan swore that he will trick up sins and try everything to
misguide humans and approach them from everywhere:
Then will I assault them from before them and behind them, from
their right and their left: Nor will you find, in most of them, gratitude (for
your mercies). (Al-Araf; 7:17)
However, He let us know that the servants who found salvation are exceptions since Satans power is not enough for them.
Almighty Allah many times warned Satan and his followers by scaring
them with Hell. (See Al-Araf; 7:11-18; Al-Hijr; 15:30-44; Sad; 38:71-85)
Later, our Almighty Lord placed the first human Adam and our mother
Eve to Paradise. Allah let them take from all of the blessings as much as they
want but He forbade them to approach to one tree. At that moment, the testing of mankind has started. Satan got took action and got closer to them with
many tricks. Satan took many vows, told lies, made false promises, said I want
good for you, gave advices, misguided them, and finally deceived them.
This is told in verses of the Noble Quran as:
Then began Satan to whisper suggestions to them, bringing openly
before their minds all their shame that was hidden from them (before): he
said: Your Lord only forbade you this tree, lest you should become angels
or such beings as live forever. And he swore to them both, that he was their
sincere adviser. So by deceit he brought about their fall: when they tasted of
the tree, their shame became manifest to them, and they began to sew together the leaves of the garden over their bodies. And their Lord called unto
them: Did I not forbid you that tree, and tell you that Satan was an avowed
enemy unto you? (Al-Araf; 7:20-22)
Satan deceived man by taking advantage of his greed and desire to be eternal. Therefore, we must be careful about these feelings.
When they rose against the Divine Command by following Satan, Allah
the Almighty ordered them out of His Paradise and sent them to Earth, the
world of difficulties, as enemies to each other. Therefore, the testing and the
troubles of humankind have started. (Al-Baqarah; 2:36, Al-Araf; 7:24)
Allah tells this happening to humans for us to take a lesson and warns us as:
489
He did lead me astray from the Message (of Allah) after it had come to
me! Ah! The Evil One is but a traitor to man! (Al-Furqan; 25:29)
About the (Evil One) it is decreed that whoever turns to him for
friendship, him will he lead astray, and he will guide him to the Penalty of
the Fire. (Al-Hajj; 22:4)
Allah the Exalted talks about the intentions and the tricks of Satan in the
Quran and explains them in detail, and He asks His servants:
...What! Would you then take him and his offspring for friends rather
than Me, and they are your enemies? Evil is (this) change for the unjust.
(Kahf; 18:50)
After all these warnings of our Almighty Lord, it would be expected that
man would use his intelligence and be aware of the tricks of Satan. It would be
expected that he would not be fooled by the suggestions of Satan and would not
follow his orders. It would be wished that he would notice the tricks and traps
of Satan soon and save both himself and his brothers. However, it did not happen. Most humans followed their eternal enemy despite of all these warnings.
They got be fooled by the easy traps of Satan and followed him step by step.
There were even times where people got more evil than Satan himself. They
even left Satan open-mouthed with astonishment and got away from them by
490
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
making Satan say I am far from you, I am afraid of Allah the Lord of all universes. (Al-Hashr; 59:16) (Al-Anfal; 8:48)
Almighty Allah reproaches His servants as:
And on them did Satan prove true his idea, and they followed him, all
but a party that believed. But he had no authority over them, except that We
might test the man who believes in the Hereafter from him who is in doubt
concerning it: and your Lord does watch over all things. (Al-Saba; 34:20-21)
As a matter of fact, Satan cannot drag people to sinful acts by holding
from their hands. He can only whisper into their ears. On the other hand, angels give inspirations to humans, too. As a matter of fact, in our first hadith, it
is expressed that both Satan and angels can influence humans and Satan calls
them to evil deeds and angels call them to good ones. When someone starts to
be carried away by feelings and thoughts that distract him towards the wrong
way, he must understand that this comes from Satan and must take refuge in
Allah right away.
If a person acts fairly, he can easily sense whether the thoughts inspired
in his heart is coming from Satan or the angels. That is because Satan always
suggests impudicity, shamelessness and bad manners.259 On the other hand,
angels suggest goodness, benevolence, and preparation for the Hereafter. At
this point, a person should try to pass the test by preferring goodness.
On the other hand Satan makes wrong deeds look attractive to people.260
When the carnal self gets carried away by this attraction, it becomes easier for
them to fall into the traps. Therefore it is necessary for a person to be aware of
these dangers at all times.
For the suggestions of Satan, Allah advised:
And if (at any time) an incitement to discord is made to you by the Evil
One, seek refuge in Allah. He is the One Who hears and knows all things.
(Al-Fussilat; 41:36)
For this reason, a person should take refuge in Allah from his carnal self,
Satan, and from the evil of other creatures by remembering Allah and praying
to Him at all times.
259. Al-Nur; 24:21.
260. Al-Anam; 6:43.
491
In our second hadith, we are informed that Satan circulates in the human being as blood circulates in the body, in other words Satan has a chance
to deceive and influence human beings and will work hard to do this and wont
miss any opportunity. However, this does not mean that Satan can do whatever
he wishes to do. While Almighty Allah has given him some time and permission for the purpose of testing, He has not given him unlimited power. As a
matter of fact, his traps are very weak.261 However, since carnal self is attracted
to sinful acts, people fall into these traps by themselves. Satan only invites to
sinful acts by making them look attractive and people usually fall into them
knowingly.
In our hadith, it is wished to express that Satan never stays unemployed
but whispers suggestions at every chance. For this reason, one must be careful
and alert to this humans eternal enemy. A believer should avoid deeds that
others may misinterpret and be careful not to be present in implacable positions. On the other hand, he himself as well should avoid bringing someone
under suspicion due to some acts right away and should not come to conclusion before understanding the truth of the matter. One must explain the truth
about the things that can be misinterpreted and should be careful about them.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) taught us a very nice way and method on this
issue.
In our third hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) explained Allahs
straight path and other ways that distract people from the true way by drawing
lines on the ground. In this way, he not only clearly and explicitly explained the
issue to us but he also taught us a very nice method of teaching.
There is only one right way. This way is the way of tawhid (oneness of
God) that unifies and does not dispel its followers. The other ways deviate from
this way more or less and drag people to wrong directions. The Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) informed us that there is Satan at the entrance of each of these
paths and invites people to these paths.
Satan makes the right way look difficult and unpleasant but the other ways
appealing and attractive. All paths except the straight one, various religions,
schools of thoughts, innovations, and deviances separate believers from the
way of Allah by dividing up them into sects and groups.
261. Al-Nisa; 4:76.
492
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
493
but one thousand and five hundred on the scale. When he goes to bed, he should
say:
Allah is Most Great thirty-four times, Praise be to Allah thirty-three
times, and Glory be to Allah thirty-three times, for that is a hundred on the
tongue and a thousand on the scale. (He said:)
I saw the Messenger of Allah (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) counting them on
his hand. The people asked:
O Messenger of Allah! How is it that while they are easy, those who act upon
them are few?He replied:
The Devil comes to one of you when he goes to bed and he makes him sleep,
before he utters them, and he comes to him while he is engaged in prayer and calls
a need to his mind before he utters them. (Tirmidhi, Daawat, 25/3410; Abu Dawud, Kitab
Al-Adab, 99-100/5065; Nasai, Sahw, 90)
In our fifth hadith, we are informed that Satan deceives people in their
social lives and sets them against each other and seeds hostility and enmity
plants among them.
The word irritation used in our hadith means to express all kinds of acts
that cause enmity, anarchy, and unrest. These are the works of Satan and his
followers. For this reason, one must act consciously when facing any irritation
and corruption that is contrary to the religious brotherhood and avoid making Satan happy. That is because every kind of huff, disconnection, enmity,
and disorder among Muslims is something evil that Satan wishes for and gets
happy about. In these situations one must act carefully and try to sustain the
friendship of brotherhood. Those who offend each should make peace with
each other no later than three days and everyone should apologize for the mistakes done and Muslims should approach to each other with tolerance.
The following story is very exemplary to explain how Satan works hard to
turn two Muslims against each other and what we should do to prevent this:
While the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) was sitting with some of his companions, a man reviled Abu Bakr and insulted him. But Abu Bakr remained silent.
He insulted him a second time, but Abu Bakr controlled himself. He insulted
him once more and Abu Bakr gave him the response he deserves.
Then the Apostle of Allah (pbuh) got up. Abu Bakr said:
494
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
In our sixth hadith, we are told about how Satan works to deceive people in their daily lives. Satan fights humans with his soldiers and warriors and
wants to be partners to them in their eating, drinking, sleeping, entering into
their houses, earning money, and raising children.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in his another saying:
The Satan is present with any one of you in everything he does; he is present
even when he eats food; so if any one of you drops a mouthful he should pick it up
and remove any of the filth on it, and then eat it, and should not leave it for the
Satan. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Ashriba, 133-135)
Satans wish to enter into houses, to spend the night there, to use the blessings of the house, to deceive the people in the house and to make them commit
sins. The thing which can prevent this is to recite basmala (or to say in the
name of Allah) when we are entering into a house. When someone does this,
Satan hears it and sadly tells his followers that they cannot enter into this house
that night. Also, they wait for the meal time thinking that they can benefit from
it. If basmala is not recited before eating in that house, Satans eat from the food
and take the blessings of the food away. Not remembering Allah is like a food
and nourishment to Satans and causes them to gain power. Then they start to
deceive the people of the house. If they recite basmala before eating, Satans
would understand that they will not get any benefit from them and leave the
house.
Satan wants to be partner in peoples works. This partnership starts when
someone leaves the house with some bad intentions and thoughts. This is explained in a noble hadith as:
There would be two flags in the hands of everyone when they leave their
houses; one of them would be in the hands of angel and the other one in the
495
hands of Satan. If the person leaves the house for something that Allah loves and
consistent with His contentment, then the angel follows him with the flag until
he returns to his house. If the person leaves the house for something that angers
Allah, then Satan follows him with the flag in his hands. That person would be
under the flag of Satan until he returns his house. (Ahmad, II, 323)
Almighty Allah informs us about the deceptions of Satan about wealth
and children as:
He said: Tell me. This is the one whom You have honored above me!
If You will but respite me to the Day of Judgment, I will surely bring his
descendants under my sway - all but a few! (Allah) said: Go your way; if
any of them follow you, verily Hell will be the recompense of you (all) an
ample recompense. Lead to destruction those whom you can among them,
with your (seductive) voice; make assaults on them with your cavalry and
your infantry; mutually share with them wealth and children; and make
promises to them. But Satan promises them nothing but deceit. As for My
servants, no authority shall you have over them: Enough is your Lord for a
Disposer of affairs. (Al-Isra; 17:62-65)
Overlooking mistakes and sinful acts by finding excuses in personal, social, and business life is all caused by Satans deception and empty promises.
People surrender to sinful acts for reasons such as wishing to earn more, to
be better, or to advance their condition. However, one must never forget that
carnal self and Satan have a finger in these things. A believer should hold on
to the rope of sincerity and piety and search to find them in order to gain the
protection and the help of Allah.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) warned believers about their acts as:
If anything (in the form of trouble) comes to you, dont say: If I had not done
that, it would not have happened so and so, but say: Allah did that what He had
ordained to do and your if opens the (gate) for the Satan. (Muslim, Kitab al-Qadar,
34. Also see Ibn Majah, Muqaddima, 10)
o ----------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gives the following advice in order to emphasize the importance of solidarity and unity against Satan:
Satan is a wolf among humans. Just like the wolf that hunts the sheep that
wanders away from the herd. Dont get divide up into groups. Dont abandon
congregations, social gatherings, and prayer rooms. (Ahmad, II, 400; V, 335; Hakim,
I, 73/59)
Satan whispers into the ears of people when they are alone or with someone
else. If there are three people, he would not come close to them. (Muwatta, Istidhan,
36)
As a matter of fact, Satan cannot harm anyone who does not have ill-intentions. That is because feeble indeed is the cunning of Satan.263 The thing
that makes him powerful is the desires and ambitions of people. As a matter of
fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
As long as a judge is just, Almighty Allah is with him (helps him). When he
becomes unjust, Allah leaves him and Satan comes close to him and never leaves
him alone. (Tirmidhi, Ahkam, 4/1330)
It is understood from the sayings of the Prophet (pbuh) and verses of the
Quran that Allah did not leave devils unconstrained and so they have to obey
some rules. It is seen that Satans have permission to be partner in the works
of those who forget to remember Allah and who have ill-natured intentions.
However, it is impossible for Satan to benefit from neither houses nor works
of those whose hearts are awake, who always remember Allah, who enter their
houses and start eating in the name of Allah, and who obey the commands of
Allah.
Almighty Allah treats with mercy and grace and protects His servants
from the tricks of Satan those who do their best to be pious and especially sincere. It is said in the noble Quran:
Were it not for the Grace and Mercy of Allah unto you, all but a few of
you would have fallen into the clutches of Satan. (Al-Nisa; 4:83)
No authority has he over those who believe and put their trust in their
Lord. His authority is over those only, who take him as patron and who join
partners with Allah. (Al-Nahl; 16:99-100)
263. Al-Nisa; 4:76.
497
Our Almighty Lord taught us the following prayer for the protection from
Satan:
And say: O my Lord! I seek refuge with Thee from the suggestions
of the Evil Ones. And I seek refuge with You O my Lord! Lest they should
come near me. (Al-Muminun; 23:97-98)
In summary, every act that makes Satan happy is against human salvation.
That is because Satans goal and pleasure is to harm people both materially and
spiritually. Therefore, one must disappoint Satan and must not be fooled by his
tricks by seeking refuge in Allah and remembering Him at all times.
498
.
:
.
218. Abdullah b. Amr (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
Even if it is one verse from me, make it available to others!.. (Bukhari,
Anbiya 50; Tirmidhi, Ilm, 13/2669; Darimi, Muqaddima, 46; Ahmad, II, 159,
202, 214)
: .
219. Abdullah b. Masud (r.a.) said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
say:
You will receive help and overcome your enemies, will gain war-booty and
will conquer many places. Whoever reaches this time period should be scared of Al499
lah, command goodness, and forbid wrong. Whoever tells a lie knowingly giving My
Name should prepare a place in Hell. (Tirmidhi, Fitan, 70/2257; Ahmad, I, 401, 436)
220. Abu Said al-Khudri (r.a.) narrated: I heard the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) saying:
He who amongst you sees something abominable should modify it with the
help of his hand; and if he is not strong enough to do it, then he should do it with
his tongue, and if he is not strong enough to do it, (even) then he should (abhor
it) from his heart, and that is the least of faith. (Muslim, Iman, 78. Also see. Tirmidhi,
Fitan, 11; Nasai, Iman, 17)
221. It is narrated from An-Numan bin Bashir that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
500
o -----------------------------
The example of the person abiding by Allahs order and restrictions in comparison to those who violate them is like the example of those persons who drew
lots for their seats in a boat. Some of them got seats in the upper part, and the others in the lower. When the latter needed water, they had to go up to bring water
(and that troubled the others), so they said:
Let us make a hole in our share of the ship (and get water) saving those who
are above us from troubling them.
So, if the people in the upper part left the others do what they had suggested,
all the people of the ship would be destroyed, but if they prevented them, both parties would be safe. (Bukhari, Shirkat, 6; Shahadat, 30. Also see Tirmidhi, Fitan, 12)
.
:
222. It is narrated from Hudaifa (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
I swear to Allah who holds my life in His hand, you either command goodness
and forbid evil or Allah will send a punishment on you soon, and then you would
pray Allah but your prayers would not be answered. (Tirmidhi, Fitan, 9/2169)
501
( )
:
:
223. One day Abu Bakr (r.a.) said the following after completing his supplication:
You people recite the following verse but dont quite get it correctly:
Guard your own souls: If you follow (right) guidance, no hurt can
come to you from those who stray (Al-Maidah; 5:105)
As a matter of fact, we heard the Prophet (pbuh) say:
When the people see a wrongdoer and do not prevent him, Allah will soon
punish them all.
The narrator Amr narrated from Hushaim that he heard Abu Bakr saying:
I heard the Prophet (pbuh) saying:
If acts of disobedience are done among any people and do not change them
though they are able to do so, Allah will soon punish them all. (Abu Dawud, Kitab
Al-Malahim, 17/4338; Tirmidhi, Fitan, 8; Tafsir, 5/17; Ibn Majah, Fitan, 20; Ahmad, I, 2, 7, 9)
502
.
:
o -----------------------------
224. Abu Said (r.a.) said: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
No one should be so humble as to make himself despicable!
The Companions of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
O Messenger of Allah! How could anyone among us make himself look
despicable?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
A person faces with something and does not say anything despite the fact
that he must say something about it for the sake of Allah. Allah the Exalted says
to him on the Day of Judgment:
What was the thing that stopped you from saying anything in such and
such situations?
He answers:
I was scared of others!
Allah the Exalted says:
Should you not have feared from Me? (Ibn Majah, Fitan, 20; Ahmad, III, 30, 91)
Explanations:
Allah the Exalted has made Muslims responsible from each other as brothers and sisters in Islam, from the society that they live in, and from the condition that the whole world is into. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us
that each of us is responsible just like the shepherd in front of the herd, and
503
therefore we are responsible for the people that depend on us, our positions,
and duties.264 In other words, everyone, from the president to laymen, must
protect his dependents, his position, and his surroundings from material and
ethical disasters.
For this reason, a Muslim should not only think of himself but also try to
lead others to good deeds and protect them from wrongdoings. Namely, a Muslims should be in an effort to save himself first and then the whole humanity.
Allah the Exalted says:
The Believers, men and women, are protectors one of another: they
enjoin what is just, and forbid what is evil (At-Tawbah; 9:71)
You are the best of peoples, evolved for mankind, enjoining what is
right, forbidding what is wrong... (Al-i Imran; 3:110)
For this reason, enjoining the good and forbidding the evil, namely, suggesting the good
and explaining why evil is bad and trying to prevent wrongdoings of those who
we are responsible for is an important religious duty. Almighty Allah declares
in the Noble Quran that believers are responsible for each other. This responsibility which is also known as Tabligh (Delivering the message of Islam) and
Dawah (Invitation to Islam) is one of the most important duties in Islam
and the essence of the religion. The order of Islam becomes perfect by this and
the name of Allah gets exalted mainly by this way. Even though everyone is
responsible to do this duty as much as they can, Muslim leaders and scholars
have more responsibility.
504
o -----------------------------
do not have the proper knowledge to correct these issues. They must be left to
experts. For this reason, our Almighty Lord says:
Let there arise out of you a band of people inviting to all that is good,
enjoining what is right, and forbidding what is wrong: They are the ones to
attain felicity. (Al-i Imran; 3:104)
It is understood from this noble verse that it is fard al-kifayah to organize
a group that fulfills the responsibility of inviting people to goodness. The followers of Islam must train a group that can fulfill this responsibility. Unless this
responsibility is fulfilled, all Muslims would be guilty.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) paid so much attention to this task that
when he received the allegiance of his noble companions, he set as a condition to give advice to all Muslims and act sincerely. Jarir b. Abdullah (r.a.) narrated:
I gave the oath of allegiance to the Prophet to perform prayers perfectly,
to pay zakat, and to advise goodness to every Muslim. (Bukhari, Iman, 42; Mawakit,
3; Zakat, 2; Muslim, Iman, 97-98; Nasai, Bayah, 6, 17)
To those who told that they had to sit on the corners of the streets because
of their jobs, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told that they have to command
what is good and right and dissuade from what is bad. (See Bukhari, Mazalim, 22;
Istidhan, 2; Muslim, Libas, 114; Abu Dawud, Adab, 12)
All these prove the importance of announcing and inviting to what is good
and right, enjoining the good, and forbidding the evil.
Our first hadith indicates that every Muslim should fulfill the responsibility of inviting others to Islam and teach Islamic knowledge even if it is one
verse of the noble Quran or one hadith. Every Muslim can have some knowl505
edge that those who are not close to Islam may not know. Therefore, a Muslim
should teach the facts he knows about Islam to others.
In our second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave the good news
that Muslims will overcome their enemies, will get wealthy by receiving warbooty, and gain power by widening their lands. However, Allahs Messenger
(pbuh) worried about something at this point which was: When people experience prosperity and gain power, their fancy for this world would increase and
their religious values may get weak. Then, they may ignore their responsibility
of inviting others to Islam.
As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in one of his hadiths:
Unless two kinds of drunkenness appear in you, you would continue to be
on the right path: The drunkenness of ignorance and fanatic love of the world.
While you command what is right and good and prevent what is bad and fight
in the way of Allah, when the love of this world appear, you turn into people who
do not command what is good and who do not prevent what is bad and abandon
fighting in the way of Allah. That day, those who talk about the noble Quran and
Sunnah and those who try to explain them are like the first ones to convert to
Islam among the Ansar and al-Muhajirun. (Haythami, VII, 271; Abu Nuaym, Hilya,
VIII, 49)
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) invited Muslims to fear Allah and explain
Islam to others by words and actions by drawing our attention to the fact that
being pious is extra important in times where everyone is like drunk from the
love of this world. In such time periods, supporting and encouraging what is
good and preventing what is bad are some of the most important responsibilities of believers. The difficulty of accomplishing this duty is obvious. However,
for sure its rewards are comparable to its difficulty. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave the good news that those who explain Islam and
invite people to good deeds earn divine rewards as much as the first ones who
converted to Islam among Ansar and al-Muhajirun.
However, those who call others to Islam should satisfy some requirements
and they should be very careful in their acts. It is not right for those who do
not know the religion to cause confusion with their inaccurate or wrong statements. Those who talk about the religion should not say wrong things about
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh). Whoever attributes to the Messenger of Allah
506
o -----------------------------
(pbuh) the things that he did not say or do, would push himself into Hell. As a
matter of fact, in our hadith there is a harsh warning that they should prepare
their place in Hell. This expression also has the meaning of cursing for those
who lie about the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) and teasing the ignorant ones
who throw themselves into the Fire.
It is understood that those who know the religion should fulfill the responsibility of commanding what is good and right and preventing what is bad
and wrong. However, if the matter is something that everybody knows, every
Muslim can interfere properly. If the commands and preventions are about
detailed subjects, only scholars should fulfill this responsibility. They too could
command and prevent the issues on which there is common consensus but stay
away from controversial issues.
Those who fulfill the responsibility of commanding what is good and preventing what is bad should know the method in Islam of inviting people to
religion. As a matter of fact, to abide by common principles such as being nice
and polite, having a soft way of talking, approaching to people with mercy are
very crucial.
In our third hadith, it is pointed out that Muslims should never overlook
anything that is bad. When a Muslim sees something abominable or sinful,
he should try to modify it with the help of his hands, if he cannot do that he
should do it with his words, if he cannot do this either, he should at least try to
do it with his heart. By disliking them from their hearts, those who cannot do
anything about bad deeds can at least control their hearts and save themselves
from considering bad things permissible eventually. On the other hand, one
should try to prevent bad things from happening by praying to Allah from his
heart. This is the lowest level of faith. Those who even cannot do this would endanger their faith. Their hearts would start to look like the hearts of sinners.
It is said in a Noble hadith:
Never was there one among the prophets who had not disciples who followed his direction and followed his ways. Then there came after them their successors who said whatever they did not practice, and practiced whatever they
were not commanded to do. He who strove against them with his hand was a
believer: he who strove against them with his tongue was a believer, and he who
strove against them with his heart was a believer and beyond that there is no faith
even to the extent of a mustard seed. (Muslim, Iman, 80)
507
The state of the heart when facing wrongdoings is very important. In order to show this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
When sin is committed on earth, he who sees it and disapproves of it (assuming that he cannot do anything else) will be taken like one who was not present (and therefore he is saved from the evil of the sin), but he who is not present
and approves of it (when he hears it) will be like someone who sees it and will be
harmed accordingly. (Abu Dawud, Kitab al-Malahim, 17/4345)
Another attention drawing hadith that explains how the state of the heart
should be when facing wrongdoings is as follows:
Allah inspired one of His angels as:
Turn that city upside down upon his people!
The angel said:
There is a servant of You among them who did not rebel You even for a
blink of an eye.
Almighty Allah said:
Turn that city upside down upon him too as well as the others! That is because his face havent change (didnt hate them for the sake of Allah) even once
(upon seeing their evil deeds.) (Haythami, VII, 270)
In our forth hadith, the importance of announcing Islam to others and
calling them to Islam and the fact that, when abandoned, the whole community will be harmed is explained with a nice example.
Due to the mistakes and sins that evil people do, discord occurs in the
land and sea.265 Almighty Allah sends troubles and calamities on bad people.
It harms the world which is like a ship that everyone sails on it. If Muslims
do not prevent those bad things from happening, everyone who lives in this
world gets harmed. However, when Muslims spread goodness and clear off
wrongdoings, then both Muslims and everyone else can be save from the great
punishment.
Almighty Allah says:
265. Al-Rum; 30:41.
508
o -----------------------------
In other words, trying to prevent wrongdoings saves everyone. Abandoning the responsibility of announcing Islam to others causes getting a share from
the punishment of oppressors.
Our fifth hadith informs us about the sad consequences of over-looking
wrongdoings. Increase in sins angers Almighty Allah, and in order to sober
up His servants, He lets them taste some punishments of the Hereafter in this
world for what they had done. By this, He wants His servants to find the right
path by understanding their mistakes. This harms everyone both good and
bad. Those good people who did not prevent wrongdoings would receive punishment for their acts as well. They start praying when others are in trouble but
since it is too late, their prayers would not be accepted.
Drought, scarcity, natural disasters, oppression of the cruel and bad people, discord among Muslims, and similar troubles are common fates of people.
They cause destruction, collapse, and annihilation. Societies that abandon or
ignore the responsibility of commanding what is good and prohibit what is bad
deserve these kinds of troubles.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) explained the fact that social corruption
starts with abandoning the responsibility of announcing and inviting others to
Islam through an example from the Children of Israel:
The first defect that permeated the Israelites was that a man (of them) met
another man and said:
O so-and-so, fear Allah, and abandon what you are doing, for it is not lawful for you! He then met him the next day and that did not prevent him from
eating with him, drinking with him and sitting with him. When they did so, Allah
mingled their hearts with each other.
He then recited the verse:
Curses were pronounced on those among the Children of Israel who
rejected faith, by the tongue of David and of Jesus the son of Mary: because
they disobeyed and persisted in excesses. Nor did they (usually) forbid one
another the iniquities which they committed: evil indeed were the deeds
which they did. Thou seest many of them turning in friendship to the un509
believers. Evil indeed are (the works) which their souls have sent forward
before them (with the result), that Allahs wrath is on them, and in torment
will they abide. If only they had believed in Allah, in the Messenger, and
in what has been revealed to him, never would they have taken them for
friends and protectors, but most of them are rebellious wrong-doers. (AlMaidah; 5:78-81)
510
o -----------------------------
lahs commands due to their desire to go fishing on Saturday upon seeing them
coming like this, and they started to catch them.
After a while, the society divided up into two groups:
1. Those who broke the rules and commit sin
2. Pious and benevolent ones. However, those who practice the religion
were in the minority and could not influence and stop others.
Then, those who are good also divided up into two groups:
1. Those who worked hard, tried everything, got up, took pains and advised wrong doers in order to bring them to the right path but then stopped
and gave way to despair. After a while, those people abandoned their responsibility of enjoining the good.
2. Those are the Muslims who continued to give sermons and advices to
disobedient people by enduring all kinds of troubles and difficulties without
giving away to despair. The number of this self-sacrificing people was few.
Those who abandoned enjoining the good by giving away to despair told
them:
Why do you flounder? Why do you advise in vain? Those sinners will not
listen to your advices, dont you see how many times weve told them? They
dont listen. Those few righteous people did not pay attention to these discouraging suggestions and continued by thinking of being accountable in the
Hereafter.
The following verse of Quran expresses this as:
When some of them said: Why do you preach to a people whom Allah will destroy or visit with a terrible punishment? said the preachers:
To discharge our duty to your Lord, and perchance they may fear Him.
(Al-Araf; 7:164)
Then those who continued to enjoin the good set a wall which parted
them from the others in order to protect themselves from the punishment that
will come to others. When they did not heard any voice from the other side of
the wall, they saw that all the people turned into monkeys overnight!.. Even
those who were saved from the torment did not recognize their relatives, the
relatives who turned into monkeys recognized them. Those miserable people
511
who faced with the torment stroll around their relatives crestfallenly for some
time. When their relatives asked:
Didnt we dissuade you from sins by warning you? they used to nod
their heads with tearful eyes.
Three days later, all of the rebellious people who were turned into monkeys died.
Some of the scholars of the Quranic exegesis said:
Those who did not fish on the forbidden day but kept silent without prohibiting or warning those who disobeyed the command are turned into monkeys with them. In this case, the verse is one of the most intense warnings
about those who do not forbid what is evil.
Almighty Allah says:
So We made it an example to their own time and to their posterity, and
a lesson to those who fear Allah. (Al-Baqarah; 2:66)
When the Children of Israel worshipped the calf, Moses (pbuh) feared
that those Muslims who did not stray from the right path but did not try hard
to prevent this evil from happening would be perished as well, and he took
refuge in Allah as:
would You destroy us for the deeds of the foolish ones among us?
(Al-Araf; 7:155)
o -----------------------------
(It is the practice of those) who preach the Messages of Allah, and
fear Him, and fear none but Allah. And enough is Allah to call (men) to account. (Al-Ahzab; 33:39)
Again in the Noble Quran it is proudly declared that the distinguished
people who love Allah and are loved by Allah are gentle and humble to believers; proud, honorable, rigorous, brave, and confident to non-believers, who can
sacrifice everything in the way of Allah and who work hard and who do not
fear any critic, who serve Islam ignoring the condemnation of others and seek
not the consent of others but the consent of Allah. (Al-Maidah; 5:54)
Almighty Allah charged believers for correcting improper actions that
they see contrary to Islam. A believer who sees that something that is prohibited by the religion is done is liable to Allah for announcing what is right and
should try to stop them from the wrongdoing. If he keeps silent due to fear
from condemnation of others or that something may happen to him, Almighty
Allah will ask him on the Day of Judgment why he did not enjoin the good.
When the faulty believer expresses that he feared others, Almighty Allah will
remind him that a believer should fear Allah before everything else. For sure,
a Muslim who puts himself into this situation did nothing else but making
himself disgraced.267
Abu Said al-Hudri (r.a.) said:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) stood up and preached to people. Among
his words, there were:
Be careful! The fear felt towards others should not make one stop from telling the things that he knows are right!
Abu Said (r.a.) cried after narrating this hadith and regretted that:
I swear to Allah, weve seen things in this world but couldnt say anything
due to our fear. (Tirmidhi, Fitan, 26/2191; Ibn Majah, Fitan, 20; Ahmad, III, 5)
267. Truly, to be embarrassed in front of all people in the Hereafter is much heavier and worse
compared to the shame in this world. Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
O people! Whoever has violated the right of someone should pay it back and never hesitate
thinking he will be ashamed in this world! You should know well that the shame in this world
fares really light compared to that of the Hereafter. (Ibn Sad, II, 255; Ibn Athir, al-Kamil, II,
319; Tabari, Tarih, III, 189-190)
513
As Almighty Allah will hold accoutable the believers who ignore the responsibility of enjoining the good, those who are left with their sins and have
not been warned will get a hold of them as well.
Abu Huraira narrated:
We used to hear the following fact among the noble companions of the
Messenger: On the Day of Judgment, a man gets held off by someone he does
not know of and the man gets shocked and asks:
What do you want from me? I do not even know you!
The man who gets a hold of him proceeds against him as:
When we were in the world, you used to see me doing wrong and evil
things but did not warn and stop me. (Munziri, at-Targhib wa al-tarhib, III, 164/3506;
Rudani, Jam al-fawaid, V, 384)
We should also say that when enjoining the good and forbidding the evil,
one must not cause some things to get worse. If correcting wrongdoings with
ones hands or words will cause something worse such as getting him or someone else killed, he should prefer to hate that evil from the heart. That is because
risking ones life knowingly is not considered permissible in our religion.
2. The Virtue of Delivering the Message of Islam and Calling Others
to It
.
:
225. Sahl b. Sad (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said to Ali:
I swear to Allah that it is better for you that Allah makes one find the
true path through you than having red camels which is the best worldly possession. (Bukhari, Ashab al-Nabi, 9; Maghazi, 38; Muslim, Fadail al-Sahaba, 34; Abu Dawud, Ilm,
10/3661)
514
o -----------------------------
.
:
226. It is narrated from Abdullah b. Masud that the Noble Prophet (pbuh)
said:
May Allah make blameless the face of those who hear my words and clearly
understand and memorize them! There are many knowledgeable persons who
transmit it to a person who has a better understanding. (Tirmidhi, Ilm, 7/2685)
.
:
227. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
He who called (people) to righteousness, there would be reward (assured)
for him like the rewards of those who adhered to it, without their rewards being
diminished in any respect. And he who called (people) to error, he shall have to
carry (the burden) of its sin, like those who committed it, without their sins being
diminished in any respect. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Ilm, 16. Also see Abu Dawud, Sunnah, 6;
Tirmidhi, Kitab Al-Ilm, 15; Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 14)
515
Explanations:
The fact that Almighty Allah made believers responsible for calling others to Islam shows that He loves His servants a lot and He is very merciful to
them. Our Almighty Lord wants everyone to benefit from the divine blessings
and benedictions by finding the right path. For this reason, He promised great
rewards to those believers who serve for the realization of this aim.
In order to express the virtue of the responsibility of calling others to Islam, it is enough to remind that it is one of the characteristics of the prophets.
As a matter of fact, having the attributes of loyalty, trust, smartness, and innocence is an obligation for prophets for them to accomplish their duty of announcing and calling to the true religion.
When Almighty Allah declares the characteristics of the beloved people,
He says:
They rehearse the Signs of Allah all night long, and they prostrate
themselves in adoration. They believe in Allah and the Last Day; they enjoin
what is right, and forbid what is wrong; and they hasten (in emulation) in
(all) good works: They are in the ranks of the righteous. (Al-i Imran; 3:113114)
Almighty Allah mentions in the Noble Quran the believers whose wealth
and lives He purchased in exchange for Paradise. He gives glad tidings to these
subjects who He praised to all humanity and informs us that this is indeed a
great benefit. After stating that these beloved servants have altruistically struggled (jihad) in the way o Allah, Almighty Allah lists some of their attributes
as follows: Those that turn (to Allah) in repentance; that serve Him, and
praise Him; that wander in devotion to the cause of Allah; that bow down
and prostrate themselves in prayer; that enjoin good and forbid evil; and
observe the limit set by Allah. (These do rejoice). So proclaim the glad tidings to the Believers. (At-Tawbah; 9:112)
Also, Luqman (pbuh) advised his son that announcing and calling to Islam is one of the most important affairs and that he should bear with patient
constancy whatever difficulty he may face. (Luqman; 31:17)
In our first hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) informed us by swearing that being a means for someones finding the true path as a result of fulfill516
o -----------------------------
ing the duty of calling to Islam has a value that is greater than the most valuable
worldly material goods.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told this statement to Ali (r.a.) when he
gave him the flag to send him to conquer the Fort of Khaiber. So, rewards
and gifts for being a means for removing the barriers between people and Islam and for them to meet the truth is so superior and valuable that it cannot
be compared with any worldly material good. This is because everything in
this world, even this world itself, is temporary and ends like a summer cloud.
However, faith and being on the true path are eternal and their rewards and
compensation will be sufficient to make us whole in the Hereafter. If not dealt
with appropriately, the worldly benefits can cause one to be dragged to rampageousness, heresy, and at the end to Hell. Being on the true path, on the other
hand, makes one achieve bliss in this world and in the hereafter, and allows one
to eternal life in Paradise.
The red camels mentioned in the hadith were one of the most important
signs of being wealthy among the Arabs of that era. It is possible to think of
this as different material goods for different regions. The Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) mentioned red camels as an example to the virtue of calling to Islam.
In our second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) prays for those who
hear his words and transmits them to others and says May Allah brighten your
face. How great an accomplishment it is for a believer to deserve this beautiful
prayer of the Prophet (pbuh).
Allah the Almighty also praises his servants who fulfill their duties of calling to Islam. Indeed, it is said in a noble verse that:
Who is better in speech than one who calls (men) to Allah, works righteousness, and says, I am of those who bow in Islam? (Al-Fussilat; 41:33)
In the rest of our hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) touches upon
one of the wisdoms of calling to Islam. A person who hears, reads, and even
memorizes a verse may not duly understand it. A person who transmits his
knowledge to others may also have transferred the truths to others with better
understanding and intellect. In turn, this transfer causes knowledge to be utilized better. As expressed in our third hadith, Almighty Allah gives the same
reward to the person who transmits the knowledge as the person who acts
517
upon it and conducts good deeds utilizing the knowledge. Thus, both parties
end up wining.
Anas (r.a.) tells us an event that shows the virtue of calling to Islam:
One day the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had said:
Shall I inform you of some people? They are neither prophets nor martyrs.
However, on the Day of Judgment both prophets and martyrs admire their rank in
the sight of Allah. They sit on pillows made of light and everyone knows them.
We asked Who are they, O Messenger of Allah?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) responded:
They are those who make Allah love His servants and who make His servants love Allah. They walk around the Earth by desiring goodness for people and
giving advice.
We asked:
O Messenger of Allah! It is easy to understand making His servants love
Allah, but how is it possible to make Allah love His servants?
In response, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
They enjoin people what Allah loves and forbid people that He dislikes.
When people obey them, Allah -the Mighty and the Magnificent- loves them.
(Baihaqi, Shuab, I, 367; Ali al-Muttaqi, III, 685-686)
The goal of the Prophet here is to declare the rewards in this world and
in the Hereafter of those people who call to Islam. Otherwise, one should not
think by just looking at the literal meaning of this narration that there is a higher rank than that of prophethood. This is true because prophets and martyrs
have already sacrificed their lives for the purpose of inviting people to Islam.
It is also necessary here to touch upon another important matter: the necessity of fully complying with good manners, appropriate styles and methods
when delivering the message of Islam to people. Almighty Allah commands us
to invite to His path with wisdom, sagacity, and beautiful preaching. In case it
becomes obligatory to struggle with tongue or hand, this should also be done
justly and in the best fashion. (Al-Yusuf; 12:108; Al-Ankabut; 29:46) (Al-Nahl; 16:125)
When a Muslim enjoins the good he should treat others with love and
kindness because doing everything in the best fashion only befits him.
518
o -----------------------------
The most important and influential one among the methods of inviting
people to the Truth is to show the truths by living them. It is both easier and
also more influential to teach something by personally practicing it. As a matter of fact, people who do opposite of what they said will face a difficult account
in the Day of Judgment because they erred even though they knew.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says:
On the night of Isra (Miraj), I saw some people whose lips were being slit
with scissors of fire. I asked
O Gabriel who are these people?
He replied
They are the khatibs (preachers) who command people to do good deeds
while forgetting themselves. Dont you realize and think?268 (Ahmad, III, 231, 120,
180, 239; Baihaqi, Shuab, II, 283. Also see Bukhari, Badul-halk, 10; Fitan, 17; Muslim, Zuhd, 51)
519
order for their words to be taken seriously but it is not a must. Even if a person
cannot put what is right into practice, he should not stay away from telling it to
others. By this, those people first enjoin the good and forbid the evil to themselves and then wish the same thing for others and we wish that eventually they
too put what they know into practice.
Anas (r.a.) narrated:
We asked:
O the Messenger of Allah! Shouldnt we command what is right unless we
practice it and forbid the evil unless we abandon it?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Even if you cannot perform it perfectly command the good and even if you
cannot stay away from it completely forbid the evil! (Haythami, VII, 277)
However, this can never be an acceptable state. This is a temporary permission to indicate the importance of calling to Islam. One must start practicing soon the good deeds that he commands others to do. Otherwise, his situation in the Hereafter will be miserable.269
3. The Love of Serving Islam
a. Being a Key to Goodness
: .
:
269. For methods of calling to Islam and details see Osman Nri Topba, Hazret-i Muhammed
Mustaf, Istanbul 2005, I, 260-281; mer elik, Mustafa ztrk, Murat Kaya, sve-i Hasene,
Istanbul 2004, II, 15-144.
520
o -----------------------------
228. Anas b. Malik (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There are people who are keys to what is good and locks to what is evil.
There are also others who are keys to what is evil and locks to what is good. How
happy are those to whom Allah has given them to be the keys of the good! Woe to
those to whom Allah has given to be the keys of the evil! (Ibn Majah, Muqaddima,
19; Baihaqi, Shuab, I, 455)
:
:
229. Abu Musa al-Ashari (r.a.) narrated: Whenever a beggar came to Allahs Apostle (pbuh) or he was asked for something, he used to say (to his companions):
Help and recommend him and you will receive the reward for it; and Allah
will bring about what He wills through His Prophets tongue. (Bukhari, Zakat, 21;
Adab, 36, 37; Tawheed, 31; Muslim, Birr, 145. Also see. Abu Dawud, Adab, 116-117/5131; Tirmidhi, Ilm, 14/2672)
521
:
:
Explanations:
Being keys to the good and locks to the evil has a side to both calling others to Islam and also serving Islam. Both of them are the most virtuous deeds,
which are rewarding and ensuring the contentment of Allah.
As one can earn divine rewards from his own good deeds, one can also
earn rewards from others good deeds. It is not possible to perform every good
deed personally. Sometimes this is the result of lack of time and sometimes
the lack of human capacity. In these situations, an intelligent believer can earn
divine rewards as if he personally performs good deeds by leading and guiding
people to do that good by using his intelligence, words, pen, knowledge, power,
position, and wealth.
522
o -----------------------------
On the other hand, both the ways to goodness and to evil exist and will
always continue to exist in this world. The believers have the responsibility of
opening the doors of goodness and closing the doors of evil. For this reason,
they always have to be the leaders of good deeds in this world and should strain
never to allow the evil.
On the other hand, unfortunately, there will be people who are the keys
to the evil and who lock the good. For sure, they will have the burden of evils
that they cause.
Almighty Allah says:
Whoever recommends and helps a good cause becomes a partner
therein: And whoever recommends and helps an evil cause, shares in its
burden: And Allah has power over all things. (An-Nisa; 4:85)
In this situation, the thing to be done is to increase the number of those
who are keys to the good and decrease the number of those who are keys the
evil.
In our first hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said How happy! to
those who are the keys to the good. The expression Woe to you! for those
unfortunate who are the keys to the evil and locks to the good.
In another narration, the Prophet (pbuh) said:
This goodness (that I brought to you) is comparable to a treasure. There are
keys to this treasure. How happy is whom Allah made a key to the good and a
lock to the evil! Woe to those whom Allah made a key to the evil and lock to the
good! (Ibn Majah, Muqaddimah, 19)
The good are the things that Allah is content with and the evil are the
things that Allah hates and forbids. When Allah is content with one of His servants, the sign of this is to make him a key to the good. When this type of person is seen, he reminds good deeds; when he comes, the good comes with him;
when he speaks, he speaks of the good; when he thinks, he thinks of goodness;
he always has good feelings and intentions and helps people who want to do
good. This type of person who always wants goodness to overcome the evil is a
source of goodness for those who are around him. A person who is a key to the
evil, since all he does is evil, he always speaks of evil, thinks of evil, plans evil
things, helps evil, and brings evil wherever he goes. This type of person who
wants evil to spread is a source of pain to those around him. For this reason,
523
being with the first type of person is happiness and being with the second type
of person is brigandage.
Prophets are the leaders of being keys to the good. Almighty Allah says
about them:
And We made them leaders, guiding (men) by Our Command (AlAnbiya; 21:73)
All Muslims should be guides to what is good and right by taking prophets
as an example. Even, they should pray as:
And those who pray, Our Lord! Grant unto us wives and offspring
who will be the comfort of our eyes, and give us (the grace) to lead the
righteous.270
Since a person who guides to good deeds earns divine rewards as if he
personally performed them, guiding pious people is a good deed that is very
rewarding and beneficial.
In our second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised being
means to all kinds of goodness, especially solving the problems of the needy.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said in another hadith:
Sometimes a person asks for something from me. I would delay satisfying
his needs so that you can intercede and help him in getting what he wants and
earn divine rewards! Yes, intercede needy in satisfying his need so you can earn
divine rewards from it. (Nasai, Zakat, 65)
On the one side there are many needy people and organizations who
should receive goodness and help, who struggle in despair and lack of means,
and on the other side there are many good people who want to help and try to
find those who are really in need. Leading and becoming a mediator to them
is a huge responsibility on Muslims and also an opportunity to gain divine rewards. For example, foundations that bring together the needy with the wealthy
people are the most significant institutions serving this purpose.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave the good news to the Muslims who
become means to goodness:
270. Al-Furqan; 25:74.
524
o -----------------------------
There are some servants of Allah whom He created to satisfy the needs of
the needy. People run to these good people for their needs. These are the people
who are safe from the anger of Allah. (Haythami, VIII, 192)
In our third hadith, we see an example of becoming a means to a good
deed. A man who needs a mount came to the exalted presence of the Prophet.
At that moment, there was nothing with the Messenger of Allah. However,
there was a Muslim on the other side who could help him with this. One of the
Noble Companions of the Messenger who knew about this Muslim brought
them together and became a means for a good deed to happen. Upon this, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
One who guides to something good has a reward similar to that of its
doer.
Another similar incident is as follows:
A young man from the Aslam tribe said:
O Messenger of Allah, I wish to fight (in the way of Allah) but I dont have
anything to equip myself with for fighting.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Go to so and so, for he had equipped himself (for fighting) but he fell ill.
So, he (the young man) went to him and said:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sends you his greetings and says that you
should give me the equipage that you have provided yourself with.
The man said (to his wife or maidservant):
Dear, give him the equipage I have collected for myself and do not withhold anything from him. Do not withhold anything from him so that you may
be blessed therein. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 134)
Thanks to this one good deed, three people earned divine rewards and
none of their rewards are diminished. These are; the Noble Companion of the
Messenger who intended to do something good but could not do due to his
illness, the young man who performed the good deed by getting the military
equipment from him, and the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) who brought them
together...
525
That is to say, encouraging and becoming means to goodness is as important as performing the goodness. As a matter of fact, the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) encouraged his companions to give alms and to do good deeds in every
opportunity and often advised them in this direction.
For example, Jabir (r.a.) narrated:
My maternal aunt was divorced, and she intended to pluck her dates. A
person scolded her for having come out (during the period of Idda). She came
and told about what happened to Allahs Prophet (pbuh) and he said:
Certainly you can pluck (dates) from your palm trees, for perhaps you may
give charity or do an act of kindness. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Talaq, 55; Abu Dawud, Kitab AlTalaq, 39-41/2297; Nasai, Kitab Al-Talaq, 70; Ibn Majah, Kitab Al-Talaq, 9)
By praying in this fashion, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) suggests the ill
to perform good deeds such as fighting in the way of Allah, attend a funeral,
and regularly join the congregation for a prayer when he gets well. In this way,
the ill Muslim understands the value of his health and the fact that he should
utilize these blessings to earn the eternal happiness. He pursues good deeds
more passionately when he gets well.
b. Pursuing Good Deeds
526
.
:
o -----------------------------
231. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Be prompt in doing good deeds (before you are overtaken) by turbulence
which would be like a part of the dark night. During (that stormy period) a man
would be a Muslim in the morning and an unbeliever in the evening or he would
be a believer in the evening and an unbeliever in the morning, and would sell his
faith for worldly goods. (Muslim, Kitab Al Iman, 186. Also see. Tirmidhi, Fitan, 30; Zuhd, 3;
Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 78; Ahmad, II, 303, 372, 523)
.
:
232. It is narrated from Abu Huraira (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Hasten to do good deeds before you are overtaken by one of the seven afflictions. Then (giving a warning) he said,
Are you waiting for
1. Such poverty which will make you unmindful of devotion; or
2. Prosperity which will make you corrupt, or
3. Disease as will disable you, or
527
.
:
233. It is narrated from Amr b. Abase (r.a.) that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Whosoevers single strand turns gray in the path of Allah, it becomes a divine light (nur) on the Day of Judgment for him. (Tirmidhi, Fadail al-Jihad, 9/1635;
Nasai, Jihad, 26/3140; Ahmad, IV, 113)
: .
:
.
o -----------------------------
In Paradise.
The man threw away some dates he was carrying in his hand, and fought till
he was martyred. (Bukhari, Al-Maghazi, 17; Muslim, Imara, 143. Also see. Nasai, Jihad, 31)
.
:
.
235. Abu Said al-Khudri (r.a.) reported that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
saw (a tendency) among his Companions to go to the back (in congregation),
so he said to them:
Come forward and follow my lead, and let those who come after you follow
your lead. People will continue to keep back till Allah will put them at the back.
(Muslim, Salat, 130. Also see Abu Dawud, Salat, 97; Nasai, Imamah, 17; Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 45;
Ahmad, III, 34)
Explanations:
Humans as the travelers for the Hereafter and responsible from the general state of the world will be happy as much as they fill their lives, which passes
by as quick as a wink, with good deeds and benefactions. The rewards that
Almighty Allah gives for the good deeds are unimaginably magnificent. For
this reason, when Muslims see the blessings of Allah in the Hereafter and the
rewards that He gives for the good deeds performed in the world, they consider
their good deeds very few and regret that they did not perform more good
deeds. As the Messenger of Allah informed us even if a person lives a life full
of struggles, in other words, even if he endures all kinds of troubles in order
to worship, obey Allah, and serve in the way of Allah from the day he is born
until the day that he dies due to his old age, on the Day of Judgment, all he has
done will seem very few to him and he will wish that he could have done more.
(Ahmad, IV, 185; Baihaqi, Shuab, I, 479; Haythami, I, 51; X, 225, 358)
529
The real benefit of all good deeds is for those who perform the deed. Even
if it seems that those who benefit from good deeds are the recipients, the final
benefit and the spiritual gain is for the performer.
It is said in noble verses that:
If any one does a righteous deed, it ensures to the benefit of his own
soul. (Al-Jasiyah; 45:15)
It is not required of you (O Messenger., to set them on the right path,
but Allah sets on the right path whom He pleases. Whatever of good you
give benefits your own souls, and you shall only do so seeking the Face of
Allah. Whatever good you give, shall be rendered back to you, and you shall
not be dealt with unjustly. (Al-Baqarah; 2:272)
Also, no goodness can get loss. Almighty Allah records everything and
will appear before us on the Day of Judgment. As a matter of fact, it is said in
a noble Quran:
And whatever you do that is good, (Allah) knows it well. (Al-Baqarah;
2:215)
They believe in Allah and the Last Day; they enjoin what is right, and
forbid what is wrong; and they hasten (in emulation) in (all) good works:
They are in the ranks of the righteous. (Al-i Imran; 3:114)
In our first hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised that one must
not show negligence and hurry in doing good deeds while there are opportunities. As a matter of fact, time not always ticks away the same. There comes a time
530
o -----------------------------
where circumstances can change, unrest can occur, and some deeds which can
be performed easily cannot be performed. The social disturbances can darken
the society so much so that people may not discern between the good and the
evil. Everyone starts fighting for their lives; they would not want to be busy
neither with the religion nor withthe faith; and faith, the most valuable fortune
of humans, can lose its value in the eyes of people. Since many of them may
not know what they are doing and due to their lack of Islamic knowledge, they
may be Muslims in the morning but unbelievers in the evening or Muslims in
the evening but unbelievers in the morning. This may be caused by the lack of
Islamic education or most of the time by giving up everything for the worldly
benefits. At that point, some people may trade their faith and religion for a
small benefit in this world.
In times like this when the world is in a slippery slope, the strongest handle that a believer should grasp in order to protect his faith is the performance
of good deeds. In extraordinary times when disorder, corruption, cruelty and
abasement are present, arming oneself with good deeds protects and strengthens ones faith.
In another narration, it is expressed that those whom Allah has blessed
with knowledge can protect their faith in times of disorder. (Darimi, Muqaddimah,
32)
Doing good deeds are not only prevented by great discords. There are also
other reasons that prevent people from performing good deeds. In our second
hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advised us that one must pursue good
deeds that make us gain the consent of Allah and divine rewards before these
kinds of disorders take place.
For example, a person can be poor at any time. When people struggle
with poverty, they would not think of doing good deeds. As a matter of fact,
most of the good deeds are done with financial means. Those who lose their
wealth miss out these opportunities. Yet, the doors of possibilities for doing
good deeds are not completely closed for them. As long as they want, there are
countless ways of doing good deeds. However, being poor makes the performance of some important good deeds impossible.
On the other hand, one can be wealthy when he was poor but this may
cause him to pursue good deeds. As a matter of fact, when his financial possibilities advance, he may get rampageous by losing his control over the carnal
531
self, he may become greedy, and the love of this world invades his heart and
makes him forget the Hereafter.
For this reason, one must be thankful for his situation and search for the
ways of doing good deeds. Poor should not wait to become rich and rich should
not wait to become old. That is because a person can get sick at any age. God
forbid, a young person who becomes seriously ill loses the opportunity of serving in the way of Allah. A sick person whose enjoyment of the life and power of
his body is gone must busy himself mostly with his health problems. No matter
how much he wants, his opportunities to perform good deeds decrease.
While a healthy person keeps postponing doing good deeds, he may realize that the old-age has arrived. Then, he may not have the power of performing
the good deeds that he has been putting off. As a matter of fact, since his intelligence and apprehension may start to show the sings of old-age, he may even
not be able to think of doing good deeds for the Hereafter. Even if he thinks,
since he may have speech problems, he may not express himself clearly.
The heaviest one of those is the death. It is impossible to know when one
will die. While a person is busy in ignorance, a sudden death changes everything. After passing away from this world of opportunities to win the hereafter,
no matter how hard he wants, he cannot perform anything. When facing with
the fright and torments of the Day of Judgment, he wants to come back and
pursue and perform good deeds, but in vain indeed... The test of humans ends
there. He will be alone with whatever he has done before.
At the end of the hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) referred to the
following noble verse of the Quran in order to make one feel the horror of the
Day of Judgment where those who did not pursue good deeds will burn with
the fires of regret:
Nay, the Hour (of Judgment) is the time promised them (for their full
recompense): And that Hour will be most grievous and most bitter. (AlQamar; 54:46)
As a result, a Muslim should not wait for anything to perform good deeds.
As the Prophet expressed in one of his sermons, one should pay attention to
this warning:
O people! Repent to Allah before you die! Embark upon good deeds before
you become occupied with some troubles and hardships! Try to give Allah His due
532
o -----------------------------
upon you by remembering Him a lot and by giving much sadaqah (charity) both
secretly and openly so that you will be endowed bounties by Allah, receive help
and get ameliorated! (Ibn Majah, Iqamah, 78)
Such serious warnings of the Prophet on doing good deeds fast and without delay shows that people have a great weakness in this respect and so that
this matter is extremely important.
On the Day of Judgment, great rewards await the believers who were able
to overcome this weakness without being defeated by their carnal self. Indeed,
in our third hadith, we are given the glad tidings that even the smallest of efforts in the way of Allah will shine like a light on the Day of Judgment, will
light up his way to Heaven, and will save him from the intense troubles of the
Day of Judgment. So, a Muslim should make each hair strand on his head turn
gray while running for services in the way of Allah.
In our fourth hadith, a companion is teaching how to run around for
good deeds by personally practicing himself. This companion who learned that
he will obtain Heaven in exchange for the deed that he will conduct had accepted the word of the Prophet with certain faith and had run to jihad upon
hearing it and had not even waited to eat the dates in his hand.
A similar event took place in the Battle of Badr. In Badr, the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) had encouraged his companions for jihad and reminded them of
Heaven. And when the enemy had come quite close, he commanded:
Come on, stand up for Heaven, which is as large as the skies and the
Earth.
Upon this, Umair b. Humam (r.a.) jumped in and said:
O the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)! Did you say the Heaven as large as the
skies and the Earth?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) responded
Yes. Umair said:
How nice, how beautiful!
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) asked:
Why did you say so? He said:
533
O the Messenger of Allah (pbuh), I did not say this for anything but only
to be one from the people of Heaven.
In order to enter the struggle (jihad) strong, Umair took out a few dates
from his bag and started to eat them. However, he could not be patient for the
delay any longer and said:
If I live until I finish eating these dates, this indeed will be a long life.
If I sit down until they finish, I will have shown undue ambition towards the
world and threw away the dates in his hand and drew the sword and fought
with the enemy. Finally, he achieved the degree of martyrdom. (See Bukhari, AlMaghazi, 17; Muslim, Imarah, 145; Muwatta, Jihad 42)
Indeed, pursuing good deeds like this means running to the forgiveness
and Heaven of Allah and racing for the contentment of Allah. Only the pious
servants of Allah can accomplish this.
Almighty Allah says the following:
Be quick in the race for forgiveness from your Lord, and for a Garden
whose width is that (of the whole) of the heavens and of the earth, prepared
for the righteous! (Al-i Imran; 3:133)
Pursuing good deeds and doing the good thing at the very first opportunity had become the distinguishing sign of the Noble Companions. The reason
that Abu Bekr was called Abu Bakr was because he was the first person in all
kinds of good deeds. Even when the Companions were over the age of eighty,
they used to work in the way of Allah like a young persons excitement. Abu
Zibyan narrates an example about this:
Abu Ayyub al Ansari (r.a.) had joined a military expedition launched
against the Romans. He got sick on the way. When his death was approaching
he said the following:
If I die, then take me forward with you! Carry me as far as you can in
the Roman lands. When you meet the enemy lines and cant move any further,
bury me there under your feet! (See Ahmad, V, 419, 416)
At that time, Abu Ayyub al Ansari (r.a.) was over 80 years old and this was
his second expedition to Istanbul.
According to a narration from Ali (r.a.), the Prophets uncle Abbas
(r.anhuma) had asked for the purpose of hurrying in doing good deeds if he
534
o -----------------------------
could give his zakat (obligatory alms) before one year is completed. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) gave him permission this respect. (Abu Dawud, Zakat,
22/1624; Tirmidhi, Zakat, 37/678; Ibn Majah, Zakat, 7; Ahmad, I, 104; Daarimi, Zakat, 12)
Indeed noble companions used to pursue such good deeds with their lives
and wealth and hurry in conducting good deeds.
In our fifth hadith, the harm of staying back from good deeds is explained. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) had warned his companions who were
lining up at the back while praying in the mosque or sitting down during conversations. He advised them to come closer to the imam as much as possible,
to follow his moves and to hear his words as best as they can, and to pass on
what they learn from him to the next generation. Some commentators have
understood this saying of the Prophet (pbuh) as:
You learn from me the rules of Islam, then, the ones who come after can
learn from you, and the ones who come after them learn from them let it
continue like this until the Day of Judgment!
The punishment of staying distant from good deeds and sources of knowledge is the sign of Allahs leaving that person spiritually backward. Indeed, the
Messenger of Allah (pbuh) spoke as follows:
Be present during the sermon and be close to the imam because by continuing to be further and further away, a person will be in the back even if he enters
the Heaven. (Abu Dawud, Salat 232/1108; Ahmad, V, 11; Hakim, I, 427)
In other words, the people who stay back without an excuse in righteous
deeds, such as sitting in the back while listening to the Friday sermon, will gain
and enter Heaven with difficulty and after everyone else, even if they earn it.
Their rank in the Heaven would also be low.
Another noble hadith on this matter is as follows:
If a person sits in a mosque at a place where he can see and listen to the
imam, listens carefully, and does not speak, then there are two times the rewards.
If the person ends up sitting at a far place where he cannot listen but keeps silent
and quiet ... (Abu Dawud, Salat 209/1051)
As it can be seen, compensation and rewards decrease as one move away
from the source of insight.
535
:
.
.
:
236. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Faith has over seventy branches or over sixty branches, the most excellent
of which is the declaration that there is no god but Allah, and the humblest of
which is the removal of what is injurious from the path: and modesty is a branch
of faith. (Muslim, Iman, 58. Also see Bukhari, Iman, 3; Abu Dawud, Sunnah, 14; Nasai, Iman,
16; Tirmidhi, Birr, 80; Iman, 16; Ibn Majah, Muqaddima, 9)
.
:
237. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
O Muslim women, none of you should consider even a sheeps trotter too
insignificant to give to her neighbor. (Bukhari, Hibat, 1; Adab, 30; Muslim, Zakat, 90. Also
see. Tirmidhi, Wala, 6)
536
.
:
o -----------------------------
238. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
There is a (compulsory) almsgiving to be given for every joint of the human
body (as a sign of gratitude to Allah) everyday. To help a man concerning his riding animal by helping him to ride it or by lifting his luggage on to it, is regarded as
almsgiving, and (saying) a good word is also almsgiving, and every step taken on
ones way to offer the compulsory prayer (in the mosque) is also almsgiving and
to show the way when asked is also almsgiving. (Bukhari, Jihad, 72. Also see Muslim,
Zakat, 56; Abu Dawud, Tatawwu, 12; Adab, 160)
.
:
239. Abu Dhar (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Almsgiving is due on every joint of a person, every day the sun rises. In every declaration of the glorification of Allah there is a almsgiving, and every Takbir (i.e. saying Allah-O-Akbar) is a almsgiving, and every praise of His (saying
al-Hamdu Lillah) is a almsgiving and every declaration that He is One (La illha
ill-Allah) is a almsgiving, and enjoining of good is a almsgiving, and forbidding of
that which is evil is a almsgiving. Performing two rakah of Duha (mid-morning)
537
prayer includes all. (Muslim, Musafirin, 84; Zakat, 56. Also see Bukhari, Sulh, 11; Jihad, 72;
128; Abu Dawud, Tatawwu, 12; Adab, 160)
:
.
.
:
241. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
While a man was walking on a road, he saw a thorny branch and removed
it from the way and Allah became pleased by his action and forgave him for that.
(Bukhari, Adhan, 32; Mazalim, 28; Muslim, Birr, 127; Imara, 164)
538
o -----------------------------
.
: :
: :
242. Abu Musa al-Ash'ari (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) said:
Every Muslim should give sadaqa and do good deeds.
The Companions asked:
O the Prophet of Allah! What if someone has nothing to give what should
he do?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
He should get work and earn something with his hand and give sadaqa
(help himself and others).
They said:
And if someone is unable to do that?
He said:
He should help someone in need. They said:
What if he cannot find anyone?
He said:
He should do good and refrain from evil. That is sadaqa for him. (Bukhari,
Zakat, 30; Adab, 33; Muslim, Zakat, 55)
539
: .
:
243. Abu Dharr (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Dont consider anything insignificant out of good things even if it is that
you meet your brother with a cheerful countenance. (Muslim, Birr, 144. Also see Abu
Dawud, Libas, 24; Tirmidhi, Atima, 30)
Explanations:
Almighty Allah, who continuously commands His servants to do good
deeds, whether big or small, in order for them to achieve eternal bliss, has
made it extremely easy for them to do good deeds and earn rewards as a result
of His endless favors. As it can be seen in our first hadith, from the smallest
to the biggest, there are many kinds of good deeds. There is definitely a kind
of good deed that a person at any level can do. Even simple acts that people do
not pay attention such as removing a stone that discomforts those walking on a
path are considered good deeds and believers earn rewards for them.
On the other hand, small or big, all good deeds are related to faith. It is not
possible to do a healthy and essential good deed without belief in Allah and the
thought of pleasing Him. When one acts with this intention, even the feelings,
words, and actions of a person which look like they have no relationship with
worship also are counted among the good and beneficial deeds. The continuation of the feelings of doing good deeds depends on having faith in Allah and
the Hereafter. This is because faith in Allah and the Hereafter causes a person
to have spiritual pleasure from the good and beneficiary deeds that he does and
leads him to continuously do good deeds.
Indeed, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) responded to one of his companions who asked What is faith? as:
If a good deed that you performed pleases you and a bad deed saddens you,
then you are a believer! (Ahmad, V, 252, 255; Haythami, I, 86)
This saying of the Prophet is sufficient to show how rooted and encompassing the ideal of good and beneficial is in Islam.
In our second hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) told that it is necessary to do every good deed without belittling any of them, and in order for this
540
o -----------------------------
542
o -----------------------------
In our sixth hadith, how good deeds that are considered minor such as
removing a thorny branch from a road help us earn great rewards is expressed.
The greatest reward is to achieve the contentment of Allah. Almighty Allah is
also extremely pleased that something that could harm His servants is moved
to the side of the road. It is also easy to see this in the following narration:
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following:
A person while walking along the path saw the branches of a tree lying there.
He said: By Allah, I shall remove these from this road so that these may not do
harm to the Muslims, and he was admitted to Paradise. (Muslim, Birr, 128)
In our seventh hadith, it is seen that there is no excuse to stay away
from good and beneficial deeds. A person who cannot find anything to give
as sadaqa carries some load on his back, earns two portions of food and leaves
one with his family and gives the other as sadaqa. If he cannot do these, he
helps someone in difficulty by using his intellect, words, and physical power.
If he cannot even do these, he displays good manners to people and stays back
from committing evil. The effort of a believer not to hurt anyone is also a good
and beneficial act for himself.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) advises people who cannot perform any
good deed to still do good deeds by at least smiling to people. Namely, there
is no excuse to stay back from good deeds. As long as one is alive, any person
can do good deeds. There is no person who cant do this. So, even if Muslims
cannot find any other opportunities, they could do good deeds by smiling at
their brothers in religion.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says the following in another narration:
Every good deed is sadaqah. Even greeting your brother with a smiling face
and pouring water into your brothers cup from your bucket is considered sadaqa.
(Tirmidhi, Birr, 45/1970)
543
So, as long as there are good intentions and sincerity, each word and deed
of a believer is sadaqa (almsgiving) and benefaction. This is a great blessing of
Allah.
Then, since a Muslim never sees any sin as minor, he should also never see
any good as minor. This is because the good small deeds that are neglected due
to belittling cause great losses at the end. A Muslim should act with a sincere
intention and turn all of his words and actions into good deeds and benefactions.
4. Struggle (Jihad) in the Way of Allah
.
:
.
:
245. Anas b. Malik (r.a.) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)
said:
a mornings or an evenings journey which a slave (person) travels in Allahs
Cause is better than the world and whatever is on its surface. (Bukhari, Jihad, 6)
544
o -----------------------------
:
:
246. Ibn Abbas (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sent Abdullah b. Rawaha (r.a.) for a military expedition. This took place on Friday. His
friends departed in the morning and he thought Let me lag behind so that I
can pray with the Messenger of Allah (pbuh). When he performed the prayer
with the Noble Prophet (pbuh), the Messenger saw him and asked:
Why didnt you go with your friends in the morning?
Abdullah b. Rawaha said:
I wanted to join you in prayer and then catch up with them.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Even if you donate everything on this world, you would not gain the rewards that they would by departing early. (Tirmidhi, Juma, 28/527; Ahmad, I, 224, 256.
Also see. Ahmad, III, 438; Baihaki, al-Sunan al-kubra, III, 187)
545
247. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated: A person came to the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) and said:
What deed could be an equivalent of Jihad in the way of Allah, the Almighty and Exalted?
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) replied:
I do not know such a deed and continued:
One who goes out for Jihad is like a person who keeps fasts, stands in prayer
(constantly), (obeying) Allahs (behests contained in) the verses (of the Quran),
and does not exhibit any lassitude in fasting and prayer until the Mujahid returns
from Jihad in the way of Allah, the Exalted. Would you have the strength to do
that deed?
The man said:
Who would have the strength to do that deed? (Bukhari, Jihad, 1; Nasai, Jihad,
17. Also see Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 110; Tirmidhi, Fadail al-jihad, 1; Ahmad, II, 344, 423)
:
.
:
546
o -----------------------------
248. Salman (r.a.) narrated: I heard the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) say:
Keeping watch for a day and a night is better (in point of reward) than fasting for a whole month and standing in prayer every night. If a person dies (while,
performing this duty), his (meritorious) activity will continue and he will go on
receiving his reward for it perpetually and will be saved from the torture of the
grave. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 163. Also see. Tirmidhi, Fadail al-jihad, 2; Nasai, jihad, 39; Ibn
Majah, Jihad, 7)
: .
His servant and the Prophet, to perform regular prayers, to give Islamic poordue, to perform Pilgrimage (Hajj), to fast during the month of Ramadan, and
perform jihad in the way of Allah.
I said to him:
O the Messenger of Allah! I swear to Allah that I cannot perform two of
these. These are the Jihad and Sadaqah (charity). Muslims say that those who
run away from the frontage returns by getting the anger of Allah.272 I fear that
my carnal self may get scared from dying.
When it comes to sadaqah (charity), I swear to Allah that I do not have
anything else than a small sheep herd and ten camels. They are the source of
livelihood of family and mounts.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) clenched and waived his hand saying:
No Jihad, no sadaqah (charity), how are you going to go to Paradise?!
I said right away:
O the Messenger of Allah, I pledge allegiance to you! and pledged upon
all the conditions that he proposed. (Ahmad, V, 224; Ibn Kathir, Tafsir, II, 306, [from the
interpretation of Al-Anfal; 8:16)
.
:
250. Abu Huraira (r.a.) narrated: The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
272. Here, the companion was minding the following noble verse:
If any do turn his back to them on such a day - unless it be in a stratagem of war, or to
retreat to a troop (of his own)- he draws on himself the wrath of Allah, and his abode is
Hell,- an evil refuge (indeed)! (al-Anfal; 8:16)
548
o -----------------------------
Paradise has one-hundred levels which Allah has reserved for the Mujahidin who fight in His Cause, and the distance between each of two levels is like the
distance between the Heaven and the Earth. So, when you ask Allah (for something), ask for Al-firdaws which is the best and highest level of Paradise. (Bukhari,
Jihd, 4; Tawhd, 22. See also Nasai, Jihad, 18; Ahmad, II, 335, 339)
Explanations:
Jihad comes from the Arabic root jahd which means to exert and make
an effort, to utilize all the possibilities in order to succeed in something. In technical terms, it means to learn commands of the religion and live by them and
to teach others, to enjoin the good and forbid the evil, to call others to Islam, to
be at war with the carnal self and the external enemies. Jihad can be made by
various means such as heart, tongue, hands, wealth, life, and weapons.
As it can be seen, jihad has a wide range of meanings that cover all kinds of
deeds of learning Islam and helping to protect and ensure its continuation. For
this reason, considering jihad consisting of solely battle is not only incorrect
representation of the truth but also is a faulty and wrong understanding of the
meaning of Jihad given in the Quran and Sunnah.
In this situation, any effort and struggle to exalt the religion of Allah, that
is, ila-i kalimatullah, is jihad. A person first believes in Allah, then learns his
religion, and then tries to take his religion to other people in an appropriate
style. He struggles with those who object this, again, within the rules brought
by religion. Namely, he tries to remove all the barriers between Islam and humans. This is because the only goal of jihad is to provide opportunities for
those who want to accept the religion without any imposition, with their own
will, and discretion and to prepare the basis for those who want to learn the
necessities of their religion and to live what they learned.
Jihad aims to purify the Earth from all kinds of oppression and polytheism and to establish justice, compassion, and mercy there. This means not just
Muslims, but all humanity, living beings, and even non-living beings are under
protection. The real difference between the life-granting jihad of Muslims and
the war of oppressors who loot everything is seen here.
For this reason, the foundation of the building of Islam is considered as
faith and its peak and highest dome is accepted as jihad. The Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) said:
549
Jihad is the peak of Islam. (Tirmidhi, Iman 8; Ibn Majah, Fitan 22; Ahmad, V, 245246)
550
o -----------------------------
This can be the only way to compensate for this and pointed towards the
war fronts towards direction of the Roman Empire.
Upon this, they went out for jihad to Damascus and never came back until they reach the rank of martyrdom. (See Ali al-Muttaqi, XIV, 67/37953; Hakim, III,
318/5227)
that you strive (your utmost) in the Cause of Allah, with your property and
your persons: That will be best for you, if you but knew! (Al-Saff; 61:10-11)
When asked who the most virtuous person is, the Messenger of Allah
(pbuh) again said:
The believer who struggles in the way of Allah with his life and property.
(Bukhari, Jihad, 2; Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 122)
When it comes to jihad with tongue, it is also very important. Jihad with
forces like language, paper, pen, culture, and economics has gained more importance especially in our day. The Noble Quran named calling to Islam, which
is very important in carrying the divine message to humanity, the Great Jihad
(strive with utmost strenuousness).
In the noble verse it is said:
Therefore listen not to the unbelievers, but strive against them with
the utmost strenuousness, with the (Quran). (Al-Furqan; 25:52)
The utmost strenuousness in the verse is doing everything possible to
spread and exalt Islam, and to mobilize all resources and capacities for this
cause.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following about those who speak
of things that they do not do and do things that they were not commanded:
He who strove against them with his hand was a believer: he who strove
against them with his tongue was a believer, and he who strove against them with
his heart was a believer and beyond that there is no faith even to the extent of a
mustard seed. (Muslim, Iman, 80)
The usage of the term jihad (strive) by the Prophet is worthy of attention.
Then, enjoining the good and forbidding the evil with tongue is also jihad. If
one does not have the strength to do this, then hating from the heart and praying is also jihad. However, this understanding never means to neglect, belittle,
or give up the jihad in the war front. It only shows that the mentality that considers jihad something that can only be done with the hand and at the war front
is incomplete. This is because it may not always be necessary to fight on the war
front. Moreover, some accomplishments are obtained outside the war front. No
doubt there are many ways and methods to spread the religion of Allah and to
552
o -----------------------------
take Islam to people. Even the army that will fight in the war front can only be
formed by calling to Islam and training.
The jihad with tongue in our hadith is also understood as activities such as
encouraging the warriors to fight with the enemy, saying words or reciting poems that increase their courage and state the virtue of jihad. Indeed, when the
verses that decry the poets who deal with invalidity and poetry in this context,
Qab b. Malik (r.a.), one of the famous poets, came to the Prophet and asked:
As you know, Allah the Exalted has revealed some verses on poetry, what
do you command in this regard? The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sad to him:
The believer strives (jihad) with his sword and tongue. I swear by Allah in
Whose Hand my soul is the words that you throw to the enemy with your tongue
are just like arrows, it divides and destroys them. (See Ahmad, III, 456; VI, 387)
In the same manner, to announce the bad ends of the disbelievers and
unbelievers, to put forth with evidence their heresy and invalidity are also jihad
with the tongue. Namely, all kinds of verbal service for Islam are considered
jihad with tongue.
Almighty Allah has informed us that he loves his servants who fight in
the direction of the sake of Allah and are never afraid of the reproaches of such
people who find fault, and He also testified that such servants also love Him.
This indeed is a great favor from Allah. (Al-Maidah; 5:54)
While the meaning of jihad (striving, struggling in the way of Allah) is
very broad due to its difficulty and the necessity of putting one life at stake the
physical jihad has been accepted as the most virtuous. When all the possibilities for peace are exhausted or when enemy attacks, war may become necessary
as a last resort. In this situation, going on an expedition by risking everything
is of course the most virtuous righteous deed. Indeed, in our second hadith,
we are informed that walking a little in the morning or in the evening for this
purpose is better for a Muslim than the world and all there is in it. Due to the
superiority of this effort in the way of Allah, Almighty Allah has decreed as
virtuous the steps are when returning from jihad as the steps taken going for
jihad.
All military moves, the morning and evening training activities, which are
important for the military, and even stepping somewhere that would anger the
553
disbelievers are from the acts that are considered rewarding and are included
in the content of our hadith.
Almighty Allah speaks as follows:
It was not fitting for the people of Medina and the Bedouin Arabs of
the neighborhood, to refuse to follow Allahs Messenger, nor to prefer their
own lives to his: because nothing could they suffer or do, but was reckoned
to their credit as a deed of righteousness,- whether they suffered thirst, or
fatigue, or hunger, in the cause of Allah, or trod paths to raise the ire of the
Unbelievers, or received any injury whatever from an enemy: for Allah suffers not the reward to be lost of those who do good. (Al-Tawbah; 9:120)
However, jihad needs to be done only for the sake of Allah. Indeed questions like the following were directed to the Prophet:
O the Messenger of Allah (pbuh)! Some people fight so that they can
obtain war booty (spoils of war), others fight so that they can be famous, others fight so that they show off as heroes and prove the superiority of their race,
and some people fight because of their anger. Now who among these are in the
way of Allah?
The Prophet (pbuh) said:
Only he who fights that Allahs Word (i.e. Islam) should be superior fights in
Allahs Cause. (See Bukhari, Jihad, 15; Muslim, Imara, 149-151)
In our third hadith, we are informed that hurrying in jihad and being
early in this way even for a few hours is better than performing a prayer with
the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) or than donating everything on this world.
When the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) saw that Abdullah bin Rawaha that he
has sent to a military expedition got behind from his friends due to his desire
to pray with the Messenger of Allah, he said:
Even if you donate everything in this world, you would not gain the rewards
that they would by departing early.
Again one day, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) sent some of his noble companions to a military expedition. One of them stayed back. He said to his family:
I stayed back thinking let me perform the Salat al-Zuhr with the Messenger of Allah and then say goodbye to him. He also said that the Messenger can
pray for me so that prayer can be intercessor for me on the Day of Judgment.
554
o -----------------------------
This person approached our Noble Prophet after the prayer and greeted
him.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
Do you know by how much your friends got in front of you?
The companion said:
Yes, they have got ahead of me as much as it can be traveled since the
morning.
Upon this, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said:
I swear to Allah who holds my carnal self in His hands that they have got
ahead of you in terms of virtue as much as the distance between the east and the
west. (Ahmad, III, 438)
This is to say that the steps taken and the seconds spent in the way of Allah are so valuable. As a matter of fact, it is impossible to find another worship
that is better and more virtuous than jihad in terms of its goal and hardships.
Indeed, in our forth hadith, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) said the following
to a person who asked if there is worship same in virtue as jihad:
I dont know such a deed (that is equivalent to Jihad)!
According to the narration in the Muslim, this question was repeated two
or three times and the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) answered in each time:
You cannot find a deed that is equivalent to it! Then he said:
One who goes out for Jihad is like a person who keeps fasts, stands in prayer
(constantly), (obeying) Allahs (behests contained in) the verses (of the Quran),
and does not exhibit any lassitude in fasting and prayer until the Mujahid returns
from Jihad in the way of Allah, the Exalted. (Muslim, Kitab Al-Imara, 110. Also see
Tirmidhi, Fadail al-jihad, 1; Nasai, Jihad, 17)
When the noble companion who asked the question heard what the
Prophet had said, he had to confess that no one can do that.
Not only jihad but everything that is related to it is also virtuous. As a matter of fact, in our fifth hadith it is told about the virtue of being on duty (e.g.
protecting the border etc.)
555
The word Ribat mentioned in the hadith (in the original text) means to
be ready and wait to prevent the attack of the enemy and depend in the way of
Allah. The same term is used for the border that is formed between unbelievers
and Muslims in order to protect the believers. The posts located at the border
between a Muslim country and a country of non-believers is also called ribat.
The soldiers who are on duty in these places are called murabit.
We see from the original text of the following noble verse that feeding a
horse and making them ready for jihad is also called ribat:
Against them make ready your strength to the utmost of your power,
including steeds of war, to strike terror into (the hearts of) the enemies, of
Allah and your enemies, and others besides, whom ye may not know, but
whom Allah doth know. Whatever you shall spend in the cause of Allah,
shall be repaid unto you, and you shall not be treated unjustly. (Al-Anfal;
8:60)
Based on this verse, our scholars expressed that it is one of the most important duties of Muslims to have all the weapons that are necessary for the
time, and producing war weapons and equipment and making them ready for
use. Therefore, every act and preparation that is related to jihad is a good deed
and included in the good news of the hadith.
As per the first meaning of ribat, a person who is on duty at the border
gains rewards that are equivalent to fasting during the day and conducting miscellaneous acts of worship in the night. If the person passes away during this
duty, the righteous deed that he was performing transforms into an everlasting
reward (sadaqah jaria) and he earns divine rewards until the Day of Judgment.
Since he passed away during a duty related to jihad, he is considered a martyr,
and he immediately starts to benefit from the bounties of the Paradise. He is
saved right away from the hardships of the grave, which is the most passage for
humans, and questions of the angels.274
274. Indeed the grave is a great source of fear and anxiety for humans. Indeed the Messenger of
Allah (pbuh) said:
The grave is the first of the stages of the Hereafter; whoever is saved from it, what comes
afterwards will be easier for him, but if he is not saved from it, what comes afterwards will
be worse (more difficult and intense) for him. I have never seen any scene that was as
frightening and scary as the grave. (Ahmad, I, 63-64)
556
o -----------------------------
Indeed, ribat is a virtuous deed that saves one from the horrific scenes of
the grave. This is because it is a hard and difficult service in order to protect
peoples religion, life, property, honor, and chastity.
In our sixth hadith, we are informed that jihad with property and life
is the most important worship that is a means to entering Heaven. The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) has proposed some conditions to the companion who
came to pledge allegiance to him. When the companion said that he would fear
the anger of Allah in case he leaves jihad because he would fear for his life and
also he would not be able to give sadaqah from his wealth which is sufficient
only for his family, the Messenger of Allah (pbuh) clenched and shook his fist
and said:
There is neither striving nor almsgiving, then how will you enter the Paradise?
Allah knows the best but maybe the Prophet (pbuh) wanted to show by
clenching his fist that what prevents one from jihad and sadaqah is miserliness
that clenches a person like an iron shield.
So, jihad and sadaqah, are two means to practice the religion and to earn
the Heaven. This is because striving in the way of Allah through ones wealth
and life is the beginning of the matter and the peak of the religion. When jihad
and sadaqah disappears from the scene, the religion weakens and mischief covers the world. Indeed, in one of the hadith of the Messenger of Allah (pbuh),
which he starts by saying There will come such a time upon people that and
where he describes the times where religiousness weakens, he informs us that
people will see jihad as loss and zakat as a difficult loan that is hard to handle
and pay back. (Ali al-Muttaqi, III, 236/6322)
For this reason, the companion has not been late to realize the seriousness
of the matter upon the Prophets meaningful question and has participated in
the jihads by immediately accepting all the conditions and pledging allegiance.
Indeed, in our sources it is stated that that person has participated in the conquest of Madain at the time of Umar. (Ibn Asaakir, Tarihu Dimashq, X, 308)
Jihad does not just help a person enter the Heaven also helps the person
reach the highest ranks. In our seventh hadith, we are informed that there are
one hundred grades in Heaven for the martyrs and that the distance between
each of them are as far as the distance between the Earth and the Sky. In our
557
hadith, there is also an indicator that the mujahedeen (strivers) are going to be
placed in the Heaven of Firdaows, the highest rank in Heaven.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says the following:
Nobody who enters Paradise likes to go back to the world even if he got everything on the earth, except a Mujahid who wishes to return to the world so that
he may be martyred ten times because of the dignity he receives (from Allah).
(Bukhari, Jihad, 21; Muslim, Imara, 109. Also see. Tirmidhi, Fadail al-jihad, 13, 25)
As jihad and being mujahidin are so virtuous, those who leave jihad also
correspondingly burden themselves very heavily and end up risking themselves.
The Messenger of Allah (pbuh) says the following:
He who does not join the warlike expedition (jihad), or equip, or looks well
after a warriors family when he is away, will be smitten by Allah with a sudden
calamity before the Day of Resurrection (Abu Dawud, Jihad, 17/2503. Also see Ibn Majah, Jihad, 5)
When you transact via inah275 method, when you hold on to the tails of
oxen, when you prefer farming and leave jihad, Allah will bestow upon you such
a despicableness that it wont be removed until you go back to your religion. (Abu
Dawud, Kitab Al-Buyu, 54/3462)
The purpose of saying holding on to the tails of oxen and preferring farming is to be busy with worldly affairs when it is necessary to do jihad. This
situation is nothing but the heedlessness of ones risking oneself with his own
hands. The following narration that shows this contains lots of lessons to take:
In the time of Umayyads, the army of Abdurrahman, the son of Khalid
b. Walid (r.a.), had departed in order to achieve the glad tidings and praise
of the Messenger of Allah regarding the conquest of Istanbul. Abu Ayyub Al
Ansari (r.a.) was also in that army. When the Romans were fighting while their
back was towards the city walls, a person from the Ansar rode his horse to the
middle of the Romans.
275. Inah is sales transaction where a person sells a good with installments at a certain price
but purchases back the same good with a price that is lower than the price he charges when
he sells with no installments. Such a transaction has not been found permissible because
it contains a doubt that it could be interest. (H. Yunus Apaydn, ne, Diyanet slm
Ansiklopedisi, XXII, 283-284)
558
o -----------------------------
Recalling the verse ...make not your own hands contribute to (your)
destruction (Al Baqara, 2:195), the believers who saw this said:
La ilaaha illallah! Look at him! He is recklessly risking his life!
Upon his Abu Ayyub Al Ansari said the following:
O believers! That verse was revealed about us, the Helpers (Ansaar).
When Almighty Allah helped His Prophet and had his religion prevail we had
said, From now on, we should stay and be busy with our property. Upon his
Almighty Allah revealed the following verse to His Messenger:
And spend of your substance in the cause of Allah, and make not your
own hands contribute to (your) destruction; but do good; for Allah loves
those who do good.276
The purpose of make not your own hands contribute to (your) destruction; but do good in this verse is that you should not leave aside and neglect
jihad by busying yourself with worldly goods such as gardens and fields.
Abu Ayyub al-Ansari did not leave jihad even though he was over the age
of eighty. He continued to strive in the way of Allah until he was martyred and
buried in Istanbul. (See Abu Dawud, Jihad, 22/2512; Tirmidhi, Tafsir, 2/2972)
559
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BIBLIOGRAPHY
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
Ibn Hisham, Abu Muhammad Abdulmalik bin Hisham, Sirat al-Nabi, I-IV,
(Beirut: Drul-Fikr), 1937.
Ibn Huzaima, Abu Bakr Muhammad b. Ishaq, Sahihu Ibn Huzayma, I-IV, Beirut, 1970.
Ibn Ishaq, Muhammad b. Ishaq b. Yasar, Siratu Ibn Ishaq (Kitab al-mubtadai
wa al-mabasi wa al-maghazi), Konya 1981.
bn-i Kayym el-Cevziyye, Muhammed Eb Bekir, Zadul-mead, I-VI, Kuveyt,
1991.
Ibn Kathir, Imaduddin Abu al-Fida, Tafsiru Quran al-Azim, I-IV, Beirut 1988;
al-Bidaya wa al-Nihaya, I-XV, Cairo 1993.
Ibn Majah, Abu Abdillah Muhammad b. Yazid al-Qazvini, Sunanu Ibn Majah,
I-II, Istanbul 1992.
Ibn Sad, Muhammad, al-Tabakat al-Kubra, I-IX, (Beirut: Daru Sadr).
Ibn Sayyidinnas, Uyun al-Athar fi funun al-Maghazi wa al-shamail wa al-Siyar,
I-II, Beirut 1992.
Ibrhim Canan, Hadis Ansiklopedisi, I-XVIII, Istanbul, n.d.
Imam Malik b. Anas, Muwatta, I-II, Istanbul 1992.
Ismail Ltfi akan, Hadislerle Gerekler, Istanbul 2003.
Kad Iyaz, Abu al-Fadl Iyaz b. Musa b. Iyaz al-Yahsubi, Al-Shifa bi tarifi huquq
al-Mustafa, (Istanbul: Halil Efendi Matbaas), 1290.
Qasimi, Muhammad Jamaladdin, Mahasin al-Tawil (pub. Muhammed Fuad
Abdulbaqi), I-XVII, (Cairo: Daru Ihya al-Kutub al-Arabiyya), n.d.
Qastallani, Abu al-Abbas Ahmad bin Muhammad, al-Mawahib al-Ladunniyya,
I-II, Egypt 1281.
Qattani, Muhammad Abdu al-Hayy, Nizam al-hukumat al-Nabawiyya (alTaratib al-Idariyya), Beirut 1996.
Qurtubi, Abu Abdillah Muhammad b. Ahmad, al-Jami li-Ahkam al-Quran,
I-XX, Beirut 1985.
Kushayri, Abu al-Qasim Abdulkarim b. Hawazin, al-Risalat al-Kushayriyya,
Cairo 1966.
564
BIBLIOGRAPHY
o -----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
566
..............................................................................................................................................
.........
...........................................................................................................................................
. ..................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
........................................................
..................................... ....................
...........................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
.......................................................
........................................................ ...................
...........................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
.....................................................
..........
..............................................................
..........................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..........................................................
.......... ....................
...................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
.........................................................................
................................................................................................................................................
.........
..........................................
. ........................................
...........................................................
....
. ................................................................
.....................................................
.. .......................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
...................
................................................................................................................................................
..... ......................
.. .....................................................
.. .................................................. ......................................................
...................................................................................
.............................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
................................................................................................................................................
...........
...........
.. ..................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
......................
...
................................................................................................................................................
..............
..................
................
..... ....................
..........................
............
................................................................
.....................................................................
................
...............................................................................................................................................
.....................................................................................................................................................................................................
.......................................................................................................................................................................................................................
................................................................................................................................................
......
..........................................................................................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
....
................ ................................................................................................................
.....
.....................
.....
...................................
.......................
.. .........
..............................................................................................................................................
...................................
.........................................
.......
.... ........................ http://www.islamicpublishing.net
http
ht
tp
p:///w
ww
ww
w.i.isl
isl
sla
lam
amicpu
ami
ic ubl
b is
ishi
hing
ngg.n
.net
net ........................................
..........
......
......
.............
....................
...............
...........
..........
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
..............................................................................................................................................
....................................... http://www.islamicpublishing.net .......................................